home *** CD-ROM | disk | FTP | other *** search
Text File | 1994-03-01 | 544.1 KB | 11,817 lines |
- **Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
-
- **Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
-
- *These Etexts Prepared By Hundreds of Volunteers and Donations*
-
- Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get Etexts, and
- further information is included below. We need your donations.
-
-
- June, 1993 [Etext #70]
-
- *The Project Gutenberg Edition of "What Is Man?" by Mark Twain*
- *******This file should be named wman10.txt or wman10.zip******
-
- Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, wman11.txt
- VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, wman10a.txt
-
- Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
-
- We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
- fifty hours is one conservative estimate for how long it we take
- to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
- searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. This
- projected audience is one hundred million readers. If our value
- per text is nominally estimated at one dollar, then we produce 2
- million dollars per hour this year we will have to do four text
- files per month: thus upping our productivity from one million.
- The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
- Files by the December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion]
- This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
- which is 10% of the expected number of computer users by the end
- of the year 2001.
-
- We need your donations more than ever!
-
- All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/IBC", and are
- tax deductible to the extent allowable by law ("IBC" is Illinois
- Benedictine College). (Subscriptions to our paper newsletter go
- to IBC, too)
-
- For these and other matters, please mail to:
-
- David Turner, Project Gutenberg
- Illinois Benedictine College
- 5700 College Road
- Lisle, IL 60532-0900
-
- Phone: 1-708-960-1500 (x3014)
-
- General information: Internet: dircompg@ux1.cso.uiuc.edu
-
- or
-
- Internet: chipmonk@eagle.ibc.edu (David Turner)
- Compuserve: >INTERNET: chipmonk@eagle.ibc.edu (David Turner)
- Attmail: internet!chipmonk@eagle.ibc.edu (David Turner)
- MCImail: (David Turner)
- ADDRESS TYPE: MCI / EMS: INTERNET / MBX:chipmonk@eagle.ibc.edu
-
- When all other email fails try our Michael S. Hart, Executive Director:
- hart@vmd.cso.uiuc.edu (internet) hart@uiucvmd (bitnet)
-
- We would prefer to send you this information by email
- (Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).
-
- ******
- If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please
- FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives:
- [Mac users, do NOT point and click. . .type]
-
- ftp mrcnext.cso.uiuc.edu
- login: anonymous
- password: your@login
- cd etext/etext91
- or cd etext92
- or cd etext93 [for new books] [now also in cd etext/etext93]
- or cd etext/articles [get suggest gut for more information]
- dir [to see files]
- get or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files]
- GET 0INDEX.GUT
- for a list of books
- and
- GET NEW GUT for general information
- and
- MGET GUT* for newsletters.
-
- **Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal advisor**
- (Three Pages)
-
-
- ***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START***
- Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
- They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
- your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
- someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
- fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
- disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
- you can distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
-
- *BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
- By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
- etext, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
- this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
- a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by
- sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
- you got it from. If you received this etext on a physical
- medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
-
- ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
- This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-
- tm etexts, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor
- Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association at
- Illinois Benedictine College (the "Project"). Among other
- things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
- on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
- distribute it in the United States without permission and
- without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
- below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this etext
- under the Project's "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
-
- To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
- efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
- works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
- medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
- things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
- corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
- intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
- disk or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer
- codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
-
- LIMTED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
- But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
- [1] the Project (and any other party you may receive this
- etext from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all
- liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
- legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
- UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
- INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
- OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
- POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
-
- If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
- receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
- you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
- time to the person you received it from. If you received it
- on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
- such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
- copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
- choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
- receive it electronically.
-
- THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
- WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
- TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
- LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
- PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
-
- Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
- the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
- above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
- may have other legal rights.
-
- INDEMNITY
- You will indemnify and hold the Project, its directors,
- officers, members and agents harmless from all liability, cost
- and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or
- indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause:
- [1] distribution of this etext, [2] alteration, modification,
- or addition to the etext, or [3] any Defect.
-
- DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
- You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
- disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
- "Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
- or:
-
- [1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
- requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
- etext or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
- if you wish, distribute this etext in machine readable
- binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
- including any form resulting from conversion by word pro-
- cessing or hypertext software, but only so long as
- *EITHER*:
-
- [*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
- does *not* contain characters other than those
- intended by the author of the work, although tilde
- (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
- be used to convey punctuation intended by the
- author, and additional characters may be used to
- indicate hypertext links; OR
-
- [*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
- no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
- form by the program that displays the etext (as is
- the case, for instance, with most word processors);
- OR
-
- [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
- no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
- etext in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
- or other equivalent proprietary form).
-
- [2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
- "Small Print!" statement.
-
- [3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Project of 20% of the
- net profits you derive calculated using the method you
- already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
- don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
- payable to "Project Gutenberg Association / Illinois
- Benedictine College" within the 60 days following each
- date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare)
- your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return.
-
- WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
- The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money, time,
- scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts, royalty
- free copyright licenses, and every other sort of contribution
- you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project Gutenberg
- Association / Illinois Benedictine College".
-
- This "Small Print!" by Charles B. Kramer, Attorney
- Internet (72600.2026@compuserve.com); TEL: (212-254-5093)
- *END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.04.29.93*END*
-
-
-
-
-
- *The Project Gutenberg Edition of "What Is Man?" by Mark Twain*
-
-
-
-
- WHAT IS MAN? AND OTHER ESSAYS OF MARK TWAIN
-
- (Samuel Langhorne Clemens, 1835-1910)
-
-
-
- CONTENTS
-
-
- What Is Man?
-
- The Death of Jean
-
- The Turning-Point of My Life
-
- How to Make History Dates Stick
-
- The Memorable Assassination
-
- A Scrap of Curious History
-
- Switzerland, the Cradle of Liberty
-
- At the Shrine of St. Wagner
-
- William Dean Howells
-
- English as She is Taught
-
- A Simplified Alphabet
-
- As Concerns Interpreting the Deity
-
- Concerning Tobacco
-
- Taming the Bicycle
-
- Is Shakespeare Dead?
-
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
- WHAT IS MAN?
-
-
- I
-
- a. Man the Machine. b. Personal Merit
-
-
- [The Old Man and the Young Man had been conversing. The Old
- Man had asserted that the human being is merely a machine, and
- nothing more. The Young Man objected, and asked him to go into
- particulars and furnish his reasons for his position.]
-
- Old Man. What are the materials of which a steam-engine is made?
-
- Young Man. Iron, steel, brass, white-metal, and so on.
-
- O.M. Where are these found?
-
- Y.M. In the rocks.
-
- O.M. In a pure state?
-
- Y.M. No--in ores.
-
- O.M. Are the metals suddenly deposited in the ores?
-
- Y.M. No--it is the patient work of countless ages.
-
- O.M. You could make the engine out of the rocks themselves?
-
- Y.M. Yes, a brittle one and not valuable.
-
- O.M. You would not require much, of such an engine as that?
-
- Y.M. No--substantially nothing.
-
- O.M. To make a fine and capable engine, how would you
- proceed?
-
- Y.M. Drive tunnels and shafts into the hills; blast out the
- iron ore; crush it, smelt it, reduce it to pig-iron; put some of
- it through the Bessemer process and make steel of it. Mine and
- treat and combine several metals of which brass is made.
-
- O.M. Then?
-
- Y.M. Out of the perfected result, build the fine engine.
-
- O.M. You would require much of this one?
-
- Y.M. Oh, indeed yes.
-
- O.M. It could drive lathes, drills, planers, punches,
- polishers, in a word all the cunning machines of a great factory?
-
- Y.M. It could.
-
- O.M. What could the stone engine do?
-
- Y.M. Drive a sewing-machine, possibly--nothing more,
- perhaps.
-
- O.M. Men would admire the other engine and rapturously
- praise it?
-
- Y.M. Yes.
-
- O.M. But not the stone one?
-
- Y.M. No.
-
- O.M. The merits of the metal machine would be far above
- those of the stone one?
-
- Y.M. Of course.
-
- O.M. Personal merits?
-
- Y.M. PERSONAL merits? How do you mean?
-
- O.M. It would be personally entitled to the credit of its
- own performance?
-
- Y.M. The engine? Certainly not.
-
- O.M. Why not?
-
- Y.M. Because its performance is not personal. It is the
- result of the law of construction. It is not a MERIT that it
- does the things which it is set to do--it can't HELP doing them.
-
- O.M. And it is not a personal demerit in the stone machine
- that it does so little?
-
- Y.M. Certainly not. It does no more and no less than the
- law of its make permits and compels it to do. There is nothing
- PERSONAL about it; it cannot choose. In this process of "working
- up to the matter" is it your idea to work up to the proposition
- that man and a machine are about the same thing, and that there
- is no personal merit in the performance of either?
-
- O.M. Yes--but do not be offended; I am meaning no offense.
- What makes the grand difference between the stone engine and the
- steel one? Shall we call it training, education? Shall we call
- the stone engine a savage and the steel one a civilized man? The
- original rock contained the stuff of which the steel one was
- built--but along with a lot of sulphur and stone and other
- obstructing inborn heredities, brought down from the old geologic
- ages--prejudices, let us call them. Prejudices which nothing
- within the rock itself had either POWER to remove or any DESIRE
- to remove. Will you take note of that phrase?
-
- Y.M. Yes. I have written it down; "Prejudices which
- nothing within the rock itself had either power to remove or any
- desire to remove." Go on.
-
- O.M. Prejudices must be removed by OUTSIDE INFLUENCES or
- not at all. Put that down.
-
- Y.M. Very well; "Must be removed by outside influences or
- not at all." Go on.
-
- O.M. The iron's prejudice against ridding itself of the
- cumbering rock. To make it more exact, the iron's absolute
- INDIFFERENCE as to whether the rock be removed or not. Then
- comes the OUTSIDE INFLUENCE and grinds the rock to powder and
- sets the ore free. The IRON in the ore is still captive. An
- OUTSIDE INFLUENCE smelts it free of the clogging ore. The iron
- is emancipated iron, now, but indifferent to further progress.
- An OUTSIDE INFLUENCE beguiles it into the Bessemer furnace and
- refines it into steel of the first quality. It is educated, now
- --its training is complete. And it has reached its limit. By no
- possible process can it be educated into GOLD. Will you set that
- down?
-
- Y.M. Yes. "Everything has its limit--iron ore cannot be
- educated into gold."
-
- O.M. There are gold men, and tin men, and copper men, and
- leaden mean, and steel men, and so on--and each has the
- limitations of his nature, his heredities, his training, and his
- environment. You can build engines out of each of these metals,
- and they will all perform, but you must not require the weak ones
- to do equal work with the strong ones. In each case, to get the
- best results, you must free the metal from its obstructing
- prejudicial ones by education--smelting, refining, and so forth.
-
- Y.M. You have arrived at man, now?
-
- O.M. Yes. Man the machine--man the impersonal engine.
- Whatsoever a man is, is due to his MAKE, and to the INFLUENCES
- brought to bear upon it by his heredities, his habitat, his
- associations. He is moved, directed, COMMANDED, by EXTERIOR
- influences--SOLELY. He ORIGINATES nothing, not even a thought.
-
- Y.M. Oh, come! Where did I get my opinion that this which
- you are talking is all foolishness?
-
- O.M. It is a quite natural opinion--indeed an inevitable
- opinion--but YOU did not create the materials out of which it is
- formed. They are odds and ends of thoughts, impressions,
- feelings, gathered unconsciously from a thousand books, a
- thousand conversations, and from streams of thought and feeling
- which have flowed down into your heart and brain out of the
- hearts and brains of centuries of ancestors. PERSONALLY you did
- not create even the smallest microscopic fragment of the
- materials out of which your opinion is made; and personally you
- cannot claim even the slender merit of PUTTING THE BORROWED
- MATERIALS TOGETHER. That was done AUTOMATICALLY--by your mental
- machinery, in strict accordance with the law of that machinery's
- construction. And you not only did not make that machinery
- yourself, but you have NOT EVEN ANY COMMAND OVER IT.
-
- Y.M. This is too much. You think I could have formed no
- opinion but that one?
-
- O.M. Spontaneously? No. And YOU DID NOT FORM THAT ONE;
- your machinery did it for you--automatically and instantly,
- without reflection or the need of it.
-
- Y.M. Suppose I had reflected? How then?
-
- O.M. Suppose you try?
-
- Y.M. (AFTER A QUARTER OF AN HOUR.) I have reflected.
-
- O.M. You mean you have tried to change your opinion--as an
- experiment?
-
- Y.M. Yes.
-
- O.M. With success?
-
- Y.M. No. It remains the same; it is impossible to change
- it.
-
- O.M. I am sorry, but you see, yourself, that your mind is
- merely a machine, nothing more. You have no command over it, it
- has no command over itself--it is worked SOLELY FROM THE OUTSIDE.
- That is the law of its make; it is the law of all machines.
-
- Y.M. Can't I EVER change one of these automatic opinions?
-
- O.M. No. You can't yourself, but EXTERIOR INFLUENCES can
- do it.
-
- Y.M. And exterior ones ONLY?
-
- O.M. Yes--exterior ones only.
-
- Y.M. That position is untenable--I may say ludicrously
- untenable.
-
- O.M. What makes you think so?
-
- Y.M. I don't merely think it, I know it. Suppose I resolve
- to enter upon a course of thought, and study, and reading, with
- the deliberate purpose of changing that opinion; and suppose I
- succeed. THAT is not the work of an exterior impulse, the whole
- of it is mine and personal; for I originated the project.
-
- O.M. Not a shred of it. IT GREW OUT OF THIS TALK WITH ME.
- But for that it would not have occurred to you. No man ever
- originates anything. All his thoughts, all his impulses, come
- FROM THE OUTSIDE.
-
- Y.M. It's an exasperating subject. The FIRST man had
- original thoughts, anyway; there was nobody to draw from.
-
- O.M. It is a mistake. Adam's thoughts came to him from the
- outside. YOU have a fear of death. You did not invent that--you
- got it from outside, from talking and teaching. Adam had no fear
- of death--none in the world.
-
- Y.M. Yes, he had.
-
- O.M. When he was created?
-
- Y.M. No.
-
- O.M. When, then?
-
- Y.M. When he was threatened with it.
-
- O.M. Then it came from OUTSIDE. Adam is quite big enough;
- let us not try to make a god of him. NONE BUT GODS HAVE EVER HAD
- A THOUGHT WHICH DID NOT COME FROM THE OUTSIDE. Adam probably had
- a good head, but it was of no sort of use to him until it was
- filled up FROM THE OUTSIDE. He was not able to invent the
- triflingest little thing with it. He had not a shadow of a
- notion of the difference between good and evil--he had to get the
- idea FROM THE OUTSIDE. Neither he nor Eve was able to originate
- the idea that it was immodest to go naked; the knowledge came in
- with the apple FROM THE OUTSIDE. A man's brain is so constructed
- that IT CAN ORIGINATE NOTHING WHATSOEVER. It can only use
- material obtained OUTSIDE. It is merely a machine; and it works
- automatically, not by will-power. IT HAS NO COMMAND OVER ITSELF,
- ITS OWNER HAS NO COMMAND OVER IT.
-
- Y.M. Well, never mind Adam: but certainly Shakespeare's
- creations--
-
- O.M. No, you mean Shakespeare's IMITATIONS. Shakespeare
- created nothing. He correctly observed, and he marvelously
- painted. He exactly portrayed people whom GOD had created; but
- he created none himself. Let us spare him the slander of
- charging him with trying. Shakespeare could not create. HE WAS
- A MACHINE, AND MACHINES DO NOT CREATE.
-
- Y.M. Where WAS his excellence, then?
-
- O.M. In this. He was not a sewing-machine, like you and
- me; he was a Gobelin loom. The threads and the colors came into
- him FROM THE OUTSIDE; outside influences, suggestions,
- EXPERIENCES (reading, seeing plays, playing plays, borrowing
- ideas, and so on), framed the patterns in his mind and started up
- his complex and admirable machinery, and IT AUTOMATICALLY turned
- out that pictured and gorgeous fabric which still compels the
- astonishment of the world. If Shakespeare had been born and bred
- on a barren and unvisited rock in the ocean his mighty intellect
- would have had no OUTSIDE MATERIAL to work with, and could have
- invented none; and NO OUTSIDE INFLUENCES, teachings, moldings,
- persuasions, inspirations, of a valuable sort, and could have
- invented none; and so Shakespeare would have produced nothing.
- In Turkey he would have produced something--something up to the
- highest limit of Turkish influences, associations, and training.
- In France he would have produced something better--something up
- to the highest limit of the French influences and training. In
- England he rose to the highest limit attainable through the
- OUTSIDE HELPS AFFORDED BY THAT LAND'S IDEALS, INFLUENCES, AND
- TRAINING. You and I are but sewing-machines. We must turn out
- what we can; we must do our endeavor and care nothing at all when
- the unthinking reproach us for not turning out Gobelins.
-
- Y.M. And so we are mere machines! And machines may not
- boast, nor feel proud of their performance, nor claim personal
- merit for it, nor applause and praise. It is an infamous
- doctrine.
-
- O.M. It isn't a doctrine, it is merely a fact.
-
- Y.M. I suppose, then, there is no more merit in being brave
- than in being a coward?
-
- O.M. PERSONAL merit? No. A brave man does not CREATE his
- bravery. He is entitled to no personal credit for possessing it.
- It is born to him. A baby born with a billion dollars--where is
- the personal merit in that? A baby born with nothing--where is
- the personal demerit in that? The one is fawned upon, admired,
- worshiped, by sycophants, the other is neglected and despised--
- where is the sense in it?
-
- Y.M. Sometimes a timid man sets himself the task of
- conquering his cowardice and becoming brave--and succeeds. What
- do you say to that?
-
- O.M. That it shows the value of TRAINING IN RIGHT
- DIRECTIONS OVER TRAINING IN WRONG ONES. Inestimably valuable is
- training, influence, education, in right directions--TRAINING
- ONE'S SELF-APPROBATION TO ELEVATE ITS IDEALS.
-
- Y.M. But as to merit--the personal merit of the victorious
- coward's project and achievement?
-
- O.M. There isn't any. In the world's view he is a worthier
- man than he was before, but HE didn't achieve the change--the
- merit of it is not his.
-
- Y.M. Whose, then?
-
- O.M. His MAKE, and the influences which wrought upon it
- from the outside.
-
- Y.M. His make?
-
- O.M. To start with, he was NOT utterly and completely a
- coward, or the influences would have had nothing to work upon.
- He was not afraid of a cow, though perhaps of a bull: not afraid
- of a woman, but afraid of a man. There was something to build
- upon. There was a SEED. No seed, no plant. Did he make that
- seed himself, or was it born in him? It was no merit of HIS that
- the seed was there.
-
- Y.M. Well, anyway, the idea of CULTIVATING it, the
- resolution to cultivate it, was meritorious, and he originated
- that.
-
- O.M. He did nothing of the kind. It came whence ALL
- impulses, good or bad, come--from OUTSIDE. If that timid man had
- lived all his life in a community of human rabbits, had never
- read of brave deeds, had never heard speak of them, had never
- heard any one praise them nor express envy of the heroes that had
- done them, he would have had no more idea of bravery than Adam
- had of modesty, and it could never by any possibility have
- occurred to him to RESOLVE to become brave. He COULD NOT
- ORIGINATE THE IDEA--it had to come to him from the OUTSIDE. And
- so, when he heard bravery extolled and cowardice derided, it woke
- him up. He was ashamed. Perhaps his sweetheart turned up her
- nose and said, "I am told that you are a coward!" It was not HE
- that turned over the new leaf--she did it for him. HE must not
- strut around in the merit of it--it is not his.
-
- Y.M. But, anyway, he reared the plant after she watered the
- seed.
-
- O.M. No. OUTSIDE INFLUENCES reared it. At the command--
- and trembling--he marched out into the field--with other soldiers
- and in the daytime, not alone and in the dark. He had the
- INFLUENCE OF EXAMPLE, he drew courage from his comrades' courage;
- he was afraid, and wanted to run, but he did not dare; he was
- AFRAID to run, with all those soldiers looking on. He was
- progressing, you see--the moral fear of shame had risen superior
- to the physical fear of harm. By the end of the campaign
- experience will have taught him that not ALL who go into battle
- get hurt--an outside influence which will be helpful to him; and
- he will also have learned how sweet it is to be praised for
- courage and be huzza'd at with tear-choked voices as the war-worn
- regiment marches past the worshiping multitude with flags flying
- and the drums beating. After that he will be as securely brave
- as any veteran in the army--and there will not be a shade nor
- suggestion of PERSONAL MERIT in it anywhere; it will all have
- come from the OUTSIDE. The Victoria Cross breeds more heroes
- than--
-
- Y.M. Hang it, where is the sense in his becoming brave if
- he is to get no credit for it?
-
- O.M. Your question will answer itself presently. It
- involves an important detail of man's make which we have not yet
- touched upon.
-
- Y.M. What detail is that?
-
- O.M. The impulse which moves a person to do things--the
- only impulse that ever moves a person to do a thing.
-
- Y.M. The ONLY one! Is there but one?
-
- O.M. That is all. There is only one.
-
- Y.M. Well, certainly that is a strange enough doctrine.
- What is the sole impulse that ever moves a person to do a thing?
-
- O.M. The impulse to CONTENT HIS OWN SPIRIT--the NECESSITY
- of contenting his own spirit and WINNING ITS APPROVAL.
-
- Y.M. Oh, come, that won't do!
-
- O.M. Why won't it?
-
- Y.M. Because it puts him in the attitude of always looking
- out for his own comfort and advantage; whereas an unselfish man
- often does a thing solely for another person's good when it is a
- positive disadvantage to himself.
-
- O.M. It is a mistake. The act must do HIM good, FIRST;
- otherwise he will not do it. He may THINK he is doing it solely
- for the other person's sake, but it is not so; he is contenting
- his own spirit first--the other's person's benefit has to always
- take SECOND place.
-
- Y.M. What a fantastic idea! What becomes of self-
- sacrifice? Please answer me that.
-
- O.M. What is self-sacrifice?
-
- Y.M. The doing good to another person where no shadow nor
- suggestion of benefit to one's self can result from it.
-
-
-
- II
-
- Man's Sole Impulse--the Securing of His Own Approval
-
-
- Old Man. There have been instances of it--you think?
-
- Young Man. INSTANCES? Millions of them!
-
- O.M. You have not jumped to conclusions? You have examined
- them--critically?
-
- Y.M. They don't need it: the acts themselves reveal the
- golden impulse back of them.
-
- O.M. For instance?
-
- Y.M. Well, then, for instance. Take the case in the book
- here. The man lives three miles up-town. It is bitter cold,
- snowing hard, midnight. He is about to enter the horse-car when
- a gray and ragged old woman, a touching picture of misery, puts
- out her lean hand and begs for rescue from hunger and death. The
- man finds that he has a quarter in his pocket, but he does not
- hesitate: he gives it her and trudges home through the storm.
- There--it is noble, it is beautiful; its grace is marred by no
- fleck or blemish or suggestion of self-interest.
-
- O.M. What makes you think that?
-
- Y.M. Pray what else could I think? Do you imagine that
- there is some other way of looking at it?
-
- O.M. Can you put yourself in the man's place and tell me
- what he felt and what he thought?
-
- Y.M. Easily. The sight of that suffering old face pierced
- his generous heart with a sharp pain. He could not bear it. He
- could endure the three-mile walk in the storm, but he could not
- endure the tortures his conscience would suffer if he turned his
- back and left that poor old creature to perish. He would not
- have been able to sleep, for thinking of it.
-
- O.M. What was his state of mind on his way home?
-
- Y.M. It was a state of joy which only the self-sacrificer
- knows. His heart sang, he was unconscious of the storm.
-
- O.M. He felt well?
-
- Y.M. One cannot doubt it.
-
- O.M. Very well. Now let us add up the details and see how
- much he got for his twenty-five cents. Let us try to find out
- the REAL why of his making the investment. In the first place HE
- couldn't bear the pain which the old suffering face gave him. So
- he was thinking of HIS pain--this good man. He must buy a salve
- for it. If he did not succor the old woman HIS conscience would
- torture him all the way home. Thinking of HIS pain again. He
- must buy relief for that. If he didn't relieve the old woman HE
- would not get any sleep. He must buy some sleep--still thinking
- of HIMSELF, you see. Thus, to sum up, he bought himself free of
- a sharp pain in his heart, he bought himself free of the tortures
- of a waiting conscience, he bought a whole night's sleep--all for
- twenty-five cents! It should make Wall Street ashamed of itself.
- On his way home his heart was joyful, and it sang--profit on top
- of profit! The impulse which moved the man to succor the old
- woman was--FIRST--to CONTENT HIS OWN SPIRIT; secondly to relieve
- HER sufferings. Is it your opinion that men's acts proceed from
- one central and unchanging and inalterable impulse, or from a
- variety of impulses?
-
- Y.M. From a variety, of course--some high and fine and
- noble, others not. What is your opinion?
-
- O.M. Then there is but ONE law, one source.
-
- Y.M. That both the noblest impulses and the basest proceed
- from that one source?
-
- O.M. Yes.
-
- Y.M. Will you put that law into words?
-
- O.M. Yes. This is the law, keep it in your mind. FROM HIS
- CRADLE TO HIS GRAVE A MAN NEVER DOES A SINGLE THING WHICH HAS ANY
- FIRST AND FOREMOST OBJECT BUT ONE--TO SECURE PEACE OF MIND,
- SPIRITUAL COMFORT, FOR HIMSELF.
-
- Y.M. Come! He never does anything for any one else's
- comfort, spiritual or physical?
-
- O.M. No. EXCEPT ON THOSE DISTINCT TERMS--that it shall
- FIRST secure HIS OWN spiritual comfort. Otherwise he will not do
- it.
-
- Y.M. It will be easy to expose the falsity of that
- proposition.
-
- O.M. For instance?
-
- Y.M. Take that noble passion, love of country, patriotism.
- A man who loves peace and dreads pain, leaves his pleasant home
- and his weeping family and marches out to manfully expose himself
- to hunger, cold, wounds, and death. Is that seeking spiritual
- comfort?
-
- O.M. He loves peace and dreads pain?
-
- Y.M. Yes.
-
- O.M. Then perhaps there is something that he loves MORE
- than he loves peace--THE APPROVAL OF HIS NEIGHBORS AND THE
- PUBLIC. And perhaps there is something which he dreads more than
- he dreads pain--the DISAPPROVAL of his neighbors and the public.
- If he is sensitive to shame he will go to the field--not because
- his spirit will be ENTIRELY comfortable there, but because it
- will be more comfortable there than it would be if he remained at
- home. He will always do the thing which will bring him the MOST
- mental comfort--for that is THE SOLE LAW OF HIS LIFE. He leaves
- the weeping family behind; he is sorry to make them
- uncomfortable, but not sorry enough to sacrifice his OWN comfort
- to secure theirs.
-
- Y.M. Do you really believe that mere public opinion could
- force a timid and peaceful man to--
-
- O.M. Go to war? Yes--public opinion can force some men to
- do ANYTHING.
-
- Y.M. ANYTHING?
-
- O.M. Yes--anything.
-
- Y.M. I don't believe that. Can it force a right-principled
- man to do a wrong thing?
-
- O.M. Yes.
-
- Y.M. Can it force a kind man to do a cruel thing?
-
- O.M. Yes.
-
- Y.M. Give an instance.
-
- O.M. Alexander Hamilton was a conspicuously high-principled
- man. He regarded dueling as wrong, and as opposed to the
- teachings of religion--but in deference to PUBLIC OPINION he
- fought a duel. He deeply loved his family, but to buy public
- approval he treacherously deserted them and threw his life away,
- ungenerously leaving them to lifelong sorrow in order that he
- might stand well with a foolish world. In the then condition of
- the public standards of honor he could not have been comfortable
- with the stigma upon him of having refused to fight. The
- teachings of religion, his devotion to his family, his kindness
- of heart, his high principles, all went for nothing when they
- stood in the way of his spiritual comfort. A man will do
- ANYTHING, no matter what it is, TO SECURE HIS SPIRITUAL COMFORT;
- and he can neither be forced nor persuaded to any act which has
- not that goal for its object. Hamilton's act was compelled by
- the inborn necessity of contenting his own spirit; in this it was
- like all the other acts of his life, and like all the acts of all
- men's lives. Do you see where the kernel of the matter lies? A
- man cannot be comfortable without HIS OWN approval. He will
- secure the largest share possible of that, at all costs, all
- sacrifices.
-
- Y.M. A minute ago you said Hamilton fought that duel to get
- PUBLIC approval.
-
- O.M. I did. By refusing to fight the duel he would have
- secured his family's approval and a large share of his own; but
- the public approval was more valuable in his eyes than all other
- approvals put together--in the earth or above it; to secure that
- would furnish him the MOST comfort of mind, the most SELF-
- approval; so he sacrificed all other values to get it.
-
- Y.M. Some noble souls have refused to fight duels, and have
- manfully braved the public contempt.
-
- O.M. They acted ACCORDING TO THEIR MAKE. They valued their
- principles and the approval of their families ABOVE the public
- approval. They took the thing they valued MOST and let the rest
- go. They took what would give them the LARGEST share of PERSONAL
- CONTENTMENT AND APPROVAL--a man ALWAYS does. Public opinion
- cannot force that kind of men to go to the wars. When they go it
- is for other reasons. Other spirit-contenting reasons.
-
- Y.M. Always spirit-contenting reasons?
-
- O.M. There are no others.
-
- Y.M. When a man sacrifices his life to save a little child
- from a burning building, what do you call that?
-
- O.M. When he does it, it is the law of HIS make. HE can't
- bear to see the child in that peril (a man of a different make
- COULD), and so he tries to save the child, and loses his life.
- But he has got what he was after--HIS OWN APPROVAL.
-
- Y.M. What do you call Love, Hate, Charity, Revenge,
- Humanity, Magnanimity, Forgiveness?
-
- O.M. Different results of the one Master Impulse: the
- necessity of securing one's self approval. They wear diverse
- clothes and are subject to diverse moods, but in whatsoever ways
- they masquerade they are the SAME PERSON all the time. To change
- the figure, the COMPULSION that moves a man--and there is but the
- one--is the necessity of securing the contentment of his own
- spirit. When it stops, the man is dead.
-
- Y.M. That is foolishness. Love--
-
- O.M. Why, love is that impulse, that law, in its most
- uncompromising form. It will squander life and everything else
- on its object. Not PRIMARILY for the object's sake, but for ITS
- OWN. When its object is happy IT is happy--and that is what it
- is unconsciously after.
-
- Y.M. You do not even except the lofty and gracious passion
- of mother-love?
-
- O.M. No, IT is the absolute slave of that law. The mother
- will go naked to clothe her child; she will starve that it may
- have food; suffer torture to save it from pain; die that it may
- live. She takes a living PLEASURE in making these sacrifices.
- SHE DOES IT FOR THAT REWARD--that self-approval, that
- contentment, that peace, that comfort. SHE WOULD DO IT FOR YOUR
- CHILD IF SHE COULD GET THE SAME PAY.
-
- Y.M. This is an infernal philosophy of yours.
-
- O.M. It isn't a philosophy, it is a fact.
-
- Y.M. Of course you must admit that there are some acts which--
-
- O.M. No. There is NO act, large or small, fine or mean,
- which springs from any motive but the one--the necessity of
- appeasing and contenting one's own spirit.
-
- Y.M. The world's philanthropists--
-
- O.M. I honor them, I uncover my head to them--from habit
- and training; and THEY could not know comfort or happiness or
- self-approval if they did not work and spend for the unfortunate.
- It makes THEM happy to see others happy; and so with money and
- labor they buy what they are after--HAPPINESS, SELF-APPROVAL.
- Why don't miners do the same thing? Because they can get a
- thousandfold more happiness by NOT doing it. There is no
- other reason. They follow the law of their make.
-
- Y.M. What do you say of duty for duty's sake?
-
- O.M. That IS DOES NOT EXIST. Duties are not performed for
- duty's SAKE, but because their NEGLECT would make the man
- UNCOMFORTABLE. A man performs but ONE duty--the duty of
- contenting his spirit, the duty of making himself agreeable to
- himself. If he can most satisfyingly perform this sole and only
- duty by HELPING his neighbor, he will do it; if he can most
- satisfyingly perform it by SWINDLING his neighbor, he will do it.
- But he always looks out for Number One--FIRST; the effects upon
- others are a SECONDARY matter. Men pretend to self-sacrifices,
- but this is a thing which, in the ordinary value of the phrase,
- DOES NOT EXIST AND HAS NOT EXISTED. A man often honestly THINKS
- he is sacrificing himself merely and solely for some one else,
- but he is deceived; his bottom impulse is to content a
- requirement of his nature and training, and thus acquire peace
- for his soul.
-
- Y.M. Apparently, then, all men, both good and bad ones,
- devote their lives to contenting their consciences.
-
- O.M. Yes. That is a good enough name for it: Conscience--
- that independent Sovereign, that insolent absolute Monarch inside
- of a man who is the man's Master. There are all kinds of
- consciences, because there are all kinds of men. You satisfy an
- assassin's conscience in one way, a philanthropist's in another,
- a miser's in another, a burglar's in still another. As a GUIDE
- or INCENTIVE to any authoritatively prescribed line of morals or
- conduct (leaving TRAINING out of the account), a man's conscience
- is totally valueless. I know a kind-hearted Kentuckian whose
- self-approval was lacking--whose conscience was troubling him, to
- phrase it with exactness--BECAUSE HE HAD NEGLECTED TO KILL A
- CERTAIN MAN--a man whom he had never seen. The stranger had
- killed this man's friend in a fight, this man's Kentucky training
- made it a duty to kill the stranger for it. He neglected his
- duty--kept dodging it, shirking it, putting it off, and his
- unrelenting conscience kept persecuting him for this conduct. At
- last, to get ease of mind, comfort, self-approval, he hunted up
- the stranger and took his life. It was an immense act of SELF-
- SACRIFICE (as per the usual definition), for he did not want to
- do it, and he never would have done it if he could have bought a
- contented spirit and an unworried mind at smaller cost. But we
- are so made that we will pay ANYTHING for that contentment--even
- another man's life.
-
- Y.M. You spoke a moment ago of TRAINED consciences. You mean
- that we are not BORN with consciences competent to guide us aright?
-
- O.M. If we were, children and savages would know right from wrong,
- and not have to be taught it.
-
- Y.M. But consciences can be TRAINED?
-
- O.M. Yes.
-
- Y.M. Of course by parents, teachers, the pulpit, and books.
-
- O.M. Yes--they do their share; they do what they can.
-
- Y.M. And the rest is done by--
-
- O.M. Oh, a million unnoticed influences--for good or bad:
- influences which work without rest during every waking moment of
- a man's life, from cradle to grave.
-
- Y.M. You have tabulated these?
-
- O.M. Many of them--yes.
-
- Y.M. Will you read me the result?
-
- O.M. Another time, yes. It would take an hour.
-
- Y.M. A conscience can be trained to shun evil and prefer good?
-
- O.M. Yes.
-
- Y.M. But will it for spirit-contenting reasons only?
-
- O.M. It CAN'T be trained to do a thing for any OTHER reason.
- The thing is impossible.
-
- Y.M. There MUST be a genuinely and utterly self-sacrificing
- act recorded in human history somewhere.
-
- O.M. You are young. You have many years before you.
- Search one out.
-
- Y.M. It does seem to me that when a man sees a fellow-being
- struggling in the water and jumps in at the risk of his life to
- save him--
-
- O.M. Wait. Describe the MAN. Describe the FELLOW-BEING.
- State if there is an AUDIENCE present; or if they are ALONE.
-
- Y.M. What have these things to do with the splendid act?
-
- O.M. Very much. Shall we suppose, as a beginning, that the
- two are alone, in a solitary place, at midnight?
-
- Y.M. If you choose.
-
- O.M. And that the fellow-being is the man's daughter?
-
- Y.M. Well, n-no--make it someone else.
-
- O.M. A filthy, drunken ruffian, then?
-
- Y.M. I see. Circumstances alter cases. I suppose that if there
- was no audience to observe the act, the man wouldn't perform it.
-
- O.M. But there is here and there a man who WOULD. People,
- for instance, like the man who lost his life trying to save the
- child from the fire; and the man who gave the needy old woman his
- twenty-five cents and walked home in the storm--there are here
- and there men like that who would do it. And why? Because they
- couldn't BEAR to see a fellow-being struggling in the water and
- not jump in and help. It would give THEM pain. They would save
- the fellow-being on that account. THEY WOULDN'T DO IT OTHERWISE.
- They strictly obey the law which I have been insisting upon. You
- must remember and always distinguish the people who CAN'T BEAR
- things from people who CAN. It will throw light upon a number of
- apparently "self-sacrificing" cases.
-
- Y.M. Oh, dear, it's all so disgusting.
-
- O.M. Yes. And so true.
-
- Y.M. Come--take the good boy who does things he doesn't
- want to do, in order to gratify his mother.
-
- O.M. He does seven-tenths of the act because it gratifies
- HIM to gratify his mother. Throw the bulk of advantage the other
- way and the good boy would not do the act. He MUST obey the iron
- law. None can escape it.
-
- Y.M. Well, take the case of a bad boy who--
-
- O.M. You needn't mention it, it is a waste of time. It is
- no matter about the bad boy's act. Whatever it was, he had a
- spirit-contenting reason for it. Otherwise you have been
- misinformed, and he didn't do it.
-
- Y.M. It is very exasperating. A while ago you said that man's
- conscience is not a born judge of morals and conduct, but has to
- be taught and trained. Now I think a conscience can get drowsy
- and lazy, but I don't think it can go wrong; if you wake it up--
-
-
-
- A Little Story
-
-
- O.M. I will tell you a little story:
-
- Once upon a time an Infidel was guest in the house of a
- Christian widow whose little boy was ill and near to death. The
- Infidel often watched by the bedside and entertained the boy with
- talk, and he used these opportunities to satisfy a strong longing
- in his nature--that desire which is in us all to better other
- people's condition by having them think as we think. He was
- successful. But the dying boy, in his last moments, reproached
- him and said:
-
- "I BELIEVED, AND WAS HAPPY IN IT; YOU HAVE TAKEN MY BELIEF
- AWAY, AND MY COMFORT. NOW I HAVE NOTHING LEFT, AND I DIE
- MISERABLE; FOR THE THINGS WHICH YOU HAVE TOLD ME DO NOT TAKE THE
- PLACE OF THAT WHICH I HAVE LOST."
-
- And the mother, also, reproached the Infidel, and said:
-
- "MY CHILD IS FOREVER LOST, AND MY HEART IS BROKEN. HOW
- COULD YOU DO THIS CRUEL THING? WE HAVE DONE YOU NO HARM, BUT
- ONLY KINDNESS; WE MADE OUR HOUSE YOUR HOME, YOU WERE WELCOME TO
- ALL WE HAD, AND THIS IS OUR REWARD."
-
- The heart of the Infidel was filled with remorse for what he
- had done, and he said:
-
- "IT WAS WRONG--I SEE IT NOW; BUT I WAS ONLY TRYING TO DO HIM
- GOOD. IN MY VIEW HE WAS IN ERROR; IT SEEMED MY DUTY TO TEACH HIM
- THE TRUTH."
-
- Then the mother said:
-
- "I HAD TAUGHT HIM, ALL HIS LITTLE LIFE, WHAT I BELIEVED TO
- BE THE TRUTH, AND IN HIS BELIEVING FAITH BOTH OF US WERE HAPPY.
- NOW HE IS DEAD,--AND LOST; AND I AM MISERABLE. OUR FAITH CAME
- DOWN TO US THROUGH CENTURIES OF BELIEVING ANCESTORS; WHAT RIGHT
- HAD YOU, OR ANY ONE, TO DISTURB IT? WHERE WAS YOUR HONOR, WHERE
- WAS YOUR SHAME?"
-
- Y.M. He was a miscreant, and deserved death!
-
- O.M. He thought so himself, and said so.
-
- Y.M. Ah--you see, HIS CONSCIENCE WAS AWAKENED1!
-
- O.M. Yes, his Self-Disapproval was. It PAINED him to see
- the mother suffer. He was sorry he had done a thing which
- brought HIM pain. It did not occur to him to think of the mother
- when he was misteaching the boy, for he was absorbed in providing
- PLEASURE for himself, then. Providing it by satisfying what he
- believed to be a call of duty.
-
- Y.M. Call it what you please, it is to me a case of
- AWAKENED CONSCIENCE. That awakened conscience could never get
- itself into that species of trouble again. A cure like that is a
- PERMANENT cure.
-
- O.M. Pardon--I had not finished the story. We are
- creatures of OUTSIDE INFLUENCES--we originate NOTHING within.
- Whenever we take a new line of thought and drift into a new line
- of belief and action, the impulse is ALWAYS suggested from the
- OUTSIDE. Remorse so preyed upon the Infidel that it dissolved
- his harshness toward the boy's religion and made him come to
- regard it with tolerance, next with kindness, for the boy's sake
- and the mother's. Finally he found himself examining it. From
- that moment his progress in his new trend was steady and rapid.
- He became a believing Christian. And now his remorse for having
- robbed the dying boy of his faith and his salvation was bitterer
- than ever. It gave him no rest, no peace. He MUST have rest and
- peace--it is the law of nature. There seemed but one way to get
- it; he must devote himself to saving imperiled souls. He became
- a missionary. He landed in a pagan country ill and helpless. A
- native widow took him into her humble home and nursed him back to
- convalescence. Then her young boy was taken hopelessly ill, and
- the grateful missionary helped her tend him. Here was his first
- opportunity to repair a part of the wrong done to the other boy
- by doing a precious service for this one by undermining his
- foolish faith in his false gods. He was successful. But the
- dying boy in his last moments reproached him and said:
-
- "I BELIEVED, AND WAS HAPPY IN IT; YOU HAVE TAKEN MY BELIEF
- AWAY, AND MY COMFORT. NOW I HAVE NOTHING LEFT, AND I DIE
- MISERABLE; FOR THE THINGS WHICH YOU HAVE TOLD ME DO NOT TAKE THE
- PLACE OF THAT WHICH I HAVE LOST."
-
- And the mother, also, reproached the missionary, and said:
-
- "MY CHILD IS FOREVER LOST, AND MY HEART IS BROKEN. HOW
- COULD YOU DO THIS CRUEL THING? WE HAD DONE YOU NO HARM, BUT ONLY
- KINDNESS; WE MADE OUR HOUSE YOUR HOME, YOU WERE WELCOME TO ALL WE
- HAD, AND THIS IS OUR REWARD."
-
- The heart of the missionary was filled with remorse for what
- he had done, and he said:
-
- "IT WAS WRONG--I SEE IT NOW; BUT I WAS ONLY TRYING TO DO HIM
- GOOD. IN MY VIEW HE WAS IN ERROR; IT SEEMED MY DUTY TO TEACH HIM
- THE TRUTH."
-
- Then the mother said:
-
- "I HAD TAUGHT HIM, ALL HIS LITTLE LIFE, WHAT I BELIEVED TO
- BE THE TRUTH, AND IN HIS BELIEVING FAITH BOTH OF US WERE HAPPY.
- NOW HE IS DEAD--AND LOST; AND I AM MISERABLE. OUR FAITH CAME
- DOWN TO US THROUGH CENTURIES OF BELIEVING ANCESTORS; WHAT RIGHT
- HAD YOU, OR ANY ONE, TO DISTURB IT? WHERE WAS YOUR HONOR, WHERE
- WAS YOUR SHAME?"
-
- The missionary's anguish of remorse and sense of treachery
- were as bitter and persecuting and unappeasable, now, as they had
- been in the former case. The story is finished. What is your
- comment?
-
- Y.M. The man's conscience is a fool! It was morbid. It
- didn't know right from wrong.
-
- O.M. I am not sorry to hear you say that. If you grant
- that ONE man's conscience doesn't know right from wrong, it is an
- admission that there are others like it. This single admission
- pulls down the whole doctrine of infallibility of judgment in
- consciences. Meantime there is one thing which I ask you to
- notice.
-
- Y.M. What is that?
-
- O.M. That in both cases the man's ACT gave him no spiritual
- discomfort, and that he was quite satisfied with it and got
- pleasure out of it. But afterward when it resulted in PAIN to
- HIM, he was sorry. Sorry it had inflicted pain upon the others,
- BUT FOR NO REASON UNDER THE SUN EXCEPT THAT THEIR PAIN GAVE HIM
- PAIN. Our consciences take NO notice of pain inflicted upon
- others until it reaches a point where it gives pain to US. In
- ALL cases without exception we are absolutely indifferent to
- another person's pain until his sufferings make us uncomfortable.
- Many an infidel would not have been troubled by that Christian
- mother's distress. Don't you believe that?
-
- Y.M. Yes. You might almost say it of the AVERAGE infidel,
- I think.
-
- O.M. And many a missionary, sternly fortified by his sense
- of duty, would not have been troubled by the pagan mother's
- distress--Jesuit missionaries in Canada in the early French
- times, for instance; see episodes quoted by Parkman.
-
- Y.M. Well, let us adjourn. Where have we arrived?
-
- O.M. At this. That we (mankind) have ticketed ourselves
- with a number of qualities to which we have given misleading
- names. Love, Hate, Charity, Compassion, Avarice, Benevolence,
- and so on. I mean we attach misleading MEANINGS to the names.
- They are all forms of self-contentment, self-gratification, but
- the names so disguise them that they distract our attention from
- the fact. Also we have smuggled a word into the dictionary which
- ought not to be there at all--Self-Sacrifice. It describes a
- thing which does not exist. But worst of all, we ignore and
- never mention the Sole Impulse which dictates and compels a man's
- every act: the imperious necessity of securing his own approval,
- in every emergency and at all costs. To it we owe all that we
- are. It is our breath, our heart, our blood. It is our only
- spur, our whip, our goad, our only impelling power; we have no
- other. Without it we should be mere inert images, corpses; no
- one would do anything, there would be no progress, the world
- would stand still. We ought to stand reverently uncovered when
- the name of that stupendous power is uttered.
-
- Y.M. I am not convinced.
-
- O.M. You will be when you think.
-
-
-
- III
-
- Instances in Point
-
-
- Old Man. Have you given thought to the Gospel of Self-
- Approval since we talked?
-
- Young Man. I have.
-
- O.M. It was I that moved you to it. That is to say an
- OUTSIDE INFLUENCE moved you to it--not one that originated in
- your head. Will you try to keep that in mind and not forget it?
-
- Y.M. Yes. Why?
-
- O.M. Because by and by in one of our talks, I wish to
- further impress upon you that neither you, nor I, nor any man
- ever originates a thought in his own head. THE UTTERER OF A
- THOUGHT ALWAYS UTTERS A SECOND-HAND ONE.
-
- Y.M. Oh, now--
-
- O.M. Wait. Reserve your remark till we get to that part of
- our discussion--tomorrow or next day, say. Now, then, have you
- been considering the proposition that no act is ever born of any
- but a self-contenting impulse--(primarily). You have sought.
- What have you found?
-
- Y.M. I have not been very fortunate. I have examined many
- fine and apparently self-sacrificing deeds in romances and
- biographies, but--
-
- O.M. Under searching analysis the ostensible self-sacrifice
- disappeared? It naturally would.
-
- Y.M. But here in this novel is one which seems to promise.
- In the Adirondack woods is a wage-earner and lay preacher in the
- lumber-camps who is of noble character and deeply religious. An
- earnest and practical laborer in the New York slums comes up
- there on vacation--he is leader of a section of the University
- Settlement. Holme, the lumberman, is fired with a desire to
- throw away his excellent worldly prospects and go down and save
- souls on the East Side. He counts it happiness to make this
- sacrifice for the glory of God and for the cause of Christ. He
- resigns his place, makes the sacrifice cheerfully, and goes to
- the East Side and preaches Christ and Him crucified every day and
- every night to little groups of half-civilized foreign paupers
- who scoff at him. But he rejoices in the scoffings, since he is
- suffering them in the great cause of Christ. You have so filled
- my mind with suspicions that I was constantly expecting to find a
- hidden questionable impulse back of all this, but I am thankful
- to say I have failed. This man saw his duty, and for DUTY'S SAKE
- he sacrificed self and assumed the burden it imposed.
-
- O.M. Is that as far as you have read?
-
- Y.M. Yes.
-
- O.M. Let us read further, presently. Meantime, in
- sacrificing himself--NOT for the glory of God, PRIMARILY, as HE
- imagined, but FIRST to content that exacting and inflexible
- master within him--DID HE SACRIFICE ANYBODY ELSE?
-
- Y.M. How do you mean?
-
- O.M. He relinquished a lucrative post and got mere food and
- lodging in place of it. Had he dependents?
-
- Y.M. Well--yes.
-
- O.M. In what way and to what extend did his self-sacrifice
- affect THEM?
-
- Y.M. He was the support of a superannuated father. He had
- a young sister with a remarkable voice--he was giving her a
- musical education, so that her longing to be self-supporting
- might be gratified. He was furnishing the money to put a young
- brother through a polytechnic school and satisfy his desire to
- become a civil engineer.
-
- O.M. The old father's comforts were now curtailed?
-
- Y.M. Quite seriously. Yes.
-
- O.M. The sister's music-lessens had to stop?
-
- Y.M. Yes.
-
- O.M. The young brother's education--well, an extinguishing
- blight fell upon that happy dream, and he had to go to sawing
- wood to support the old father, or something like that?
-
- Y.M. It is about what happened. Yes.
-
- O.M. What a handsome job of self-sacrificing he did do! It
- seems to me that he sacrificed everybody EXCEPT himself. Haven't
- I told you that no man EVER sacrifices himself; that there is no
- instance of it upon record anywhere; and that when a man's
- Interior Monarch requires a thing of its slave for either its
- MOMENTARY or its PERMANENT contentment, that thing must and will
- be furnished and that command obeyed, no matter who may stand in
- the way and suffer disaster by it? That man RUINED HIS FAMILY to
- please and content his Interior Monarch--
-
- Y.M. And help Christ's cause.
-
- O.M. Yes--SECONDLY. Not firstly. HE thought it was firstly.
-
- Y.M. Very well, have it so, if you will. But it could be
- that he argued that if he saved a hundred souls in New York--
-
- O.M. The sacrifice of the FAMILY would be justified by that
- great profit upon the--the--what shall we call it?
-
- Y.M. Investment?
-
- O.M. Hardly. How would SPECULATION do? How would GAMBLE
- do? Not a solitary soul-capture was sure. He played for a
- possible thirty-three-hundred-per-cent profit. It was GAMBLING--
- with his family for "chips." However let us see how the game
- came out. Maybe we can get on the track of the secret original
- impulse, the REAL impulse, that moved him to so nobly self-
- sacrifice his family in the Savior's cause under the superstition
- that he was sacrificing himself. I will read a chapter or so. .
- . . Here we have it! It was bound to expose itself sooner or
- later. He preached to the East-Side rabble a season, then went
- back to his old dull, obscure life in the lumber-camps "HURT TO
- THE HEART, HIS PRIDE HUMBLED." Why? Were not his efforts
- acceptable to the Savior, for Whom alone they were made? Dear
- me, that detail is LOST SIGHT OF, is not even referred to, the
- fact that it started out as a motive is entirely forgotten! Then
- what is the trouble? The authoress quite innocently and
- unconsciously gives the whole business away. The trouble was
- this: this man merely PREACHED to the poor; that is not the
- University Settlement's way; it deals in larger and better things
- than that, and it did not enthuse over that crude Salvation-Army
- eloquence. It was courteous to Holme--but cool. It did not pet
- him, did not take him to its bosom. "PERISHED WERE ALL HIS
- DREAMS OF DISTINCTION, THE PRAISE AND GRATEFUL APPROVAL--" Of
- whom? The Savior? No; the Savior is not mentioned. Of whom,
- then? Of "His FELLOW-WORKERS." Why did he want that? Because
- the Master inside of him wanted it, and would not be content
- without it. That emphasized sentence quoted above, reveals the
- secret we have been seeking, the original impulse, the REAL
- impulse, which moved the obscure and unappreciated Adirondack
- lumberman to sacrifice his family and go on that crusade to the
- East Side--which said original impulse was this, to wit: without
- knowing it HE WENT THERE TO SHOW A NEGLECTED WORLD THE LARGE
- TALENT THAT WAS IN HIM, AND RISE TO DISTINCTION. As I have
- warned you before, NO act springs from any but the one law, the
- one motive. But I pray you, do not accept this law upon my say-
- so; but diligently examine for yourself. Whenever you read of a
- self-sacrificing act or hear of one, or of a duty done for DUTY'S
- SAKE, take it to pieces and look for the REAL motive. It is
- always there.
-
- Y.M. I do it every day. I cannot help it, now that I have
- gotten started upon the degrading and exasperating quest. For it
- is hatefully interesting!--in fact, fascinating is the word. As
- soon as I come across a golden deed in a book I have to stop and
- take it apart and examine it, I cannot help myself.
-
- O.M. Have you ever found one that defeated the rule?
-
- Y.M. No--at least, not yet. But take the case of servant-
- tipping in Europe. You pay the HOTEL for service; you owe the
- servants NOTHING, yet you pay them besides. Doesn't that defeat it?
-
- O.M. In what way?
-
- Y.M. You are not OBLIGED to do it, therefore its source is
- compassion for their ill-paid condition, and--
-
- O.M. Has that custom ever vexed you, annoyed you, irritated you?
-
- Y.M. Well, yes.
-
- O.M. Still you succumbed to it?
-
- Y.M. Of course.
-
- O.M. Why of course?
-
- Y.M. Well, custom is law, in a way, and laws must be
- submitted to--everybody recognizes it as a DUTY.
-
- O.M. Then you pay for the irritating tax for DUTY'S sake?
-
- Y.M. I suppose it amounts to that.
-
- O.M. Then the impulse which moves you to submit to the tax
- is not ALL compassion, charity, benevolence?
-
- Y.M. Well--perhaps not.
-
- O.M. Is ANY of it?
-
- Y.M. I--perhaps I was too hasty in locating its source.
-
- O.M. Perhaps so. In case you ignored the custom would you
- get prompt and effective service from the servants?
-
- Y.M. Oh, hear yourself talk! Those European servants?
- Why, you wouldn't get any of all, to speak of.
-
- O.M. Couldn't THAT work as an impulse to move you to pay
- the tax?
-
- Y.M. I am not denying it.
-
- O.M. Apparently, then, it is a case of for-duty's-sake with
- a little self-interest added?
-
- Y.M. Yes, it has the look of it. But here is a point:
- we pay that tax knowing it to be unjust and an extortion; yet we
- go away with a pain at the heart if we think we have been stingy
- with the poor fellows; and we heartily wish we were back again,
- so that we could do the right thing, and MORE than the right
- thing, the GENEROUS thing. I think it will be difficult for you
- to find any thought of self in that impulse.
-
- O.M. I wonder why you should think so. When you find
- service charged in the HOTEL bill does it annoy you?
-
- Y.M. No.
-
- O.M. Do you ever complain of the amount of it?
-
- Y.M. No, it would not occur to me.
-
- O.M. The EXPENSE, then, is not the annoying detail. It is
- a fixed charge, and you pay it cheerfully, you pay it without a
- murmur. When you came to pay the servants, how would you like it
- if each of the men and maids had a fixed charge?
-
- Y.M. Like it? I should rejoice!
-
- O.M. Even if the fixed tax were a shade MORE than you had
- been in the habit of paying in the form of tips?
-
- Y.M. Indeed, yes!
-
- O.M. Very well, then. As I understand it, it isn't really
- compassion nor yet duty that moves you to pay the tax, and it
- isn't the AMOUNT of the tax that annoys you. Yet SOMETHING
- annoys you. What is it?
-
- Y.M. Well, the trouble is, you never know WHAT to pay, the
- tax varies so, all over Europe.
-
- O.M. So you have to guess?
-
- Y.M. There is no other way. So you go on thinking and
- thinking, and calculating and guessing, and consulting with other
- people and getting their views; and it spoils your sleep nights,
- and makes you distraught in the daytime, and while you are
- pretending to look at the sights you are only guessing and
- guessing and guessing all the time, and being worried and
- miserable.
-
- O.M. And all about a debt which you don't owe and don't
- have to pay unless you want to! Strange. What is the purpose of
- the guessing?
-
- Y.M. To guess out what is right to give them, and not be
- unfair to any of them.
-
- O.M. It has quite a noble look--taking so much pains and using up
- so much valuable time in order to be just and fair to a poor servant
- to whom you owe nothing, but who needs money and is ill paid.
-
- Y.M. I think, myself, that if there is any ungracious
- motive back of it it will be hard to find.
-
- O.M. How do you know when you have not paid a servant fairly?
-
- Y.M. Why, he is silent; does not thank you. Sometimes he
- gives you a look that makes you ashamed. You are too proud to
- rectify your mistake there, with people looking, but afterward
- you keep on wishing and wishing you HAD done it. My, the shame
- and the pain of it! Sometimes you see, by the signs, that you
- have it JUST RIGHT, and you go away mightily satisfied.
- Sometimes the man is so effusively thankful that you know you
- have given him a good deal MORE than was necessary.
-
- O.M. NECESSARY? Necessary for what?
-
- Y.M. To content him.
-
- O.M. How do you feel THEN?
-
- Y.M. Repentant.
-
- O.M. It is my belief that you have NOT been concerning
- yourself in guessing out his just dues, but only in ciphering out
- what would CONTENT him. And I think you have a self-deluding
- reason for that.
-
- Y.M. What was it?
-
- O.M. If you fell short of what he was expecting and
- wanting, you would get a look which would SHAME YOU BEFORE FOLK.
- That would give you PAIN. YOU--for you are only working for
- yourself, not HIM. If you gave him too much you would be ASHAMED
- OF YOURSELF for it, and that would give YOU pain--another case of
- thinking of YOURSELF, protecting yourself, SAVING YOURSELF FROM
- DISCOMFORT. You never think of the servant once--except to guess
- out how to get HIS APPROVAL. If you get that, you get your OWN
- approval, and that is the sole and only thing you are after. The
- Master inside of you is then satisfied, contented, comfortable;
- there was NO OTHER thing at stake, as a matter of FIRST interest,
- anywhere in the transaction.
-
-
-
- Further Instances
-
- Y.M. Well, to think of it; Self-Sacrifice for others, the
- grandest thing in man, ruled out! non-existent!
-
- O.M. Are you accusing me of saying that?
-
- Y.M. Why, certainly.
-
- O.M. I haven't said it.
-
- Y.M. What did you say, then?
-
- O.M. That no man has ever sacrificed himself in the common
- meaning of that phrase--which is, self-sacrifice for another
- ALONE. Men make daily sacrifices for others, but it is for their
- own sake FIRST. The act must content their own spirit FIRST.
- The other beneficiaries come second.
-
- Y.M. And the same with duty for duty's sake?
-
- O.M. Yes. No man performs a duty for mere duty's sake; the act
- must content his spirit FIRST. He must feel better for DOING the
- duty than he would for shirking it. Otherwise he will not do it.
-
- Y.M. Take the case of the BERKELEY CASTLE.
-
- O.M. It was a noble duty, greatly performed. Take it to
- pieces and examine it, if you like.
-
- Y.M. A British troop-ship crowded with soldiers and their
- wives and children. She struck a rock and began to sink. There
- was room in the boats for the women and children only. The
- colonel lined up his regiment on the deck and said "it is our
- duty to die, that they may be saved." There was no murmur, no
- protest. The boats carried away the women and children. When
- the death-moment was come, the colonel and his officers took
- their several posts, the men stood at shoulder-arms, and so, as
- on dress-parade, with their flag flying and the drums beating,
- they went down, a sacrifice to duty for duty's sake. Can you
- view it as other than that?
-
- O.M. It was something as fine as that, as exalted as that.
- Could you have remained in those ranks and gone down to your
- death in that unflinching way?
-
- Y.M. Could I? No, I could not.
-
- O.M. Think. Imagine yourself there, with that watery doom
- creeping higher and higher around you.
-
- Y.M. I can imagine it. I feel all the horror of it. I could
- not have endured it, I could not have remained in my place.
- I know it.
-
- O.M. Why?
-
- Y.M. There is no why about it: I know myself, and I know I
- couldn't DO it.
-
- O.M. But it would be your DUTY to do it.
-
- Y.M. Yes, I know--but I couldn't.
-
- O.M. It was more than thousand men, yet not one of them
- flinched. Some of them must have been born with your
- temperament; if they could do that great duty for duty's SAKE,
- why not you? Don't you know that you could go out and gather
- together a thousand clerks and mechanics and put them on that
- deck and ask them to die for duty's sake, and not two dozen of
- them would stay in the ranks to the end?
-
- Y.M. Yes, I know that.
-
- O.M. But your TRAIN them, and put them through a campaign
- or two; then they would be soldiers; soldiers, with a soldier's
- pride, a soldier's self-respect, a soldier's ideals. They would
- have to content a SOLDIER'S spirit then, not a clerk's, not a
- mechanic's. They could not content that spirit by shirking a
- soldier's duty, could they?
-
- Y.M. I suppose not.
-
- O.M. Then they would do the duty not for the DUTY'S sake,
- but for their OWN sake--primarily. The DUTY was JUST THE SAME,
- and just as imperative, when they were clerks, mechanics, raw
- recruits, but they wouldn't perform it for that. As clerks and
- mechanics they had other ideals, another spirit to satisfy, and
- they satisfied it. They HAD to; it is the law. TRAINING is
- potent. Training toward higher and higher, and ever higher
- ideals is worth any man's thought and labor and diligence.
-
- Y.M. Consider the man who stands by his duty and goes to
- the stake rather than be recreant to it.
-
- O.M. It is his make and his training. He has to content
- the spirit that is in him, though it cost him his life. Another
- man, just as sincerely religious, but of different temperament,
- will fail of that duty, though recognizing it as a duty, and
- grieving to be unequal to it: but he must content the spirit
- that is in him--he cannot help it. He could not perform that
- duty for duty's SAKE, for that would not content his spirit, and
- the contenting of his spirit must be looked to FIRST. It takes
- precedence of all other duties.
-
- Y.M. Take the case of a clergyman of stainless private
- morals who votes for a thief for public office, on his own
- party's ticket, and against an honest man on the other ticket.
-
- O.M. He has to content his spirit. He has no public
- morals; he has no private ones, where his party's prosperity is
- at stake. He will always be true to his make and training.
-
-
-
- IV
-
- Training
-
- Young Man. You keep using that word--training. By it do
- you particularly mean--
-
- Old Man. Study, instruction, lectures, sermons? That is a
- part of it--but not a large part. I mean ALL the outside
- influences. There are a million of them. From the cradle to the
- grave, during all his waking hours, the human being is under
- training. In the very first rank of his trainers stands
- ASSOCIATION. It is his human environment which influences his
- mind and his feelings, furnishes him his ideals, and sets him on
- his road and keeps him in it. If he leave that road he will find
- himself shunned by the people whom he most loves and esteems, and
- whose approval he most values. He is a chameleon; by the law of
- his nature he takes the color of his place of resort. The
- influences about him create his preferences, his aversions, his
- politics, his tastes, his morals, his religion. He creates none
- of these things for himself. He THINKS he does, but that is
- because he has not examined into the matter. You have seen
- Presbyterians?
-
- Y.M. Many.
-
- O.M. How did they happen to be Presbyterians and not
- Congregationalists? And why were the Congregationalists not
- Baptists, and the Baptists Roman Catholics, and the Roman
- Catholics Buddhists, and the Buddhists Quakers, and the Quakers
- Episcopalians, and the Episcopalians Millerites and the
- Millerites Hindus, and the Hindus Atheists, and the Atheists
- Spiritualists, and the Spiritualists Agnostics, and the Agnostics
- Methodists, and the Methodists Confucians, and the Confucians
- Unitarians, and the Unitarians Mohammedans, and the Mohammedans
- Salvation Warriors, and the Salvation Warriors Zoroastrians, and
- the Zoroastrians Christian Scientists, and the Christian
- Scientists Mormons--and so on?
-
- Y.M. You may answer your question yourself.
-
- O.M. That list of sects is not a record of STUDIES,
- searchings, seekings after light; it mainly (and sarcastically)
- indicates what ASSOCIATION can do. If you know a man's
- nationality you can come within a split hair of guessing the
- complexion of his religion: English--Protestant; American--
- ditto; Spaniard, Frenchman, Irishman, Italian, South American--
- Roman Catholic; Russian--Greek Catholic; Turk--Mohammedan; and so
- on. And when you know the man's religious complexion, you know
- what sort of religious books he reads when he wants some more
- light, and what sort of books he avoids, lest by accident he get
- more light than he wants. In America if you know which party-
- collar a voter wears, you know what his associations are, and how
- he came by his politics, and which breed of newspaper he reads to
- get light, and which breed he diligently avoids, and which breed
- of mass-meetings he attends in order to broaden his political
- knowledge, and which breed of mass-meetings he doesn't attend,
- except to refute its doctrines with brickbats. We are always
- hearing of people who are around SEEKING AFTER TRUTH. I have
- never seen a (permanent) specimen. I think he had never lived.
- But I have seen several entirely sincere people who THOUGHT they
- were (permanent) Seekers after Truth. They sought diligently,
- persistently, carefully, cautiously, profoundly, with perfect
- honesty and nicely adjusted judgment--until they believed that
- without doubt or question they had found the Truth. THAT WAS THE
- END OF THE SEARCH. The man spent the rest of his life hunting up
- shingles wherewith to protect his Truth from the weather. If he
- was seeking after political Truth he found it in one or another
- of the hundred political gospels which govern men in the earth;
- if he was seeking after the Only True Religion he found it in one
- or another of the three thousand that are on the market. In any
- case, when he found the Truth HE SOUGHT NO FURTHER; but from that
- day forth, with his soldering-iron in one hand and his bludgeon
- in the other he tinkered its leaks and reasoned with objectors.
- There have been innumerable Temporary Seekers of Truth--have you
- ever heard of a permanent one? In the very nature of man such a
- person is impossible. However, to drop back to the text--
- training: all training is one from or another of OUTSIDE
- INFLUENCE, and ASSOCIATION is the largest part of it. A man is
- never anything but what his outside influences have made him.
- They train him downward or they train him upward--but they TRAIN
- him; they are at work upon him all the time.
-
- Y.M. Then if he happen by the accidents of life to be
- evilly placed there is no help for him, according to your
- notions--he must train downward.
-
- O.M. No help for him? No help for this chameleon? It is a
- mistake. It is in his chameleonship that his greatest good
- fortune lies. He has only to change his habitat--his
- ASSOCIATIONS. But the impulse to do it must come from the
- OUTSIDE--he cannot originate it himself, with that purpose in
- view. Sometimes a very small and accidental thing can furnish
- him the initiatory impulse and start him on a new road, with a
- new idea. The chance remark of a sweetheart, "I hear that you
- are a coward," may water a seed that shall sprout and bloom and
- flourish, and ended in producing a surprising fruitage--in the
- fields of war. The history of man is full of such accidents.
- The accident of a broken leg brought a profane and ribald soldier
- under religious influences and furnished him a new ideal. From
- that accident sprang the Order of the Jesuits, and it has been
- shaking thrones, changing policies, and doing other tremendous
- work for two hundred years--and will go on. The chance reading
- of a book or of a paragraph in a newspaper can start a man on a
- new track and make him renounce his old associations and seek new
- ones that are IN SYMPATHY WITH HIS NEW IDEAL: and the result,
- for that man, can be an entire change of his way of life.
-
- Y.M. Are you hinting at a scheme of procedure?
-
- O.M. Not a new one--an old one. One as mankind.
-
- Y.M. What is it?
-
- O.M. Merely the laying of traps for people. Traps baited
- with INITIATORY IMPULSES TOWARD HIGH IDEALS. It is what the
- tract-distributor does. It is what the missionary does. It is
- what governments ought to do.
-
- Y.M. Don't they?
-
- O.M. In one way they do, in another they don't. They
- separate the smallpox patients from the healthy people, but in
- dealing with crime they put the healthy into the pest-house along
- with the sick. That is to say, they put the beginners in with
- the confirmed criminals. This would be well if man were
- naturally inclined to good, but he isn't, and so ASSOCIATION
- makes the beginners worse than they were when they went into
- captivity. It is putting a very severe punishment upon the
- comparatively innocent at times. They hang a man--which is a
- trifling punishment; this breaks the hearts of his family--which
- is a heavy one. They comfortably jail and feed a wife-beater,
- and leave his innocent wife and family to starve.
-
- Y.M. Do you believe in the doctrine that man is equipped
- with an intuitive perception of good and evil?
-
- O.M. Adam hadn't it.
-
- Y.M. But has man acquired it since?
-
- O.M. No. I think he has no intuitions of any kind. He
- gets ALL his ideas, all his impressions, from the outside. I
- keep repeating this, in the hope that I may impress it upon you
- that you will be interested to observe and examine for yourself
- and see whether it is true or false.
-
- Y.M. Where did you get your own aggravating notions?
-
- O.M. From the OUTSIDE. I did not invent them. They are
- gathered from a thousand unknown sources. Mainly UNCONSCIOUSLY
- gathered.
-
- Y.M. Don't you believe that God could make an inherently
- honest man?
-
- O.M. Yes, I know He could. I also know that He never did
- make one.
-
- Y.M. A wiser observer than you has recorded the fact that
- "an honest man's the noblest work of God."
-
- O.M. He didn't record a fact, he recorded a falsity. It is windy,
- and sounds well, but it is not true. God makes a man with honest
- and dishonest POSSIBILITIES in him and stops there. The man's
- ASSOCIATIONS develop the possibilities--the one set or the other.
- The result is accordingly an honest man or a dishonest one.
-
- Y.M. And the honest one is not entitled to--
-
- O.M. Praise? No. How often must I tell you that? HE is
- not the architect of his honesty.
-
- Y.M. Now then, I will ask you where there is any sense in
- training people to lead virtuous lives. What is gained by it?
-
- O.M. The man himself gets large advantages out of it, and
- that is the main thing--to HIM. He is not a peril to his
- neighbors, he is not a damage to them--and so THEY get an
- advantage out of his virtues. That is the main thing to THEM.
- It can make this life comparatively comfortable to the parties
- concerned; the NEGLECT of this training can make this life a
- constant peril and distress to the parties concerned.
-
- Y.M. You have said that training is everything; that
- training is the man HIMSELF, for it makes him what he is.
-
- O.M. I said training and ANOTHER thing. Let that other
- thing pass, for the moment. What were you going to say?
-
- Y.M. We have an old servant. She has been with us twenty-
- two years. Her service used to be faultless, but now she has
- become very forgetful. We are all fond of her; we all recognize
- that she cannot help the infirmity which age has brought her; the
- rest of the family do not scold her for her remissnesses, but at
- times I do--I can't seem to control myself. Don't I try? I do
- try. Now, then, when I was ready to dress, this morning, no
- clean clothes had been put out. I lost my temper; I lose it
- easiest and quickest in the early morning. I rang; and
- immediately began to warn myself not to show temper, and to be
- careful and speak gently. I safe-guarded myself most carefully.
- I even chose the very word I would use: "You've forgotten the
- clean clothes, Jane." When she appeared in the door I opened my
- mouth to say that phrase--and out of it, moved by an instant
- surge of passion which I was not expecting and hadn't time to put
- under control, came the hot rebuke, "You've forgotten them
- again!" You say a man always does the thing which will best
- please his Interior Master. Whence came the impulse to make
- careful preparation to save the girl the humiliation of a rebuke?
- Did that come from the Master, who is always primarily concerned
- about HIMSELF?
-
- O.M. Unquestionably. There is no other source for any
- impulse. SECONDARILY you made preparation to save the girl, but
- PRIMARILY its object was to save yourself, by contenting the
- Master.
-
- Y.M. How do you mean?
-
- O.M. Has any member of the family ever implored you to
- watch your temper and not fly out at the girl?
-
- Y.M. Yes. My mother.
-
- O.M. You love her?
-
- Y.M. Oh, more than that!
-
- O.M. You would always do anything in your power to please her?
-
- Y.M. It is a delight to me to do anything to please her!
-
- O.M. Why? YOU WOULD DO IT FOR PAY, SOLELY--for PROFIT.
- What profit would you expect and certainly receive from
- the investment?
-
- Y.M. Personally? None. To please HER is enough.
-
- O.M. It appears, then, that your object, primarily, WASN'T
- to save the girl a humiliation, but to PLEASE YOUR MOTHER. It
- also appears that to please your mother gives YOU a strong
- pleasure. Is not that the profit which you get out of the
- investment? Isn't that the REAL profits and FIRST profit?
-
- Y.M. Oh, well? Go on.
-
- O.M. In ALL transactions, the Interior Master looks to it
- that YOU GET THE FIRST PROFIT. Otherwise there is no
- transaction.
-
- Y.M. Well, then, if I was so anxious to get that profit and
- so intent upon it, why did I threw it away by losing my temper?
-
- O.M. In order to get ANOTHER profit which suddenly
- superseded it in value.
-
- Y.M. Where was it?
-
- O.M. Ambushed behind your born temperament, and waiting for
- a chance. Your native warm temper suddenly jumped to the front,
- and FOR THE MOMENT its influence was more powerful than your
- mother's, and abolished it. In that instance you were eager to
- flash out a hot rebuke and enjoy it. You did enjoy it, didn't you?
-
- Y.M. For--for a quarter of a second. Yes--I did.
-
- O.M. Very well, it is as I have said: the thing which will
- give you the MOST pleasure, the most satisfaction, in any moment
- or FRACTION of a moment, is the thing you will always do. You
- must content the Master's LATEST whim, whatever it may be.
-
- Y.M. But when the tears came into the old servant's eyes I
- could have cut my hand off for what I had done.
-
- O.M. Right. You had humiliated YOURSELF, you see, you had
- given yourself PAIN. Nothing is of FIRST importance to a man
- except results which damage HIM or profit him--all the rest is
- SECONDARY. Your Master was displeased with you, although you had
- obeyed him. He required a prompt REPENTANCE; you obeyed again;
- you HAD to--there is never any escape from his commands. He is a
- hard master and fickle; he changes his mind in the fraction of a
- second, but you must be ready to obey, and you will obey, ALWAYS.
- If he requires repentance, you content him, you will always
- furnish it. He must be nursed, petted, coddled, and kept
- contented, let the terms be what they may.
-
- Y.M. Training! Oh, what's the use of it? Didn't I, and
- didn't my mother try to train me up to where I would no longer
- fly out at that girl?
-
- O.M. Have you never managed to keep back a scolding?
-
- Y.M. Oh, certainly--many times.
-
- O.M. More times this year than last?
-
- Y.M. Yes, a good many more.
-
- O.M. More times last year than the year before?
-
- Y.M. Yes.
-
- O.M. There is a large improvement, then, in the two years?
-
- Y.M. Yes, undoubtedly.
-
- O.M. Then your question is answered. You see there IS use in
- training. Keep on. Keeping faithfully on. You are doing well.
-
- Y.M. Will my reform reach perfection?
-
- O.M. It will. UP to YOUR limit.
-
- Y.M. My limit? What do you mean by that?
-
- O.M. You remember that you said that I said training was
- EVERYTHING. I corrected you, and said "training and ANOTHER
- thing." That other thing is TEMPERAMENT--that is, the
- disposition you were born with. YOU CAN'T ERADICATE YOUR
- DISPOSITION NOR ANY RAG OF IT--you can only put a pressure on it
- and keep it down and quiet. You have a warm temper?
-
- Y.M. Yes.
-
- O.M. You will never get rid of it; but by watching it you
- can keep it down nearly all the time. ITS PRESENCE IS YOUR
- LIMIT. Your reform will never quite reach perfection, for your
- temper will beat you now and then, but you come near enough. You
- have made valuable progress and can make more. There IS use in
- training. Immense use. Presently you will reach a new stage of
- development, then your progress will be easier; will proceed on a
- simpler basis, anyway.
-
- Y.M. Explain.
-
- O.M. You keep back your scoldings now, to please YOURSELF
- by pleasing your MOTHER; presently the mere triumphing over your
- temper will delight your vanity and confer a more delicious
- pleasure and satisfaction upon you than even the approbation of
- your MOTHER confers upon you now. You will then labor for
- yourself directly and at FIRST HAND, not by the roundabout way
- through your mother. It simplifies the matter, and it also
- strengthens the impulse.
-
- Y.M. Ah, dear! But I sha'n't ever reach the point where I
- will spare the girl for HER sake PRIMARILY, not mine?
-
- O.M. Why--yes. In heaven.
-
- Y.M. (AFTER A REFLECTIVE PAUSE) Temperament. Well, I see
- one must allow for temperament. It is a large factor, sure
- enough. My mother is thoughtful, and not hot-tempered. When I
- was dressed I went to her room; she was not there; I called, she
- answered from the bathroom. I heard the water running. I
- inquired. She answered, without temper, that Jane had forgotten
- her bath, and she was preparing it herself. I offered to ring,
- but she said, "No, don't do that; it would only distress her to
- be confronted with her lapse, and would be a rebuke; she doesn't
- deserve that--she is not to blame for the tricks her memory
- serves her." I say--has my mother an Interior Master?--and where
- was he?
-
- O.M. He was there. There, and looking out for his own
- peace and pleasure and contentment. The girl's distress would
- have pained YOUR MOTHER. Otherwise the girl would have been rung
- up, distress and all. I know women who would have gotten a No. 1
- PLEASURE out of ringing Jane up--and so they would infallibly
- have pushed the button and obeyed the law of their make and
- training, which are the servants of their Interior Masters. It
- is quite likely that a part of your mother's forbearance came
- from training. The GOOD kind of training--whose best and highest
- function is to see to it that every time it confers a
- satisfaction upon its pupil a benefit shall fall at second hand
- upon others.
-
- Y.M. If you were going to condense into an admonition your
- plan for the general betterment of the race's condition, how
- would you word it?
-
-
-
- Admonition
-
- O.M. Diligently train your ideals UPWARD and STILL UPWARD
- toward a summit where you will find your chiefest pleasure in
- conduct which, while contenting you, will be sure to confer
- benefits upon your neighbor and the community.
-
- Y.M. Is that a new gospel?
-
- O.M. No.
-
- Y.M. It has been taught before?
-
- O.M. For ten thousand years.
-
- Y.M. By whom?
-
- O.M. All the great religions--all the great gospels.
-
- Y.M. Then there is nothing new about it?
-
- O.M. Oh yes, there is. It is candidly stated, this time.
- That has not been done before.
-
- Y.M. How do you mean?
-
- O.M. Haven't I put YOU FIRST, and your neighbor and the
- community AFTERWARD?
-
- Y.M. Well, yes, that is a difference, it is true.
-
- O.M. The difference between straight speaking and crooked;
- the difference between frankness and shuffling.
-
- Y.M. Explain.
-
- O.M. The others offer your a hundred bribes to be good,
- thus conceding that the Master inside of you must be conciliated
- and contented first, and that you will do nothing at FIRST HAND
- but for his sake; then they turn square around and require you to
- do good for OTHER'S sake CHIEFLY; and to do your duty for duty's
- SAKE, chiefly; and to do acts of SELF-SACRIFICE. Thus at the
- outset we all stand upon the same ground--recognition of the
- supreme and absolute Monarch that resides in man, and we all
- grovel before him and appeal to him; then those others dodge and
- shuffle, and face around and unfrankly and inconsistently and
- illogically change the form of their appeal and direct its
- persuasions to man's SECOND-PLACE powers and to powers which have
- NO EXISTENCE in him, thus advancing them to FIRST place; whereas
- in my Admonition I stick logically and consistently to the
- original position: I place the Interior Master's requirements
- FIRST, and keep them there.
-
- Y.M. If we grant, for the sake of argument, that your
- scheme and the other schemes aim at and produce the same result--
- RIGHT LIVING--has yours an advantage over the others?
-
- O.M. One, yes--a large one. It has no concealments, no
- deceptions. When a man leads a right and valuable life under it
- he is not deceived as to the REAL chief motive which impels him
- to it--in those other cases he is.
-
- Y.M. Is that an advantage? Is it an advantage to live a
- lofty life for a mean reason? In the other cases he lives the
- lofty life under the IMPRESSION that he is living for a lofty
- reason. Is not that an advantage?
-
- O.M. Perhaps so. The same advantage he might get out of
- thinking himself a duke, and living a duke's life and parading in
- ducal fuss and feathers, when he wasn't a duke at all, and could
- find it out if he would only examine the herald's records.
-
- Y.M. But anyway, he is obliged to do a duke's part; he puts
- his hand in his pocket and does his benevolences on as big a
- scale as he can stand, and that benefits the community.
-
- O.M. He could do that without being a duke.
-
- Y.M. But would he?
-
- O.M. Don't you see where you are arriving?
-
- Y.M. Where?
-
- O.M. At the standpoint of the other schemes: That it is
- good morals to let an ignorant duke do showy benevolences for his
- pride's sake, a pretty low motive, and go on doing them unwarned,
- lest if he were made acquainted with the actual motive which
- prompted them he might shut up his purse and cease to be good?
-
- Y.M. But isn't it best to leave him in ignorance, as long
- as he THINKS he is doing good for others' sake?
-
- O.M. Perhaps so. It is the position of the other schemes.
- They think humbug is good enough morals when the dividend on it
- is good deeds and handsome conduct.
-
- Y.M. It is my opinion that under your scheme of a man's
- doing a good deed for his OWN sake first-off, instead of first
- for the GOOD DEED'S sake, no man would ever do one.
-
- O.M. Have you committed a benevolence lately?
-
- Y.M. Yes. This morning.
-
- O.M. Give the particulars.
-
- Y.M. The cabin of the old negro woman who used to nurse me
- when I was a child and who saved my life once at the risk of her
- own, was burned last night, and she came mourning this morning,
- and pleading for money to build another one.
-
- O.M. You furnished it?
-
- Y.M. Certainly.
-
- O.M. You were glad you had the money?
-
- Y.M. Money? I hadn't. I sold my horse.
-
- O.M. You were glad you had the horse?
-
- Y.M. Of course I was; for if I hadn't had the horse I
- should have been incapable, and my MOTHER would have captured the
- chance to set old Sally up.
-
- O.M. You were cordially glad you were not caught out and
- incapable?
-
- Y.M. Oh, I just was!
-
- O.M. Now, then--
-
- Y.M. Stop where you are! I know your whole catalog of
- questions, and I could answer every one of them without your
- wasting the time to ask them; but I will summarize the whole
- thing in a single remark: I did the charity knowing it was
- because the act would give ME a splendid pleasure, and because
- old Sally's moving gratitude and delight would give ME another
- one; and because the reflection that she would be happy now and
- out of her trouble would fill ME full of happiness. I did the
- whole thing with my eyes open and recognizing and realizing that
- I was looking out for MY share of the profits FIRST. Now then, I
- have confessed. Go on.
-
- O.M. I haven't anything to offer; you have covered the
- whole ground. Can you have been any MORE strongly moved to help
- Sally out of her trouble--could you have done the deed any more
- eagerly--if you had been under the delusion that you were doing
- it for HER sake and profit only?
-
- Y.M. No! Nothing in the world could have made the impulse
- which moved me more powerful, more masterful, more thoroughly
- irresistible. I played the limit!
-
- O.M. Very well. You begin to suspect--and I claim to KNOW
- --that when a man is a shade MORE STRONGLY MOVED to do ONE of two
- things or of two dozen things than he is to do any one of the
- OTHERS, he will infallibly do that ONE thing, be it good or be it
- evil; and if it be good, not all the beguilements of all the
- casuistries can increase the strength of the impulse by a single
- shade or add a shade to the comfort and contentment he will get
- out of the act.
-
- Y.M. Then you believe that such tendency toward doing good
- as is in men's hearts would not be diminished by the removal of
- the delusion that good deeds are done primarily for the sake of
- No. 2 instead of for the sake of No. 1?
-
- O.M. That is what I fully believe.
-
- Y.M. Doesn't it somehow seem to take from the dignity of the deed?
-
- O.M. If there is dignity in falsity, it does. It removes that.
-
- Y.M. What is left for the moralists to do?
-
- O.M. Teach unreservedly what he already teaches with one
- side of his mouth and takes back with the other: Do right FOR
- YOUR OWN SAKE, and be happy in knowing that your NEIGHBOR will
- certainly share in the benefits resulting.
-
- Y.M. Repeat your Admonition.
-
- O.M. DILIGENTLY TRAIN YOUR IDEALS UPWARD AND STILL UPWARD
- TOWARD A SUMMIT WHERE YOU WILL FIND YOUR CHIEFEST PLEASURE IN
- CONDUCT WHICH, WHILE CONTENTING YOU, WILL BE SURE TO CONFER
- BENEFITS UPON YOUR NEIGHBOR AND THE COMMUNITY.
-
- Y.M. One's EVERY act proceeds from EXTERIOR INFLUENCES, you think?
-
- O.M. Yes.
-
- Y.M. If I conclude to rob a person, I am not the ORIGINATOR
- of the idea, but it comes in from the OUTSIDE? I see him
- handling money--for instance--and THAT moves me to the crime?
-
- O.M. That, by itself? Oh, certainly not. It is merely the
- LATEST outside influence of a procession of preparatory
- influences stretching back over a period of years. No SINGLE
- outside influence can make a man do a thing which is at war with
- his training. The most it can do is to start his mind on a new
- tract and open it to the reception of NEW influences--as in the
- case of Ignatius Loyola. In time these influences can train him
- to a point where it will be consonant with his new character to
- yield to the FINAL influence and do that thing. I will put the
- case in a form which will make my theory clear to you, I think.
- Here are two ingots of virgin gold. They shall represent a
- couple of characters which have been refined and perfected in the
- virtues by years of diligent right training. Suppose you wanted
- to break down these strong and well-compacted characters--what
- influence would you bring to bear upon the ingots?
-
- Y.M. Work it out yourself. Proceed.
-
- O.M. Suppose I turn upon one of them a steam-jet during a
- long succession of hours. Will there be a result?
-
- Y.M. None that I know of.
-
- O.M. Why?
-
- Y.M. A steam-jet cannot break down such a substance.
-
- O.M. Very well. The steam is an OUTSIDE INFLUENCE, but it
- is ineffective because the gold TAKES NO INTEREST IN IT. The
- ingot remains as it was. Suppose we add to the steam some
- quicksilver in a vaporized condition, and turn the jet upon the
- ingot, will there be an instantaneous result?
-
- Y.M. No.
-
- O.M. The QUICKSILVER is an outside influence which gold (by
- its peculiar nature--say TEMPERAMENT, DISPOSITION) CANNOT BE
- INDIFFERENT TO. It stirs up the interest of the gold, although
- we do not perceive it; but a SINGLE application of the influence
- works no damage. Let us continue the application in a steady
- stream, and call each minute a year. By the end of ten or twenty
- minutes--ten or twenty years--the little ingot is sodden with
- quicksilver, its virtues are gone, its character is degraded. At
- last it is ready to yield to a temptation which it would have
- taken no notice of, ten or twenty years ago. We will apply that
- temptation in the form of a pressure of my finger. You note the
- result?
-
- Y.M. Yes; the ingot has crumbled to sand. I understand,
- now. It is not the SINGLE outside influence that does the work,
- but only the LAST one of a long and disintegrating accumulation
- of them. I see, now, how my SINGLE impulse to rob the man is not
- the one that makes me do it, but only the LAST one of a
- preparatory series. You might illustrate with a parable.
-
-
-
- A Parable
-
- O.M. I will. There was once a pair of New England boys--
- twins. They were alike in good dispositions, feckless morals,
- and personal appearance. They were the models of the Sunday-
- school. At fifteen George had the opportunity to go as cabin-boy
- in a whale-ship, and sailed away for the Pacific. Henry remained
- at home in the village. At eighteen George was a sailor before
- the mast, and Henry was teacher of the advanced Bible class. At
- twenty-two George, through fighting-habits and drinking-habits
- acquired at sea and in the sailor boarding-houses of the European
- and Oriental ports, was a common rough in Hong-Kong, and out of a
- job; and Henry was superintendent of the Sunday-school. At
- twenty-six George was a wanderer, a tramp, and Henry was pastor
- of the village church. Then George came home, and was Henry's
- guest. One evening a man passed by and turned down the lane, and
- Henry said, with a pathetic smile, "Without intending me a
- discomfort, that man is always keeping me reminded of my pinching
- poverty, for he carries heaps of money about him, and goes by
- here every evening of his life." That OUTSIDE INFLUENCE--that
- remark--was enough for George, but IT was not the one that made
- him ambush the man and rob him, it merely represented the eleven
- years' accumulation of such influences, and gave birth to the act
- for which their long gestation had made preparation. It had
- never entered the head of Henry to rob the man--his ingot had
- been subjected to clean steam only; but George's had been
- subjected to vaporized quicksilver.
-
-
-
- V
-
- More About the Machine
-
- Note.--When Mrs. W. asks how can a millionaire give a single
- dollar to colleges and museums while one human being is destitute
- of bread, she has answered her question herself. Her feeling for
- the poor shows that she has a standard of benevolence; there she
- has conceded the millionaire's privilege of having a standard;
- since she evidently requires him to adopt her standard, she is by
- that act requiring herself to adopt his. The human being always
- looks down when he is examining another person's standard; he
- never find one that he has to examine by looking up.
-
-
-
-
- The Man-Machine Again
-
-
- Young Man. You really think man is a mere machine?
-
- Old Man. I do.
-
- Y.M. And that his mind works automatically and is
- independent of his control--carries on thought on its own hook?
-
- O.M. Yes. It is diligently at work, unceasingly at work,
- during every waking moment. Have you never tossed about all
- night, imploring, beseeching, commanding your mind to stop work
- and let you go to sleep?--you who perhaps imagine that your mind
- is your servant and must obey your orders, think what you tell it
- to think, and stop when you tell it to stop. When it chooses to
- work, there is no way to keep it still for an instant. The
- brightest man would not be able to supply it with subjects if he
- had to hunt them up. If it needed the man's help it would wait
- for him to give it work when he wakes in the morning.
-
- Y.M. Maybe it does.
-
- O.M. No, it begins right away, before the man gets wide
- enough awake to give it a suggestion. He may go to sleep saying,
- "The moment I wake I will think upon such and such a subject,"
- but he will fail. His mind will be too quick for him; by the
- time he has become nearly enough awake to be half conscious, he
- will find that it is already at work upon another subject. Make
- the experiment and see.
-
- Y.M. At any rate, he can make it stick to a subject if he
- wants to.
-
- O.M. Not if it find another that suits it better. As a
- rule it will listen to neither a dull speaker nor a bright one.
- It refuses all persuasion. The dull speaker wearies it and sends
- it far away in idle dreams; the bright speaker throws out
- stimulating ideas which it goes chasing after and is at once
- unconscious of him and his talk. You cannot keep your mind from
- wandering, if it wants to; it is master, not you.
-
-
-
- After an Interval of Days
-
-
- O.M. Now, dreams--but we will examine that later.
- Meantime, did you try commanding your mind to wait for orders
- from you, and not do any thinking on its own hook?
-
- Y.M. Yes, I commanded it to stand ready to take orders when
- I should wake in the morning.
-
- O.M. Did it obey?
-
- Y.M. No. It went to thinking of something of its own
- initiation, without waiting for me. Also--as you suggested--at
- night I appointed a theme for it to begin on in the morning, and
- commanded it to begin on that one and no other.
-
- O.M. Did it obey?
-
- Y.M. No.
-
- O.M. How many times did you try the experiment?
-
- Y.M. Ten.
-
- O.M. How many successes did you score?
-
- Y.M. Not one.
-
- O.M. It is as I have said: the mind is independent of the
- man. He has no control over it; it does as it pleases. It will
- take up a subject in spite of him; it will stick to it in spite
- of him; it will throw it aside in spite of him. It is entirely
- independent of him.
-
- Y.M. Go on. Illustrate.
-
- O.M. Do you know chess?
-
- Y.M. I learned it a week ago.
-
- O.M. Did your mind go on playing the game all night that
- first night?
-
- Y.M. Don't mention it!
-
- O.M. It was eagerly, unsatisfiably interested; it rioted in
- the combinations; you implored it to drop the game and let you
- get some sleep?
-
- Y.M. Yes. It wouldn't listen; it played right along. It
- wore me out and I got up haggard and wretched in the morning.
-
- O.M. At some time or other you have been captivated by a
- ridiculous rhyme-jingle?
-
- Y.M. Indeed, yes!
-
- "I saw Esau kissing Kate,
- And she saw I saw Esau;
- I saw Esau, he saw Kate,
- And she saw--"
-
- And so on. My mind went mad with joy over it. It repeated it
- all day and all night for a week in spite of all I could do to
- stop it, and it seemed to me that I must surely go crazy.
-
- O.M. And the new popular song?
-
- Y.M. Oh yes! "In the Swee-eet By and By"; etc. Yes, the
- new popular song with the taking melody sings through one's head
- day and night, asleep and awake, till one is a wreck. There is
- no getting the mind to let it alone.
-
- O.M. Yes, asleep as well as awake. The mind is quite
- independent. It is master. You have nothing to do with it. It
- is so apart from you that it can conduct its affairs, sing its
- songs, play its chess, weave its complex and ingeniously
- constructed dreams, while you sleep. It has no use for your
- help, no use for your guidance, and never uses either, whether
- you be asleep or awake. You have imagined that you could
- originate a thought in your mind, and you have sincerely believed
- you could do it.
-
- Y.M. Yes, I have had that idea.
-
- O.M. Yet you can't originate a dream-thought for it to work
- out, and get it accepted?
-
- Y.M. No.
-
- O.M. And you can't dictate its procedure after it has
- originated a dream-thought for itself?
-
- Y.M. No. No one can do it. Do you think the waking mind
- and the dream mind are the same machine?
-
- O.M. There is argument for it. We have wild and fantastic
- day-thoughts? Things that are dream-like?
-
- Y.M. Yes--like Mr. Wells's man who invented a drug that made
- him invisible; and like the Arabian tales of the Thousand Nights.
-
- O.M. And there are dreams that are rational, simple,
- consistent, and unfantastic?
-
- Y.M. Yes. I have dreams that are like that. Dreams that
- are just like real life; dreams in which there are several
- persons with distinctly differentiated characters--inventions of
- my mind and yet strangers to me: a vulgar person; a refined one;
- a wise person; a fool; a cruel person; a kind and compassionate
- one; a quarrelsome person; a peacemaker; old persons and young;
- beautiful girls and homely ones. They talk in character, each
- preserves his own characteristics. There are vivid fights, vivid
- and biting insults, vivid love-passages; there are tragedies and
- comedies, there are griefs that go to one's heart, there are
- sayings and doings that make you laugh: indeed, the whole thing
- is exactly like real life.
-
- O.M. Your dreaming mind originates the scheme, consistently
- and artistically develops it, and carries the little drama
- creditably through--all without help or suggestion from you?
-
- Y.M. Yes.
-
- O.M. It is argument that it could do the like awake without help
- or suggestion from you--and I think it does. It is argument that
- it is the same old mind in both cases, and never needs your help.
- I think the mind is purely a machine, a thoroughly independent
- machine, an automatic machine. Have you tried the other
- experiment which I suggested to you?
-
- Y.M. Which one?
-
- O.M. The one which was to determine how much influence you
- have over your mind--if any.
-
- Y.M. Yes, and got more or less entertainment out of it. I
- did as you ordered: I placed two texts before my eyes--one a
- dull one and barren of interest, the other one full of interest,
- inflamed with it, white-hot with it. I commanded my mind to busy
- itself solely with the dull one.
-
- O.M. Did it obey?
-
- Y.M. Well, no, it didn't. It busied itself with the other one.
-
- O.M. Did you try hard to make it obey?
-
- Y.M. Yes, I did my honest best.
-
- O.M. What was the text which it refused to be interested in
- or think about?
-
- Y.M. It was this question: If A owes B a dollar and a
- half, and B owes C two and three-quarter, and C owes A thirty-
- five cents, and D and A together owe E and B three-sixteenths of
- --of--I don't remember the rest, now, but anyway it was wholly
- uninteresting, and I could not force my mind to stick to it even
- half a minute at a time; it kept flying off to the other text.
-
- O.M. What was the other text?
-
- Y.M. It is no matter about that.
-
- O.M. But what was it?
-
- Y.M. A photograph.
-
- O.M. Your own?
-
- Y.M. No. It was hers.
-
- O.M. You really made an honest good test. Did you make a
- second trial?
-
- Y.M. Yes. I commanded my mind to interest itself in the
- morning paper's report of the pork-market, and at the same time I
- reminded it of an experience of mine of sixteen years ago. It
- refused to consider the pork and gave its whole blazing interest
- to that ancient incident.
-
- O.M. What was the incident?
-
- Y.M. An armed desperado slapped my face in the presence of
- twenty spectators. It makes me wild and murderous every time I
- think of it.
-
- O.M. Good tests, both; very good tests. Did you try my
- other suggestion?
-
- Y.M. The one which was to prove to me that if I would leave
- my mind to its own devices it would find things to think about
- without any of my help, and thus convince me that it was a
- machine, an automatic machine, set in motion by exterior
- influences, and as independent of me as it could be if it were in
- some one else's skull. Is that the one?
-
- O.M. Yes.
-
- Y.M. I tried it. I was shaving. I had slept well, and my
- mind was very lively, even gay and frisky. It was reveling in a
- fantastic and joyful episode of my remote boyhood which had
- suddenly flashed up in my memory--moved to this by the spectacle
- of a yellow cat picking its way carefully along the top of the
- garden wall. The color of this cat brought the bygone cat before
- me, and I saw her walking along the side-step of the pulpit; saw
- her walk on to a large sheet of sticky fly-paper and get all her
- feet involved; saw her struggle and fall down, helpless and
- dissatisfied, more and more urgent, more and more unreconciled,
- more and more mutely profane; saw the silent congregation
- quivering like jelly, and the tears running down their faces. I
- saw it all. The sight of the tears whisked my mind to a far
- distant and a sadder scene--in Terra del Fuego--and with Darwin's
- eyes I saw a naked great savage hurl his little boy against the
- rocks for a trifling fault; saw the poor mother gather up her
- dying child and hug it to her breast and weep, uttering no word.
- Did my mind stop to mourn with that nude black sister of mine?
- No--it was far away from that scene in an instant, and was
- busying itself with an ever-recurring and disagreeable dream of
- mine. In this dream I always find myself, stripped to my shirt,
- cringing and dodging about in the midst of a great drawing-room
- throng of finely dressed ladies and gentlemen, and wondering how
- I got there. And so on and so on, picture after picture,
- incident after incident, a drifting panorama of ever-changing,
- ever-dissolving views manufactured by my mind without any help
- from me--why, it would take me two hours to merely name the
- multitude of things my mind tallied off and photographed in
- fifteen minutes, let alone describe them to you.
-
- O.M. A man's mind, left free, has no use for his help. But
- there is one way whereby he can get its help when he desires it.
-
- Y.M. What is that way?
-
- O.M. When your mind is racing along from subject to subject
- and strikes an inspiring one, open your mouth and begin talking
- upon that matter--or--take your pen and use that. It will
- interest your mind and concentrate it, and it will pursue the
- subject with satisfaction. It will take full charge, and furnish
- the words itself.
-
- Y.M. But don't I tell it what to say?
-
- O.M. There are certainly occasions when you haven't time.
- The words leap out before you know what is coming.
-
- Y.M. For instance?
-
- O.M. Well, take a "flash of wit"--repartee. Flash is the
- right word. It is out instantly. There is no time to arrange
- the words. There is no thinking, no reflecting. Where there is
- a wit-mechanism it is automatic in its action and needs no help.
- Where the whit-mechanism is lacking, no amount of study and
- reflection can manufacture the product.
-
- Y.M. You really think a man originates nothing, creates nothing.
-
-
-
- The Thinking-Process
-
- O.M. I do. Men perceive, and their brain-machines
- automatically combine the things perceived. That is all.
-
- Y.M. The steam-engine?
-
- O.M. It takes fifty men a hundred years to invent it. One
- meaning of invent is discover. I use the word in that sense.
- Little by little they discover and apply the multitude of details
- that go to make the perfect engine. Watt noticed that confined
- steam was strong enough to lift the lid of the teapot. He didn't
- create the idea, he merely discovered the fact; the cat had
- noticed it a hundred times. From the teapot he evolved the
- cylinder--from the displaced lid he evolved the piston-rod. To
- attach something to the piston-rod to be moved by it, was a
- simple matter--crank and wheel. And so there was a working
- engine. [1]
-
- One by one, improvements were discovered by men who used
- their eyes, not their creating powers--for they hadn't any--and
- now, after a hundred years the patient contributions of fifty or
- a hundred observers stand compacted in the wonderful machine
- which drives the ocean liner.
-
- Y.M. A Shakespearean play?
-
- O.M. The process is the same. The first actor was a
- savage. He reproduced in his theatrical war-dances, scalp-
- dances, and so on, incidents which he had seen in real life. A
- more advanced civilization produced more incidents, more
- episodes; the actor and the story-teller borrowed them. And so
- the drama grew, little by little, stage by stage. It is made up
- of the facts of life, not creations. It took centuries to
- develop the Greek drama. It borrowed from preceding ages; it
- lent to the ages that came after. Men observe and combine, that
- is all. So does a rat.
-
- Y.M. How?
-
- O.M. He observes a smell, he infers a cheese, he seeks and
- finds. The astronomer observes this and that; adds his this and
- that to the this-and-thats of a hundred predecessors, infers an
- invisible planet, seeks it and finds it. The rat gets into a
- trap; gets out with trouble; infers that cheese in traps lacks
- value, and meddles with that trap no more. The astronomer is
- very proud of his achievement, the rat is proud of his. Yet both
- are machines; they have done machine work, they have originated
- nothing, they have no right to be vain; the whole credit belongs
- to their Maker. They are entitled to no honors, no praises, no
- monuments when they die, no remembrance. One is a complex and
- elaborate machine, the other a simple and limited machine, but
- they are alike in principle, function, and process, and neither
- of them works otherwise than automatically, and neither of them
- may righteously claim a PERSONAL superiority or a personal
- dignity above the other.
-
- Y.M. In earned personal dignity, then, and in personal merit
- for what he does, it follows of necessity that he is on the
- same level as a rat?
-
- O.M. His brother the rat; yes, that is how it seems to me.
- Neither of them being entitled to any personal merit for what he
- does, it follows of necessity that neither of them has a right to
- arrogate to himself (personally created) superiorities over his
- brother.
-
- Y.M. Are you determined to go on believing in these
- insanities? Would you go on believing in them in the face of
- able arguments backed by collated facts and instances?
-
- O.M. I have been a humble, earnest, and sincere Truth-Seeker.
-
- Y.M. Very well?
-
- O.M. The humble, earnest, and sincere Truth-Seeker is
- always convertible by such means.
-
- Y.M. I am thankful to God to hear you say this, for now I
- know that your conversion--
-
- O.M. Wait. You misunderstand. I said I have BEEN a Truth-Seeker.
-
- Y.M. Well?
-
- O.M. I am not that now. Have your forgotten? I told you
- that there are none but temporary Truth-Seekers; that a permanent
- one is a human impossibility; that as soon as the Seeker finds
- what he is thoroughly convinced is the Truth, he seeks no
- further, but gives the rest of his days to hunting junk to patch
- it and caulk it and prop it with, and make it weather-proof and
- keep it from caving in on him. Hence the Presbyterian remains a
- Presbyterian, the Mohammedan a Mohammedan, the Spiritualist a
- Spiritualist, the Democrat a Democrat, the Republican a
- Republican, the Monarchist a Monarchist; and if a humble,
- earnest, and sincere Seeker after Truth should find it in the
- proposition that the moon is made of green cheese nothing could
- ever budge him from that position; for he is nothing but an
- automatic machine, and must obey the laws of his construction.
-
- Y.M. After so--
-
- O.M. Having found the Truth; perceiving that beyond question
- man has but one moving impulse--the contenting of his own spirit--
- and is merely a machine and entitled to no personal merit for
- anything he does, it is not humanly possible for me to seek further.
- The rest of my days will be spent in patching and painting and
- puttying and caulking my priceless possession and in looking the
- other way when an imploring argument or a damaging fact approaches.
-
- -----
- 1. The Marquess of Worcester had done all of this more than a
- century earlier.
-
-
-
- VI
-
-
- Instinct and Thought
-
- Young Man. It is odious. Those drunken theories of yours,
- advanced a while ago--concerning the rat and all that--strip Man
- bare of all his dignities, grandeurs, sublimities.
-
- Old Man. He hasn't any to strip--they are shams, stolen
- clothes. He claims credits which belong solely to his Maker.
-
- Y.M. But you have no right to put him on a level with a rat.
-
- O.M. I don't--morally. That would not be fair to the rat.
- The rat is well above him, there.
-
- Y.M. Are you joking?
-
- O.M. No, I am not.
-
- Y.M. Then what do you mean?
-
- O.M. That comes under the head of the Moral Sense. It is a
- large question. Let us finish with what we are about now, before
- we take it up.
-
- Y.M. Very well. You have seemed to concede that you place
- Man and the rat on A level. What is it? The intellectual?
-
- O.M. In form--not a degree.
-
- Y.M. Explain.
-
- O.M. I think that the rat's mind and the man's mind are the
- same machine, but of unequal capacities--like yours and Edison's;
- like the African pygmy's and Homer's; like the Bushman's and Bismarck's.
-
- Y.M. How are you going to make that out, when the lower animals
- have no mental quality but instinct, while man possesses reason?
-
- O.M. What is instinct?
-
- Y.M. It is merely unthinking and mechanical exercise of
- inherited habit.
-
- O.M. What originated the habit?
-
- Y.M. The first animal started it, its descendants have
- inherited it.
-
- O.M. How did the first one come to start it?
-
- Y.M. I don't know; but it didn't THINK it out.
-
- O.M. How do you know it didn't?
-
- Y.M. Well--I have a right to suppose it didn't, anyway.
-
- O.M. I don't believe you have. What is thought?
-
- Y.M. I know what you call it: the mechanical and automatic
- putting together of impressions received from outside, and
- drawing an inference from them.
-
- O.M. Very good. Now my idea of the meaningless term "instinct" is,
- that it is merely PETRIFIED THOUGHT; solidified and made inanimate
- by habit; thought which was once alive and awake, but it become
- unconscious--walks in its sleep, so to speak.
-
- Y.M. Illustrate it.
-
- O.M. Take a herd of cows, feeding in a pasture. Their
- heads are all turned in one direction. They do that
- instinctively; they gain nothing by it, they have no reason for
- it, they don't know why they do it. It is an inherited habit
- which was originally thought--that is to say, observation of an
- exterior fact, and a valuable inference drawn from that
- observation and confirmed by experience. The original wild ox
- noticed that with the wind in his favor he could smell his enemy
- in time to escape; then he inferred that it was worth while to
- keep his nose to the wind. That is the process which man calls
- reasoning. Man's thought-machine works just like the other
- animals', but it is a better one and more Edisonian. Man, in the
- ox's place, would go further, reason wider: he would face part
- of the herd the other way and protect both front and rear.
-
- Y.M. Did you stay the term instinct is meaningless?
-
- O.M. I think it is a bastard word. I think it confuses us;
- for as a rule it applies itself to habits and impulses which had
- a far-off origin in thought, and now and then breaks the rule and
- applies itself to habits which can hardly claim a thought-origin.
-
- Y.M. Give an instance.
-
- O.M. Well, in putting on trousers a man always inserts the same old
- leg first--never the other one. There is no advantage in that,
- and no sense in it. All men do it, yet no man thought it out
- and adopted it of set purpose, I imagine. But it is a habit which
- is transmitted, no doubt, and will continue to be transmitted.
-
- Y.M. Can you prove that the habit exists?
-
- O.M. You can prove it, if you doubt. If you will take a
- man to a clothing-store and watch him try on a dozen pairs of
- trousers, you will see.
-
- Y.M. The cow illustration is not--
-
- O.M. Sufficient to show that a dumb animal's mental machine
- is just the same as a man's and its reasoning processes the same?
- I will illustrate further. If you should hand Mr. Edison a box
- which you caused to fly open by some concealed device he would
- infer a spring, and would hunt for it and find it. Now an uncle
- of mine had an old horse who used to get into the closed lot
- where the corn-crib was and dishonestly take the corn. I got the
- punishment myself, as it was supposed that I had heedlessly
- failed to insert the wooden pin which kept the gate closed.
- These persistent punishments fatigued me; they also caused me to
- infer the existence of a culprit, somewhere; so I hid myself and
- watched the gate. Presently the horse came and pulled the pin
- out with his teeth and went in. Nobody taught him that; he had
- observed--then thought it out for himself. His process did not
- differ from Edison's; he put this and that together and drew an
- inference--and the peg, too; but I made him sweat for it.
-
- Y.M. It has something of the seeming of thought about it.
- Still it is not very elaborate. Enlarge.
-
- O.M. Suppose Mr. Edison has been enjoying some one's
- hospitalities. He comes again by and by, and the house is
- vacant. He infers that his host has moved. A while afterward,
- in another town, he sees the man enter a house; he infers that
- that is the new home, and follows to inquire. Here, now, is the
- experience of a gull, as related by a naturalist. The scene is a
- Scotch fishing village where the gulls were kindly treated. This
- particular gull visited a cottage; was fed; came next day and was
- fed again; came into the house, next time, and ate with the
- family; kept on doing this almost daily, thereafter. But, once
- the gull was away on a journey for a few days, and when it
- returned the house was vacant. Its friends had removed to a
- village three miles distant. Several months later it saw the
- head of the family on the street there, followed him home,
- entered the house without excuse or apology, and became a daily
- guest again. Gulls do not rank high mentally, but this one had
- memory and the reasoning faculty, you see, and applied them
- Edisonially.
-
- Y.M. Yet it was not an Edison and couldn't be developed into one.
-
- O.M. Perhaps not. Could you?
-
- Y.M. That is neither here nor there. Go on.
-
- O.M. If Edison were in trouble and a stranger helped him
- out of it and next day he got into the same difficulty again, he
- would infer the wise thing to do in case he knew the stranger's
- address. Here is a case of a bird and a stranger as related by a
- naturalist. An Englishman saw a bird flying around about his
- dog's head, down in the grounds, and uttering cries of distress.
- He went there to see about it. The dog had a young bird in his
- mouth--unhurt. The gentleman rescued it and put it on a bush and
- brought the dog away. Early the next morning the mother bird
- came for the gentleman, who was sitting on his veranda, and by
- its maneuvers persuaded him to follow it to a distant part of the
- grounds--flying a little way in front of him and waiting for him
- to catch up, and so on; and keeping to the winding path, too,
- instead of flying the near way across lots. The distance covered
- was four hundred yards. The same dog was the culprit; he had the
- young bird again, and once more he had to give it up. Now the
- mother bird had reasoned it all out: since the stranger had
- helped her once, she inferred that he would do it again; she knew
- where to find him, and she went upon her errand with confidence.
- Her mental processes were what Edison's would have been. She put
- this and that together--and that is all that thought IS--and out
- of them built her logical arrangement of inferences. Edison
- couldn't have done it any better himself.
-
- Y.M. Do you believe that many of the dumb animals can think?
-
- O.M. Yes--the elephant, the monkey, the horse, the dog, the
- parrot, the macaw, the mocking-bird, and many others. The
- elephant whose mate fell into a pit, and who dumped dirt and
- rubbish into the pit till bottom was raised high enough to enable
- the captive to step out, was equipped with the reasoning quality.
- I conceive that all animals that can learn things through
- teaching and drilling have to know how to observe, and put this
- and that together and draw an inference--the process of thinking.
- Could you teach an idiot of manuals of arms, and to advance,
- retreat, and go through complex field maneuvers at the word of
- command?
-
- Y.M. Not if he were a thorough idiot.
-
- O.M. Well, canary-birds can learn all that; dogs and elephants
- learn all sorts of wonderful things. They must surely be able
- to notice, and to put things together, and say to themselves,
- "I get the idea, now: when I do so and so, as per order,
- I am praised and fed; when I do differently I am punished."
- Fleas can be taught nearly anything that a Congressman can.
-
- Y.M. Granting, then, that dumb animals are able to think
- upon a low plane, is there any that can think upon a high one?
- Is there one that is well up toward man?
-
- O.M. Yes. As a thinker and planner the ant is the equal of
- any savage race of men; as a self-educated specialist in several
- arts she is the superior of any savage race of men; and in one or
- two high mental qualities she is above the reach of any man,
- savage or civilized!
-
- Y.M. Oh, come! you are abolishing the intellectual frontier
- which separates man and beast.
-
- O.M. I beg your pardon. One cannot abolish what does not exist.
-
- Y.M. You are not in earnest, I hope. You cannot mean to
- seriously say there is no such frontier.
-
- O.M. I do say it seriously. The instances of the horse, the
- gull, the mother bird, and the elephant show that those creatures
- put their this's and thats together just as Edison would have
- done it and drew the same inferences that he would have drawn.
- Their mental machinery was just like his, also its manner of
- working. Their equipment was as inferior to the Strasburg clock,
- but that is the only difference--there is no frontier.
-
- Y.M. It looks exasperatingly true; and is distinctly
- offensive. It elevates the dumb beasts to--to--
-
- O.M. Let us drop that lying phrase, and call them the
- Unrevealed Creatures; so far as we can know, there is no such
- thing as a dumb beast.
-
- Y.M. On what grounds do you make that assertion?
-
- O.M. On quite simple ones. "Dumb" beast suggests an animal
- that has no thought-machinery, no understanding, no speech, no
- way of communicating what is in its mind. We know that a hen HAS
- speech. We cannot understand everything she says, but we easily
- learn two or three of her phrases. We know when she is saying,
- "I have laid an egg"; we know when she is saying to the chicks,
- "Run here, dears, I've found a worm"; we know what she is saying
- when she voices a warning: "Quick! hurry! gather yourselves
- under mamma, there's a hawk coming!" We understand the cat when
- she stretches herself out, purring with affection and contentment
- and lifts up a soft voice and says, "Come, kitties, supper's
- ready"; we understand her when she goes mourning about and says,
- "Where can they be? They are lost. Won't you help me hunt for
- them?" and we understand the disreputable Tom when he challenges
- at midnight from his shed, "You come over here, you product of
- immoral commerce, and I'll make your fur fly!" We understand a
- few of a dog's phrases and we learn to understand a few of the
- remarks and gestures of any bird or other animal that we
- domesticate and observe. The clearness and exactness of the few
- of the hen's speeches which we understand is argument that she
- can communicate to her kind a hundred things which we cannot
- comprehend--in a word, that she can converse. And this argument
- is also applicable in the case of others of the great army of the
- Unrevealed. It is just like man's vanity and impertinence to
- call an animal dumb because it is dumb to his dull perceptions.
- Now as to the ant--
-
- Y.M. Yes, go back to the ant, the creature that--as you
- seem to think--sweeps away the last vestige of an intellectual
- frontier between man and the Unrevealed.
-
- O.M. That is what she surely does. In all his history the
- aboriginal Australian never thought out a house for himself and
- built it. The ant is an amazing architect. She is a wee little
- creature, but she builds a strong and enduring house eight feet
- high--a house which is as large in proportion to her size as is
- the largest capitol or cathedral in the world compared to man's
- size. No savage race has produced architects who could approach
- the air in genius or culture. No civilized race has produced
- architects who could plan a house better for the uses proposed
- than can hers. Her house contains a throne-room; nurseries for
- her young; granaries; apartments for her soldiers, her workers,
- etc.; and they and the multifarious halls and corridors which
- communicate with them are arranged and distributed with an
- educated and experienced eye for convenience and adaptability.
-
- Y.M. That could be mere instinct.
-
- O.M. It would elevate the savage if he had it. But let us
- look further before we decide. The ant has soldiers--battalions,
- regiments, armies; and they have their appointed captains and
- generals, who lead them to battle.
-
- Y.M. That could be instinct, too.
-
- O.M. We will look still further. The ant has a system of
- government; it is well planned, elaborate, and is well carried on.
-
- Y.M. Instinct again.
-
- O.M. She has crowds of slaves, and is a hard and unjust
- employer of forced labor.
-
- Y.M. Instinct.
-
- O.M. She has cows, and milks them.
-
- Y.M. Instinct, of course.
-
- O.M. In Texas she lays out a farm twelve feet square, plants it,
- weeds it, cultivates it, gathers the crop and stores it away.
-
- Y.M. Instinct, all the same.
-
- O.M. The ant discriminates between friend and stranger.
- Sir John Lubbock took ants from two different nests, made them
- drunk with whiskey and laid them, unconscious, by one of the
- nests, near some water. Ants from the nest came and examined and
- discussed these disgraced creatures, then carried their friends
- home and threw the strangers overboard. Sir John repeated the
- experiment a number of times. For a time the sober ants did as
- they had done at first--carried their friends home and threw the
- strangers overboard. But finally they lost patience, seeing that
- their reformatory efforts went for nothing, and threw both
- friends and strangers overboard. Come--is this instinct, or is
- it thoughtful and intelligent discussion of a thing new--
- absolutely new--to their experience; with a verdict arrived at,
- sentence passed, and judgment executed? Is it instinct?--thought
- petrified by ages of habit--or isn't it brand-new thought,
- inspired by the new occasion, the new circumstances?
-
- Y.M. I have to concede it. It was not a result of habit;
- it has all the look of reflection, thought, putting this and that
- together, as you phrase it. I believe it was thought.
-
- O.M. I will give you another instance of thought. Franklin
- had a cup of sugar on a table in his room. The ants got at it.
- He tried several preventives; and ants rose superior to them.
- Finally he contrived one which shut off access--probably set the
- table's legs in pans of water, or drew a circle of tar around the
- cup, I don't remember. At any rate, he watched to see what they
- would do. They tried various schemes--failures, every one. The
- ants were badly puzzled. Finally they held a consultation,
- discussed the problem, arrived at a decision--and this time they
- beat that great philosopher. They formed in procession, cross
- the floor, climbed the wall, marched across the ceiling to a
- point just over the cup, then one by one they let go and fell
- down into it! Was that instinct--thought petrified by ages of
- inherited habit?
-
- Y.M. No, I don't believe it was. I believe it was a newly
- reasoned scheme to meet a new emergency.
-
- O.M. Very well. You have conceded the reasoning power in
- two instances. I come now to a mental detail wherein the ant is
- a long way the superior of any human being. Sir John Lubbock
- proved by many experiments that an ant knows a stranger ant of
- her own species in a moment, even when the stranger is disguised
- --with paint. Also he proved that an ant knows every individual
- in her hive of five hundred thousand souls. Also, after a year's
- absence one of the five hundred thousand she will straightway
- recognize the returned absentee and grace the recognition with a
- affectionate welcome. How are these recognitions made? Not by
- color, for painted ants were recognized. Not by smell, for ants
- that had been dipped in chloroform were recognized. Not by
- speech and not by antennae signs nor contacts, for the drunken
- and motionless ants were recognized and the friend discriminated
- from the stranger. The ants were all of the same species,
- therefore the friends had to be recognized by form and feature--
- friends who formed part of a hive of five hundred thousand! Has
- any man a memory for form and feature approaching that?
-
- Y.M. Certainly not.
-
- O.M. Franklin's ants and Lubbuck's ants show fine
- capacities of putting this and that together in new and untried
- emergencies and deducting smart conclusions from the
- combinations--a man's mental process exactly. With memory to
- help, man preserves his observations and reasonings, reflects
- upon them, adds to them, recombines, and so proceeds, stage by
- stage, to far results--from the teakettle to the ocean
- greyhound's complex engine; from personal labor to slave labor;
- from wigwam to palace; from the capricious chase to agriculture
- and stored food; from nomadic life to stable government and
- concentrated authority; from incoherent hordes to massed armies.
- The ant has observation, the reasoning faculty, and the
- preserving adjunct of a prodigious memory; she has duplicated
- man's development and the essential features of his civilization,
- and you call it all instinct!
-
- Y.M. Perhaps I lacked the reasoning faculty myself.
-
- O.M. Well, don't tell anybody, and don't do it again.
-
- Y.M. We have come a good way. As a result--as I understand it--
- I am required to concede that there is absolutely no intellectual
- frontier separating Man and the Unrevealed Creatures?
-
- O.M. That is what you are required to concede. There is no
- such frontier--there is no way to get around that. Man has a
- finer and more capable machine in him than those others, but it
- is the same machine and works in the same way. And neither he
- nor those others can command the machine--it is strictly
- automatic, independent of control, works when it pleases, and
- when it doesn't please, it can't be forced.
-
- Y.M. Then man and the other animals are all alike, as to mental
- machinery, and there isn't any difference of any stupendous
- magnitude between them, except in quality, not in kind.
-
- O.M. That is about the state of it--intellectuality. There
- are pronounced limitations on both sides. We can't learn to
- understand much of their language, but the dog, the elephant,
- etc., learn to understand a very great deal of ours. To that
- extent they are our superiors. On the other hand, they can't
- learn reading, writing, etc., nor any of our fine and high
- things, and there we have a large advantage over them.
-
- Y.M. Very well, let them have what they've got, and welcome;
- there is still a wall, and a lofty one. They haven't got the
- Moral Sense; we have it, and it lifts us immeasurably above them.
-
- O.M. What makes you think that?
-
- Y.M. Now look here--let's call a halt. I have stood the
- other infamies and insanities and that is enough; I am not going
- to have man and the other animals put on the same level morally.
-
- O.M. I wasn't going to hoist man up to that.
-
- Y.M. This is too much! I think it is not right to jest
- about such things.
-
- O.M. I am not jesting, I am merely reflecting a plain and
- simple truth--and without uncharitableness. The fact that man
- knows right from wrong proves his INTELLECTUAL superiority to the
- other creatures; but the fact that he can DO wrong proves his
- MORAL inferiority to any creature that CANNOT. It is my belief
- that this position is not assailable.
-
-
-
- Free Will
-
- Y.M. What is your opinion regarding Free Will?
-
- O.M. That there is no such thing. Did the man possess it
- who gave the old woman his last shilling and trudged home in the
- storm?
-
- Y.M. He had the choice between succoring the old woman and
- leaving her to suffer. Isn't it so?
-
- O.M. Yes, there was a choice to be made, between bodily
- comfort on the one hand and the comfort of the spirit on the
- other. The body made a strong appeal, of course--the body would
- be quite sure to do that; the spirit made a counter appeal. A
- choice had to be made between the two appeals, and was made. Who
- or what determined that choice?
-
- Y.M. Any one but you would say that the man determined it,
- and that in doing it he exercised Free Will.
-
- O.M. We are constantly assured that every man is endowed
- with Free Will, and that he can and must exercise it where he is
- offered a choice between good conduct and less-good conduct. Yet
- we clearly saw that in that man's case he really had no Free
- Will: his temperament, his training, and the daily influences
- which had molded him and made him what he was, COMPELLED him to
- rescue the old woman and thus save HIMSELF--save himself from
- spiritual pain, from unendurable wretchedness. He did not make
- the choice, it was made FOR him by forces which he could not
- control. Free Will has always existed in WORDS, but it stops
- there, I think--stops short of FACT. I would not use those
- words--Free Will--but others.
-
- Y.M. What others?
-
- O.M. Free Choice.
-
- Y.M. What is the difference?
-
- O.M. The one implies untrammeled power to ACT as you please,
- the other implies nothing beyond a mere MENTAL PROCESS:
- the critical ability to determine which of two things
- is nearest right and just.
-
- Y.M. Make the difference clear, please.
-
- O.M. The mind can freely SELECT, CHOOSE, POINT OUT the
- right and just one--its function stops there. It can go no
- further in the matter. It has no authority to say that the right
- one shall be acted upon and the wrong one discarded.
- That authority is in other hands.
-
- Y.M. The man's?
-
- O.M. In the machine which stands for him. In his born
- disposition and the character which has been built around it by
- training and environment.
-
- Y.M. It will act upon the right one of the two?
-
- O.M. It will do as it pleases in the matter. George Washington's
- machine would act upon the right one; Pizarro would act upon the wrong one.
-
- Y.M. Then as I understand it a bad man's mental machinery calmly
- and judicially points out which of two things is right and just--
-
- O.M. Yes, and his MORAL machinery will freely act upon
- the other or the other, according to its make, and be quite
- indifferent to the MIND'S feeling concerning the matter--that is,
- WOULD be, if the mind had any feelings; which it hasn't.
- It is merely a thermometer: it registers the heat and the cold,
- and cares not a farthing about either.
-
- Y.M. Then we must not claim that if a man KNOWS which of
- two things is right he is absolutely BOUND to do that thing?
-
- O.M. His temperament and training will decide what he shall
- do, and he will do it; he cannot help himself, he has no
- authority over the mater. Wasn't it right for David to go out
- and slay Goliath?
-
- Y.M. Yes.
-
- O.M. Then it would have been equally RIGHT for any one else to do it?
-
- Y.M. Certainly.
-
- O.M. Then it would have been RIGHT for a born coward to attempt it?
-
- Y.M. It would--yes.
-
- O.M. You know that no born coward ever would have attempted it, don't you?
-
- Y.M. Yes.
-
- O.M. You know that a born coward's make and temperament
- would be an absolute and insurmountable bar to his ever essaying
- such a thing, don't you?
-
- Y.M. Yes, I know it.
-
- O.M. He clearly perceives that it would be RIGHT to try it?
-
- Y.M. Yes.
-
- O.M. His mind has Free Choice in determining that it would
- be RIGHT to try it?
-
- Y.M. Yes.
-
- O.M. Then if by reason of his inborn cowardice he simply
- can NOT essay it, what becomes of his Free Will? Where is his
- Free Will? Why claim that he has Free Will when the plain facts
- show that he hasn't? Why content that because he and David SEE
- the right alike, both must ACT alike? Why impose the same laws
- upon goat and lion?
-
- Y.M. There is really no such thing as Free Will?
-
- O.M. It is what I think. There is WILL. But it has
- nothing to do with INTELLECTUAL PERCEPTIONS OF RIGHT AND WRONG,
- and is not under their command. David's temperament and training
- had Will, and it was a compulsory force; David had to obey its
- decrees, he had no choice. The coward's temperament and training
- possess Will, and IT is compulsory; it commands him to avoid
- danger, and he obeys, he has no choice. But neither the Davids
- nor the cowards possess Free Will--will that may do the right or
- do the wrong, as their MENTAL verdict shall decide.
-
-
-
- Not Two Values, But Only One
-
- Y.M. There is one thing which bothers me: I can't tell
- where you draw the line between MATERIAL covetousness and
- SPIRITUAL covetousness.
-
- O.M. I don't draw any.
-
- Y.M. How do you mean?
-
- O.M. There is no such thing as MATERIAL covetousness.
- All covetousness is spiritual
-
- Y.M. ALL longings, desires, ambitions SPIRITUAL, never material?
-
- O.M. Yes. The Master in you requires that in ALL cases you
- shall content his SPIRIT--that alone. He never requires anything
- else, he never interests himself in any other matter.
-
- Y.M. Ah, come! When he covets somebody's money--isn't that
- rather distinctly material and gross?
-
- O.M. No. The money is merely a symbol--it represents in
- visible and concrete form a SPIRITUAL DESIRE. Any so-called
- material thing that you want is merely a symbol: you want it not
- for ITSELF, but because it will content your spirit for the moment.
-
- Y.M. Please particularize.
-
- O.M. Very well. Maybe the thing longed for is a new hat.
- You get it and your vanity is pleased, your spirit contented.
- Suppose your friends deride the hat, make fun of it: at once it
- loses its value; you are ashamed of it, you put it out of your
- sight, you never want to see it again.
-
- Y.M. I think I see. Go on.
-
- O.M. It is the same hat, isn't it? It is in no way
- altered. But it wasn't the HAT you wanted, but only what it
- stood for--a something to please and content your SPIRIT. When
- it failed of that, the whole of its value was gone. There are no
- MATERIAL values; there are only spiritual ones. You will hunt in
- vain for a material value that is ACTUAL, REAL--there is no such
- thing. The only value it possesses, for even a moment, is the
- spiritual value back of it: remove that end and it is at once
- worthless--like the hat.
-
- Y.M. Can you extend that to money?
-
- O.M. Yes. It is merely a symbol, it has no MATERIAL value;
- you think you desire it for its own sake, but it is not so. You
- desire it for the spiritual content it will bring; if it fail of
- that, you discover that its value is gone. There is that
- pathetic tale of the man who labored like a slave, unresting,
- unsatisfied, until he had accumulated a fortune, and was happy
- over it, jubilant about it; then in a single week a pestilence
- swept away all whom he held dear and left him desolate. His
- money's value was gone. He realized that his joy in it came not
- from the money itself, but from the spiritual contentment he got
- out of his family's enjoyment of the pleasures and delights it
- lavished upon them. Money has no MATERIAL value; if you remove
- its spiritual value nothing is left but dross. It is so with all
- things, little or big, majestic or trivial--there are no
- exceptions. Crowns, scepters, pennies, paste jewels, village
- notoriety, world-wide fame--they are all the same, they have no
- MATERIAL value: while they content the SPIRIT they are precious,
- when this fails they are worthless.
-
-
-
- A Difficult Question
-
- Y.M. You keep me confused and perplexed all the time by
- your elusive terminology. Sometimes you divide a man up into two
- or three separate personalities, each with authorities,
- jurisdictions, and responsibilities of its own, and when he is in
- that condition I can't grasp it. Now when _I_ speak of a man, he
- is THE WHOLE THING IN ONE, and easy to hold and contemplate.
-
- O.M. That is pleasant and convenient, if true. When you
- speak of "my body" who is the "my"?
-
- Y.M. It is the "me."
-
- O.M. The body is a property then, and the Me owns it.
- Who is the Me?
-
- Y.M. The Me is THE WHOLE THING; it is a common property; an
- undivided ownership, vested in the whole entity.
-
- O.M. If the Me admires a rainbow, is it the whole Me that
- admires it, including the hair, hands, heels, and all?
-
- Y.M. Certainly not. It is my MIND that admires it.
-
- O.M. So YOU divide the Me yourself. Everybody does;
- everybody must. What, then, definitely, is the Me?
-
- Y.M. I think it must consist of just those two parts--
- the body and the mind.
-
- O.M. You think so? If you say "I believe the world is round,"
- who is the "I" that is speaking?
-
- Y.M. The mind.
-
- O.M. If you say "I grieve for the loss of my father,"
- who is the "I"?
-
- Y.M. The mind.
-
- O.M. Is the mind exercising an intellectual function when
- it examines and accepts the evidence that the world is round?
-
- Y.M. Yes.
-
- O.M. Is it exercising an intellectual function when it
- grieves for the loss of your father?
-
- Y.M. That is not cerebration, brain-work, it is a matter of FEELING.
-
- O.M. Then its source is not in your mind, but in your MORAL territory?
-
- Y.M. I have to grant it.
-
- O.M. Is your mind a part of your PHYSICAL equipment?
-
- Y.M. No. It is independent of it; it is spiritual.
-
- O.M. Being spiritual, it cannot be affected by physical influences?
-
- Y.M. No.
-
- O.M. Does the mind remain sober with the body is drunk?
-
- Y.M. Well--no.
-
- O.M. There IS a physical effect present, then?
-
- Y.M. It looks like it.
-
- O.M. A cracked skull has resulted in a crazy mind. Why
- should it happen if the mind is spiritual, and INDEPENDENT of
- physical influences?
-
- Y.M. Well--I don't know.
-
- O.M. When you have a pain in your foot, how do you know it?
-
- Y.M. I feel it.
-
- O.M. But you do not feel it until a nerve reports the hurt
- to the brain. Yet the brain is the seat of the mind, is it not?
-
- Y.M. I think so.
-
- O.M. But isn't spiritual enough to learn what is happening
- in the outskirts without the help of the PHYSICAL messenger? You
- perceive that the question of who or what the Me is, is not a
- simple one at all. You say "I admire the rainbow," and "I
- believe the world is round," and in these cases we find that the
- Me is not speaking, but only the MENTAL part. You say, "I
- grieve," and again the Me is not all speaking, but only the MORAL
- part. You say the mind is wholly spiritual; then you say "I have
- a pain" and find that this time the Me is mental AND spiritual
- combined. We all use the "I" in this indeterminate fashion,
- there is no help for it. We imagine a Master and King over what
- you call The Whole Thing, and we speak of him as "I," but when we
- try to define him we find we cannot do it. The intellect and the
- feelings can act quite INDEPENDENTLY of each other; we recognize
- that, and we look around for a Ruler who is master over both, and
- can serve as a DEFINITE AND INDISPUTABLE "I," and enable us to
- know what we mean and who or what we are talking about when we
- use that pronoun, but we have to give it up and confess that we
- cannot find him. To me, Man is a machine, made up of many
- mechanisms, the moral and mental ones acting automatically in
- accordance with the impulses of an interior Master who is built
- out of born-temperament and an accumulation of multitudinous
- outside influences and trainings; a machine whose ONE function is
- to secure the spiritual contentment of the Master, be his desires
- good or be they evil; a machine whose Will is absolute and must
- be obeyed, and always IS obeyed.
-
- Y.M. Maybe the Me is the Soul?
-
- O.M. Maybe it is. What is the Soul?
-
- Y.M. I don't know.
-
- O.M. Neither does any one else.
-
-
-
- The Master Passion
-
-
- Y.M. What is the Master?--or, in common speech, the
- Conscience? Explain it.
-
- O.M. It is that mysterious autocrat, lodged in a man, which
- compels the man to content its desires. It may be called the
- Master Passion--the hunger for Self-Approval.
-
- Y.M. Where is its seat?
-
- O.M. In man's moral constitution.
-
- Y.M. Are its commands for the man's good?
-
- O.M. It is indifferent to the man's good; it never concerns
- itself about anything but the satisfying of its own desires. It
- can be TRAINED to prefer things which will be for the man's good,
- but it will prefer them only because they will content IT better
- than other things would.
-
- Y.M. Then even when it is trained to high ideals it is still
- looking out for its own contentment, and not for the man's good.
-
- O.M. True. Trained or untrained, it cares nothing for the man's good,
- and never concerns itself about it.
-
- Y.M. It seems to be an IMMORAL force seated in the man's
- moral constitution.
-
- O.M. It is a COLORLESS force seated in the man's moral constitution.
- Let us call it an instinct--a blind, unreasoning instinct, which cannot
- and does not distinguish between good morals and bad ones, and cares
- nothing for results to the man provided its own contentment be secured;
- and it will ALWAYS secure that.
-
- Y.M. It seeks money, and it probably considers that that is
- an advantage for the man?
-
- O.M. It is not always seeking money, it is not always
- seeking power, nor office, nor any other MATERIAL advantage. In
- ALL cases it seeks a SPIRITUAL contentment, let the MEANS be what
- they may. Its desires are determined by the man's temperament--
- and it is lord over that. Temperament, Conscience,
- Susceptibility, Spiritual Appetite, are, in fact, the same thing.
- Have you ever heard of a person who cared nothing for money?
-
- Y.M. Yes. A scholar who would not leave his garret and his
- books to take a place in a business house at a large salary.
-
- O.M. He had to satisfy his master--that is to say, his temperament,
- his Spiritual Appetite--and it preferred books to money. Are there
- other cases?
-
- Y.M. Yes, the hermit.
-
- O.M. It is a good instance. The hermit endures solitude,
- hunger, cold, and manifold perils, to content his autocrat, who
- prefers these things, and prayer and contemplation, to money or
- to any show or luxury that money can buy. Are there others?
-
- Y.M. Yes. The artist, the poet, the scientist.
-
- O.M. Their autocrat prefers the deep pleasures of these
- occupations, either well paid or ill paid, to any others in the
- market, at any price. You REALIZE that the Master Passion--the
- contentment of the spirit--concerns itself with many things
- besides so-called material advantage, material prosperity, cash,
- and all that?
-
- Y.M. I think I must concede it.
-
- O.M. I believe you must. There are perhaps as many
- Temperaments that would refuse the burdens and vexations and
- distinctions of public office as there are that hunger after
- them. The one set of Temperaments seek the contentment of the
- spirit, and that alone; and this is exactly the case with the
- other set. Neither set seeks anything BUT the contentment of the
- spirit. If the one is sordid, both are sordid; and equally so,
- since the end in view is precisely the same in both cases. And
- in both cases Temperament decides the preference--and Temperament
- is BORN, not made.
-
-
-
- Conclusion
-
- O.M. You have been taking a holiday?
-
- Y.M. Yes; a mountain tramp covering a week. Are you ready to talk?
-
- O.M. Quite ready. What shall we begin with?
-
- Y.M. Well, lying abed resting up, two days and nights, I
- have thought over all these talks, and passed them carefully in
- review. With this result: that . . . that . . . are you
- intending to publish your notions about Man some day?
-
- O.M. Now and then, in these past twenty years, the Master
- inside of me has half-intended to order me to set them to paper
- and publish them. Do I have to tell you why the order has
- remained unissued, or can you explain so simply a thing without
- my help?
-
- Y.M. By your doctrine, it is simplicity itself: outside
- influences moved your interior Master to give the order; stronger
- outside influences deterred him. Without the outside influences,
- neither of these impulses could ever have been born, since a
- person's brain is incapable or originating an idea within itself.
-
- O.M. Correct. Go on.
-
- Y.M. The matter of publishing or withholding is still in your
- Master's hands. If some day an outside influence shall determine
- him to publish, he will give the order, and it will be obeyed.
-
- O.M. That is correct. Well?
-
- Y.M. Upon reflection I have arrived at the conviction
- that the publication of your doctrines would be harmful.
- Do you pardon me?
-
- O.M. Pardon YOU? You have done nothing. You are an
- instrument--a speaking-trumpet. Speaking-trumpets are not
- responsible for what is said through them. Outside influences--
- in the form of lifelong teachings, trainings, notions,
- prejudices, and other second-hand importations--have persuaded
- the Master within you that the publication of these doctrines
- would be harmful. Very well, this is quite natural, and was to
- be expected; in fact, was inevitable. Go on; for the sake of
- ease and convenience, stick to habit: speak in the first person,
- and tell me what your Master thinks about it.
-
- Y.M. Well, to begin: it is a desolating doctrine; it is
- not inspiring, enthusing, uplifting. It takes the glory out of
- man, it takes the pride out of him, it takes the heroism out of
- him, it denies him all personal credit, all applause; it not only
- degrades him to a machine, but allows him no control over the
- machine; makes a mere coffee-mill of him, and neither permits him
- to supply the coffee nor turn the crank, his sole and piteously
- humble function being to grind coarse or fine, according to his
- make, outside impulses doing the rest.
-
- O.M. It is correctly stated. Tell me--what do men admire
- most in each other?
-
- Y.M. Intellect, courage, majesty of build, beauty of
- countenance, charity, benevolence, magnanimity, kindliness,
- heroism, and--and--
-
- O.M. I would not go any further. These are ELEMENTALS.
- Virtue, fortitude, holiness, truthfulness, loyalty, high ideals--
- these, and all the related qualities that are named in the
- dictionary, are MADE OF THE ELEMENTALS, by blendings,
- combinations, and shadings of the elementals, just as one makes
- green by blending blue and yellow, and makes several shades and
- tints of red by modifying the elemental red. There are several
- elemental colors; they are all in the rainbow; out of them we
- manufacture and name fifty shades of them. You have named the
- elementals of the human rainbow, and also one BLEND--heroism,
- which is made out of courage and magnanimity. Very well, then;
- which of these elements does the possessor of it manufacture for
- himself? Is it intellect?
-
- Y.M. No.
-
- O.M. Why?
-
- Y.M. He is born with it.
-
- O.M. Is it courage?
-
- Y.M. No. He is born with it.
-
- O.M. Is it majesty of build, beauty of countenance?
-
- Y.M. No. They are birthrights.
-
- O.M. Take those others--the elemental moral qualities--
- charity, benevolence, magnanimity, kindliness; fruitful seeds,
- out of which spring, through cultivation by outside influences,
- all the manifold blends and combinations of virtues named in the
- dictionaries: does man manufacture any of those seeds, or are
- they all born in him?
-
- Y.M. Born in him.
-
- O.M. Who manufactures them, then?
-
- Y.M. God.
-
- O.M. Where does the credit of it belong?
-
- Y.M. To God.
-
- O.M. And the glory of which you spoke, and the applause?
-
- Y.M. To God.
-
- O.M. Then it is YOU who degrade man. You make him claim
- glory, praise, flattery, for every valuable thing he possesses--
- BORROWED finery, the whole of it; no rag of it earned by himself,
- not a detail of it produced by his own labor. YOU make man a
- humbug; have I done worse by him?
-
- Y.M. You have made a machine of him.
-
- O.M. Who devised that cunning and beautiful mechanism, a
- man's hand?
-
- Y.M. God.
-
- O.M. Who devised the law by which it automatically hammers
- out of a piano an elaborate piece of music, without error, while
- the man is thinking about something else, or talking to a friend?
-
- Y.M. God.
-
- O.M. Who devised the blood? Who devised the wonderful
- machinery which automatically drives its renewing and refreshing
- streams through the body, day and night, without assistance or
- advice from the man? Who devised the man's mind, whose machinery
- works automatically, interests itself in what it pleases,
- regardless of its will or desire, labors all night when it likes,
- deaf to his appeals for mercy? God devised all these things.
- _I_ have not made man a machine, God made him a machine. I am
- merely calling attention to the fact, nothing more. Is it wrong
- to call attention to the fact? Is it a crime?
-
- Y.M. I think it is wrong to EXPOSE a fact when harm can
- come of it.
-
- O.M. Go on.
-
- Y.M. Look at the matter as it stands now. Man has been
- taught that he is the supreme marvel of the Creation; he believes
- it; in all the ages he has never doubted it, whether he was a
- naked savage, or clothed in purple and fine linen, and civilized.
- This has made his heart buoyant, his life cheery. His pride in
- himself, his sincere admiration of himself, his joy in what he
- supposed were his own and unassisted achievements, and his
- exultation over the praise and applause which they evoked--these
- have exalted him, enthused him, ambitioned him to higher and
- higher flights; in a word, made his life worth the living. But
- by your scheme, all this is abolished; he is degraded to a
- machine, he is a nobody, his noble prides wither to mere
- vanities; let him strive as he may, he can never be any better
- than his humblest and stupidest neighbor; he would never be
- cheerful again, his life would not be worth the living.
-
- O.M. You really think that?
-
- Y.M. I certainly do.
-
- O.M. Have you ever seen me uncheerful, unhappy.
-
- Y.M. No.
-
- O.M. Well, _I_ believe these things. Why have they not
- made me unhappy?
-
- Y.M. Oh, well--temperament, of course! You never let THAT
- escape from your scheme.
-
- O.M. That is correct. If a man is born with an unhappy
- temperament, nothing can make him happy; if he is born with a
- happy temperament, nothing can make him unhappy.
-
- Y.M. What--not even a degrading and heart-chilling system
- of beliefs?
-
- O.M. Beliefs? Mere beliefs? Mere convictions? They are
- powerless. They strive in vain against inborn temperament.
-
- Y.M. I can't believe that, and I don't.
-
- O.M. Now you are speaking hastily. It shows that you have
- not studiously examined the facts. Of all your intimates, which
- one is the happiest? Isn't it Burgess?
-
- Y.M. Easily.
-
- O.M. And which one is the unhappiest? Henry Adams?
-
- Y.M. Without a question!
-
- O.M. I know them well. They are extremes, abnormals; their
- temperaments are as opposite as the poles. Their life-histories
- are about alike--but look at the results! Their ages are about
- the same--about around fifty. Burgess had always been buoyant,
- hopeful, happy; Adams has always been cheerless, hopeless,
- despondent. As young fellows both tried country journalism--and
- failed. Burgess didn't seem to mind it; Adams couldn't smile, he
- could only mourn and groan over what had happened and torture
- himself with vain regrets for not having done so and so instead
- of so and so--THEN he would have succeeded. They tried the law--
- and failed. Burgess remained happy--because he couldn't help it.
- Adams was wretched--because he couldn't help it. From that day
- to this, those two men have gone on trying things and failing:
- Burgess has come out happy and cheerful every time; Adams the
- reverse. And we do absolutely know that these men's inborn
- temperaments have remained unchanged through all the vicissitudes
- of their material affairs. Let us see how it is with their
- immaterials. Both have been zealous Democrats; both have been
- zealous Republicans; both have been zealous Mugwumps. Burgess
- has always found happiness and Adams unhappiness in these several
- political beliefs and in their migrations out of them. Both of
- these men have been Presbyterians, Universalists, Methodists,
- Catholics--then Presbyterians again, then Methodists again.
- Burgess has always found rest in these excursions, and Adams
- unrest. They are trying Christian Science, now, with the
- customary result, the inevitable result. No political or
- religious belief can make Burgess unhappy or the other man happy.
- I assure you it is purely a matter of temperament. Beliefs are
- ACQUIREMENTS, temperaments are BORN; beliefs are subject to
- change, nothing whatever can change temperament.
-
- Y.M. You have instanced extreme temperaments.
-
- O.M. Yes, the half-dozen others are modifications of the
- extremes. But the law is the same. Where the temperament is
- two-thirds happy, or two-thirds unhappy, no political or
- religious beliefs can change the proportions. The vast majority
- of temperaments are pretty equally balanced; the intensities are
- absent, and this enables a nation to learn to accommodate itself
- to its political and religious circumstances and like them, be
- satisfied with them, at last prefer them. Nations do not THINK,
- they only FEEL. They get their feelings at second hand through
- their temperaments, not their brains. A nation can be brought--
- by force of circumstances, not argument--to reconcile itself to
- ANY KIND OF GOVERNMENT OR RELIGION THAT CAN BE DEVISED; in time
- it will fit itself to the required conditions; later, it will
- prefer them and will fiercely fight for them. As instances, you
- have all history: the Greeks, the Romans, the Persians, the
- Egyptians, the Russians, the Germans, the French, the English,
- the Spaniards, the Americans, the South Americans, the Japanese,
- the Chinese, the Hindus, the Turks--a thousand wild and tame
- religions, every kind of government that can be thought of, from
- tiger to house-cat, each nation KNOWING it has the only true
- religion and the only sane system of government, each despising
- all the others, each an ass and not suspecting it, each proud of
- its fancied supremacy, each perfectly sure it is the pet of God,
- each without undoubting confidence summoning Him to take command
- in time of war, each surprised when He goes over to the enemy,
- but by habit able to excuse it and resume compliments--in a word,
- the whole human race content, always content, persistently
- content, indestructibly content, happy, thankful, proud, NO
- MATTER WHAT ITS RELIGION IS, NOR WHETHER ITS MASTER BE TIGER OR
- HOUSE-CAT. Am I stating facts? You know I am. Is the human
- race cheerful? You know it is. Considering what it can stand,
- and be happy, you do me too much honor when you think that _I_
- can place before it a system of plain cold facts that can take
- the cheerfulness out of it. Nothing can do that. Everything has
- been tried. Without success. I beg you not to be troubled.
-
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
- THE DEATH OF JEAN
-
-
-
- The death of Jean Clemens occurred early in the morning of
- December 24, 1909. Mr. Clemens was in great stress of mind when
- I first saw him, but a few hours later I found him writing
- steadily.
-
- "I am setting it down," he said, "everything. It is a
- relief to me to write it. It furnishes me an excuse for
- thinking." At intervals during that day and the next I looked
- in, and usually found him writing. Then on the evening of the
- 26th, when he knew that Jean had been laid to rest in Elmira, he
- came to my room with the manuscript in his hand.
-
- "I have finished it," he said; "read it. I can form no
- opinion of it myself. If you think it worthy, some day--at the
- proper time--it can end my autobiography. It is the final
- chapter."
-
- Four months later--almost to the day--(April 21st) he was
- with Jean.
-
-
- Albert Bigelow Paine.
-
-
-
- Stormfield, Christmas Eve, 11 A.M., 1909.
-
-
- JEAN IS DEAD!
-
- Has any one ever tried to put upon paper all the little
- happenings connected with a dear one--happenings of the twenty-
- four hours preceding the sudden and unexpected death of that dear
- one? Would a book contain them? Would two books contain them?
- I think not. They pour into the mind in a flood. They are
- little things that have been always happening every day, and were
- always so unimportant and easily forgettable before--but now!
- Now, how different! how precious they are, now dear, how
- unforgettable, how pathetic, how sacred, how clothed with dignity!
-
- Last night Jean, all flushed with splendid health, and I the
- same, from the wholesome effects of my Bermuda holiday, strolled
- hand in hand from the dinner-table and sat down in the library
- and chatted, and planned, and discussed, cheerily and happily
- (and how unsuspectingly!)--until nine--which is late for us--then
- went upstairs, Jean's friendly German dog following. At my door
- Jean said, "I can't kiss you good night, father: I have a cold,
- and you could catch it." I bent and kissed her hand. She was
- moved--I saw it in her eyes--and she impulsively kissed my hand
- in return. Then with the usual gay "Sleep well, dear!" from
- both, we parted.
-
- At half past seven this morning I woke, and heard voices
- outside my door. I said to myself, "Jean is starting on her
- usual horseback flight to the station for the mail." Then Katy
- [1] entered, stood quaking and gasping at my bedside a moment,
- then found her tongue:
-
- "MISS JEAN IS DEAD!"
-
- Possibly I know now what the soldier feels when a bullet
- crashes through his heart.
-
- In her bathroom there she lay, the fair young creature,
- stretched upon the floor and covered with a sheet. And looking
- so placid, so natural, and as if asleep. We knew what had
- happened. She was an epileptic: she had been seized with a
- convulsion and heart failure in her bath. The doctor had to come
- several miles. His efforts, like our previous ones, failed to
- bring her back to life.
-
- It is noon, now. How lovable she looks, how sweet and how
- tranquil! It is a noble face, and full of dignity; and that was
- a good heart that lies there so still.
-
- In England, thirteen years ago, my wife and I were stabbed
- to the heart with a cablegram which said, "Susy was mercifully
- released today." I had to send a like shot to Clara, in Berlin,
- this morning. With the peremptory addition, "You must not come
- home." Clara and her husband sailed from here on the 11th of
- this month. How will Clara bear it? Jean, from her babyhood,
- was a worshiper of Clara.
-
- Four days ago I came back from a month's holiday in Bermuda
- in perfected health; but by some accident the reporters failed to
- perceive this. Day before yesterday, letters and telegrams began
- to arrive from friends and strangers which indicated that I was
- supposed to be dangerously ill. Yesterday Jean begged me to
- explain my case through the Associated Press. I said it was not
- important enough; but she was distressed and said I must think of
- Clara. Clara would see the report in the German papers, and as
- she had been nursing her husband day and night for four months
- [2] and was worn out and feeble, the shock might be disastrous.
- There was reason in that; so I sent a humorous paragraph by
- telephone to the Associated Press denying the "charge" that I was
- "dying," and saying "I would not do such a thing at my time of
- life."
-
- Jean was a little troubled, and did not like to see me treat
- the matter so lightly; but I said it was best to treat it so, for
- there was nothing serious about it. This morning I sent the
- sorrowful facts of this day's irremediable disaster to the
- Associated Press. Will both appear in this evening's papers?--
- the one so blithe, the other so tragic?
-
-
- I lost Susy thirteen years ago; I lost her mother--her
- incomparable mother!--five and a half years ago; Clara has gone
- away to live in Europe; and now I have lost Jean. How poor I am,
- who was once so rich! Seven months ago Mr. Roger died--one of
- the best friends I ever had, and the nearest perfect, as man and
- gentleman, I have yet met among my race; within the last six
- weeks Gilder has passed away, and Laffan--old, old friends of
- mine. Jean lies yonder, I sit here; we are strangers under our
- own roof; we kissed hands good-by at this door last night--and it
- was forever, we never suspecting it. She lies there, and I sit
- here--writing, busying myself, to keep my heart from breaking.
- How dazzlingly the sunshine is flooding the hills around! It is
- like a mockery.
-
- Seventy-four years ago twenty-four days ago. Seventy-four
- years old yesterday. Who can estimate my age today?
-
- I have looked upon her again. I wonder I can bear it. She
- looks just as her mother looked when she lay dead in that
- Florentine villa so long ago. The sweet placidity of death! it
- is more beautiful than sleep.
-
- I saw her mother buried. I said I would never endure that
- horror again; that I would never again look into the grave of any
- one dear to me. I have kept to that. They will take Jean from
- this house tomorrow, and bear her to Elmira, New York, where lie
- those of us that have been released, but I shall not follow.
-
- Jean was on the dock when the ship came in, only four days
- ago. She was at the door, beaming a welcome, when I reached this
- house the next evening. We played cards, and she tried to teach
- me a new game called "Mark Twain." We sat chatting cheerily in
- the library last night, and she wouldn't let me look into the
- loggia, where she was making Christmas preparations. She said
- she would finish them in the morning, and then her little French
- friend would arrive from New York--the surprise would follow; the
- surprise she had been working over for days. While she was out
- for a moment I disloyally stole a look. The loggia floor was
- clothed with rugs and furnished with chairs and sofas; and the
- uncompleted surprise was there: in the form of a Christmas tree
- that was drenched with silver film in a most wonderful way; and
- on a table was prodigal profusion of bright things which she was
- going to hang upon it today. What desecrating hand will ever
- banish that eloquent unfinished surprise from that place? Not
- mine, surely. All these little matters have happened in the last
- four days. "Little." Yes--THEN. But not now. Nothing she said
- or thought or did is little now. And all the lavish humor!--what
- is become of it? It is pathos, now. Pathos, and the thought of
- it brings tears.
-
- All these little things happened such a few hours ago--and
- now she lies yonder. Lies yonder, and cares for nothing any
- more. Strange--marvelous--incredible! I have had this
- experience before; but it would still be incredible if I had had
- it a thousand times.
-
-
- "MISS JEAN IS DEAD!"
-
- That is what Katy said. When I heard the door open behind
- the bed's head without a preliminary knock, I supposed it was
- Jean coming to kiss me good morning, she being the only person
- who was used to entering without formalities.
-
- And so--
-
- I have been to Jean's parlor. Such a turmoil of Christmas
- presents for servants and friends! They are everywhere; tables,
- chairs, sofas, the floor--everything is occupied, and over-
- occupied. It is many and many a year since I have seen the like.
- In that ancient day Mrs. Clemens and I used to slip softly into
- the nursery at midnight on Christmas Eve and look the array of
- presents over. The children were little then. And now here is
- Jean's parlor looking just as that nursery used to look. The
- presents are not labeled--the hands are forever idle that would
- have labeled them today. Jean's mother always worked herself
- down with her Christmas preparations. Jean did the same
- yesterday and the preceding days, and the fatigue has cost her
- her life. The fatigue caused the convulsion that attacked her
- this morning. She had had no attack for months.
-
-
- Jean was so full of life and energy that she was constantly
- is danger of overtaxing her strength. Every morning she was in
- the saddle by half past seven, and off to the station for her
- mail. She examined the letters and I distributed them: some to
- her, some to Mr. Paine, the others to the stenographer and
- myself. She dispatched her share and then mounted her horse
- again and went around superintending her farm and her poultry the
- rest of the day. Sometimes she played billiards with me after
- dinner, but she was usually too tired to play, and went early to
- bed.
-
- Yesterday afternoon I told her about some plans I had been
- devising while absent in Bermuda, to lighten her burdens. We
- would get a housekeeper; also we would put her share of the
- secretary-work into Mr. Paine's hands.
-
- No--she wasn't willing. She had been making plans herself.
- The matter ended in a compromise, I submitted. I always did.
- She wouldn't audit the bills and let Paine fill out the checks--
- she would continue to attend to that herself. Also, she would
- continue to be housekeeper, and let Katy assist. Also, she would
- continue to answer the letters of personal friends for me. Such
- was the compromise. Both of us called it by that name, though I
- was not able to see where my formidable change had been made.
-
- However, Jean was pleased, and that was sufficient for me.
- She was proud of being my secretary, and I was never able to persuade
- her to give up any part of her share in that unlovely work.
-
- In the talk last night I said I found everything going so
- smoothly that if she were willing I would go back to Bermuda in
- February and get blessedly out of the clash and turmoil again for
- another month. She was urgent that I should do it, and said that
- if I would put off the trip until March she would take Katy and
- go with me. We struck hands upon that, and said it was settled.
- I had a mind to write to Bermuda by tomorrow's ship and secure a
- furnished house and servants. I meant to write the letter this
- morning. But it will never be written, now.
-
- For she lies yonder, and before her is another journey than that.
-
- Night is closing down; the rim of the sun barely shows above the
- sky-line of the hills.
-
- I have been looking at that face again that was growing dearer
- and dearer to me every day. I was getting acquainted with
- Jean in these last nine months. She had been long an exile from
- home when she came to us three-quarters of a year ago. She had
- been shut up in sanitariums, many miles from us. How eloquent
- glad and grateful she was to cross her father's threshold again!
-
- Would I bring her back to life if I could do it? I would not.
- If a word would do it, I would beg for strength to withhold
- the word. And I would have the strength; I am sure of it. In
- her loss I am almost bankrupt, and my life is a bitterness, but I
- am content: for she has been enriched with the most precious of
- all gifts--that gift which makes all other gifts mean and poor--
- death. I have never wanted any released friend of mine restored
- to life since I reached manhood. I felt in this way when Susy
- passed away; and later my wife, and later Mr. Rogers. When Clara
- met me at the station in New York and told me Mr. Rogers had died
- suddenly that morning, my thought was, Oh, favorite of fortune--
- fortunate all his long and lovely life--fortunate to his latest
- moment! The reporters said there were tears of sorrow in my
- eyes. True--but they were for ME, not for him. He had suffered
- no loss. All the fortunes he had ever made before were poverty
- compared with this one.
-
-
- Why did I build this house, two years ago? To shelter this
- vast emptiness? How foolish I was! But I shall stay in it. The
- spirits of the dead hallow a house, for me. It was not so with
- other members of the family. Susy died in the house we built in
- Hartford. Mrs. Clemens would never enter it again. But it made
- the house dearer to me. I have entered it once since, when it
- was tenantless and silent and forlorn, but to me it was a holy
- place and beautiful. It seemed to me that the spirits of the
- dead were all about me, and would speak to me and welcome me if
- they could: Livy, and Susy, and George, and Henry Robinson, and
- Charles Dudley Warner. How good and kind they were, and how
- lovable their lives! In fancy I could see them all again, I
- could call the children back and hear them romp again with
- George--that peerless black ex-slave and children's idol who came
- one day--a flitting stranger--to wash windows, and stayed
- eighteen years. Until he died. Clara and Jean would never enter
- again the New York hotel which their mother had frequented in
- earlier days. They could not bear it. But I shall stay in this
- house. It is dearer to me tonight than ever it was before.
- Jean's spirit will make it beautiful for me always. Her lonely
- and tragic death--but I will not think of that now.
-
-
- Jean's mother always devoted two or three weeks to Christmas
- shopping, and was always physically exhausted when Christmas Eve
- came. Jean was her very own child--she wore herself out present-
- hunting in New York these latter days. Paine has just found on
- her desk a long list of names--fifty, he thinks--people to whom
- she sent presents last night. Apparently she forgot no one. And
- Katy found there a roll of bank-notes, for the servants.
-
- Her dog has been wandering about the grounds today,
- comradeless and forlorn. I have seen him from the windows. She
- got him from Germany. He has tall ears and looks exactly like a
- wolf. He was educated in Germany, and knows no language but the
- German. Jean gave him no orders save in that tongue. And so
- when the burglar-alarm made a fierce clamor at midnight a
- fortnight ago, the butler, who is French and knows no German,
- tried in vain to interest the dog in the supposed burglar. Jean
- wrote me, to Bermuda, about the incident. It was the last letter
- I was ever to receive from her bright head and her competent hand.
- The dog will not be neglected.
-
-
- There was never a kinder heart than Jean's. From her
- childhood up she always spent the most of her allowance on
- charities of one kind or another. After she became secretary and
- had her income doubled she spent her money upon these things with
- a free hand. Mine too, I am glad and grateful to say.
-
- She was a loyal friend to all animals, and she loved them
- all, birds, beasts, and everything--even snakes--an inheritance
- from me. She knew all the birds; she was high up in that lore.
- She became a member of various humane societies when she was
- still a little girl--both here and abroad--and she remained an
- active member to the last. She founded two or three societies
- for the protection of animals, here and in Europe.
-
- She was an embarrassing secretary, for she fished my
- correspondence out of the waste-basket and answered the letters.
- She thought all letters deserved the courtesy of an answer.
- Her mother brought her up in that kindly error.
-
- She could write a good letter, and was swift with her pen.
- She had but an indifferent ear music, but her tongue took to
- languages with an easy facility. She never allowed her Italian,
- French, and German to get rusty through neglect.
-
- The telegrams of sympathy are flowing in, from far and wide,
- now, just as they did in Italy five years and a half ago, when
- this child's mother laid down her blameless life. They cannot
- heal the hurt, but they take away some of the pain. When Jean
- and I kissed hands and parted at my door last, how little did we
- imagine that in twenty-two hours the telegraph would be bringing
- words like these:
-
- "From the bottom of our hearts we send out sympathy,
- dearest of friends."
-
-
- For many and many a day to come, wherever I go in this house,
- remembrancers of Jean will mutely speak to me of her. Who can
- count the number of them?
-
- She was in exile two years with the hope of healing her
- malady--epilepsy. There are no words to express how grateful I
- am that she did not meet her fate in the hands of strangers, but
- in the loving shelter of her own home.
-
-
- "MISS JEAN IS DEAD!"
-
- It is true. Jean is dead.
-
- A month ago I was writing bubbling and hilarious articles
- for magazines yet to appear, and now I am writing--this.
-
-
- CHRISTMAS DAY. NOON.--Last night I went to Jean's room at
- intervals, and turned back the sheet and looked at the peaceful
- face, and kissed the cold brow, and remembered that heartbreaking
- night in Florence so long ago, in that cavernous and silent vast
- villa, when I crept downstairs so many times, and turned back a
- sheet and looked at a face just like this one--Jean's mother's
- face--and kissed a brow that was just like this one. And last
- night I saw again what I had seen then--that strange and lovely
- miracle--the sweet, soft contours of early maidenhood restored by
- the gracious hand of death! When Jean's mother lay dead, all
- trace of care, and trouble, and suffering, and the corroding
- years had vanished out of the face, and I was looking again upon
- it as I had known and worshipped it in its young bloom and beauty
- a whole generation before.
-
- About three in the morning, while wandering about the house
- in the deep silences, as one dies in times like these, when there
- is a dumb sense that something has been lost that will never be
- found again, yet must be sought, if only for the employment the
- useless seeking gives, I came upon Jean's dog in the hall
- downstairs, and noted that he did not spring to greet me,
- according to his hospitable habit, but came slow and sorrowfully;
- also I remembered that he had not visited Jean's apartment since
- the tragedy. Poor fellow, did he know? I think so. Always when
- Jean was abroad in the open he was with her; always when she was
- in the house he was with her, in the night as well as in the day.
- Her parlor was his bedroom. Whenever I happened upon him on the
- ground floor he always followed me about, and when I went
- upstairs he went too--in a tumultuous gallop. But now it was
- different: after patting him a little I went to the library--he
- remained behind; when I went upstairs he did not follow me, save
- with his wistful eyes. He has wonderful eyes--big, and kind, and
- eloquent. He can talk with them. He is a beautiful creature,
- and is of the breed of the New York police-dogs. I do not like
- dogs, because they bark when there is no occasion for it; but I
- have liked this one from the beginning, because he belonged to
- Jean, and because he never barks except when there is occasion--
- which is not oftener than twice a week.
-
- In my wanderings I visited Jean's parlor. On a shelf I
- found a pile of my books, and I knew what it meant. She was
- waiting for me to come home from Bermuda and autograph them, then
- she would send them away. If I only knew whom she intended them
- for! But I shall never know. I will keep them. Her hand has
- touched them--it is an accolade--they are noble, now.
-
- And in a closet she had hidden a surprise for me--a thing I
- have often wished I owned: a noble big globe. I couldn't see it
- for the tears. She will never know the pride I take in it, and
- the pleasure. Today the mails are full of loving remembrances
- for her: full of those old, old kind words she loved so well,
- "Merry Christmas to Jean!" If she could only have lived one day
- longer!
-
- At last she ran out of money, and would not use mine. So
- she sent to one of those New York homes for poor girls all the
- clothes she could spare--and more, most likely.
-
-
- CHRISTMAS NIGHT.--This afternoon they took her away from her
- room. As soon as I might, I went down to the library, and there
- she lay, in her coffin, dressed in exactly the same clothes she
- wore when she stood at the other end of the same room on the 6th
- of October last, as Clara's chief bridesmaid. Her face was
- radiant with happy excitement then; it was the same face now,
- with the dignity of death and the peace of God upon it.
-
- They told me the first mourner to come was the dog. He came
- uninvited, and stood up on his hind legs and rested his fore paws
- upon the trestle, and took a last long look at the face that was
- so dear to him, then went his way as silently as he had come.
- HE KNOWS.
-
- At mid-afternoon it began to snow. The pity of it--that
- Jean could not see it! She so loved the snow.
-
- The snow continued to fall. At six o'clock the hearse drew
- up to the door to bear away its pathetic burden. As they lifted
- the casket, Paine began playing on the orchestrelle Schubert's
- "Impromptu," which was Jean's favorite. Then he played the
- Intermezzo; that was for Susy; then he played the Largo; that was
- for their mother. He did this at my request. Elsewhere in my
- Autobiography I have told how the Intermezzo and the Largo came
- to be associated in my heart with Susy and Livy in their last
- hours in this life.
-
- From my windows I saw the hearse and the carriages wind
- along the road and gradually grow vague and spectral in the
- falling snow, and presently disappear. Jean was gone out of my
- life, and would not come back any more. Jervis, the cousin she
- had played with when they were babies together--he and her
- beloved old Katy--were conducting her to her distant childhood
- home, where she will lie by her mother's side once more, in the
- company of Susy and Langdon.
-
-
- DECEMBER 26TH. The dog came to see me at eight o'clock this
- morning. He was very affectionate, poor orphan! My room will be
- his quarters hereafter.
-
- The storm raged all night. It has raged all the morning.
- The snow drives across the landscape in vast clouds, superb,
- sublime--and Jean not here to see.
-
-
- 2:30 P.M.--It is the time appointed. The funeral has begun.
- Four hundred miles away, but I can see it all, just as if I were
- there. The scene is the library in the Langdon homestead.
- Jean's coffin stands where her mother and I stood, forty years
- ago, and were married; and where Susy's coffin stood thirteen
- years ago; where her mother's stood five years and a half ago;
- and where mine will stand after a little time.
-
-
- FIVE O'CLOCK.--It is all over.
-
-
- When Clara went away two weeks ago to live in Europe, it was
- hard, but I could bear it, for I had Jean left. I said WE would
- be a family. We said we would be close comrades and happy--just
- we two. That fair dream was in my mind when Jean met me at the
- steamer last Monday; it was in my mind when she received me at
- the door last Tuesday evening. We were together; WE WERE A
- FAMILY! the dream had come true--oh, precisely true, contentedly,
- true, satisfyingly true! and remained true two whole days.
-
- And now? Now Jean is in her grave!
-
- In the grave--if I can believe it. God rest her sweet
- spirit!
-
- -----
-
- 1. Katy Leary, who had been in the service of the Clemens family
- for twenty-nine years.
-
- 2. Mr. Gabrilowitsch had been operated on for appendicitis.
-
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
-
- THE TURNING-POINT OF MY LIFE
-
-
- I
-
- If I understand the idea, the BAZAR invites several of us to
- write upon the above text. It means the change in my life's
- course which introduced what must be regarded by me as the most
- IMPORTANT condition of my career. But it also implies--without
- intention, perhaps--that that turning-point ITSELF was the
- creator of the new condition. This gives it too much
- distinction, too much prominence, too much credit. It is only
- the LAST link in a very long chain of turning-points commissioned
- to produce the cardinal result; it is not any more important than
- the humblest of its ten thousand predecessors. Each of the ten
- thousand did its appointed share, on its appointed date, in
- forwarding the scheme, and they were all necessary; to have left
- out any one of them would have defeated the scheme and brought
- about SOME OTHER result. It know we have a fashion of saying
- "such and such an event was the turning-point in my life," but we
- shouldn't say it. We should merely grant that its place as LAST
- link in the chain makes it the most CONSPICUOUS link; in real
- importance it has no advantage over any one of its predecessors.
-
- Perhaps the most celebrated turning-point recorded in
- history was the crossing of the Rubicon. Suetonius says:
-
-
- Coming up with his troops on the banks of the Rubicon, he
- halted for a while, and, revolving in his mind the importance of
- the step he was on the point of taking, he turned to those about
- him and said, "We may still retreat; but if we pass this little
- bridge, nothing is left for us but to fight it out in arms."
-
-
- This was a stupendously important moment. And all the
- incidents, big and little, of Caesar's previous life had been
- leading up to it, stage by stage, link by link. This was the
- LAST link--merely the last one, and no bigger than the others;
- but as we gaze back at it through the inflating mists of our
- imagination, it looks as big as the orbit of Neptune.
-
- You, the reader, have a PERSONAL interest in that link, and
- so have I; so has the rest of the human race. It was one of the
- links in your life-chain, and it was one of the links in mine.
- We may wait, now, with baited breath, while Caesar reflects.
- Your fate and mine are involved in his decision.
-
- While he was thus hesitating, the following incident
- occurred. A person remarked for his noble mien and graceful
- aspect appeared close at hand, sitting and playing upon a pipe.
- When not only the shepherds, but a number of soldiers also,
- flocked to listen to him, and some trumpeters among them, he
- snatched a trumpet from one of them, ran to the river with it,
- and, sounding the advance with a piercing blast, crossed to the
- other side. Upon this, Caesar exclaimed: "Let us go whither the
- omens of the gods and the iniquity of our enemies call up.
- THE DIE IS CAST."
-
- So he crossed--and changed the future of the whole human
- race, for all time. But that stranger was a link in Caesar's
- life-chain, too; and a necessary one. We don't know his name, we
- never hear of him again; he was very casual; he acts like an
- accident; but he was no accident, he was there by compulsion of
- HIS life-chain, to blow the electrifying blast that was to make
- up Caesar's mind for him, and thence go piping down the aisles of
- history forever.
-
- If the stranger hadn't been there! But he WAS. And Caesar
- crossed. With such results! Such vast events--each a link in
- the HUMAN RACE'S life-chain; each event producing the next one,
- and that one the next one, and so on: the destruction of the
- republic; the founding of the empire; the breaking up of the
- empire; the rise of Christianity upon its ruins; the spread of
- the religion to other lands--and so on; link by link took its
- appointed place at its appointed time, the discovery of America
- being one of them; our Revolution another; the inflow of English
- and other immigrants another; their drift westward (my ancestors
- among them) another; the settlement of certain of them in
- Missouri, which resulted in ME. For I was one of the unavoidable
- results of the crossing of the Rubicon. If the stranger, with
- his trumpet blast, had stayed away (which he COULDN'T, for he was
- the appointed link) Caesar would not have crossed. What would
- have happened, in that case, we can never guess. We only know
- that the things that did happen would not have happened. They
- might have been replaced by equally prodigious things, of course,
- but their nature and results are beyond our guessing. But the
- matter that interests me personally is that I would not be HERE
- now, but somewhere else; and probably black--there is no telling.
- Very well, I am glad he crossed. And very really and thankfully
- glad, too, though I never cared anything about it before.
-
-
-
- II
-
- To me, the most important feature of my life is its literary
- feature. I have been professionally literary something more than
- forty years. There have been many turning-points in my life, but
- the one that was the link in the chain appointed to conduct me to
- the literary guild is the most CONSPICUOUS link in that chain.
- BECAUSE it was the last one. It was not any more important than
- its predecessors. All the other links have an inconspicuous
- look, except the crossing of the Rubicon; but as factors in
- making me literary they are all of the one size, the crossing of
- the Rubicon included.
-
- I know how I came to be literary, and I will tell the steps
- that lead up to it and brought it about.
-
- The crossing of the Rubicon was not the first one, it was
- hardly even a recent one; I should have to go back ages before
- Caesar's day to find the first one. To save space I will go back
- only a couple of generations and start with an incident of my
- boyhood. When I was twelve and a half years old, my father died.
- It was in the spring. The summer came, and brought with it an
- epidemic of measles. For a time a child died almost every day.
- The village was paralyzed with fright, distress, despair.
- Children that were not smitten with the disease were imprisoned
- in their homes to save them from the infection. In the homes
- there were no cheerful faces, there was no music, there was no
- singing but of solemn hymns, no voice but of prayer, no romping
- was allowed, no noise, no laughter, the family moved spectrally
- about on tiptoe, in a ghostly hush. I was a prisoner. My soul
- was steeped in this awful dreariness--and in fear. At some time
- or other every day and every night a sudden shiver shook me to
- the marrow, and I said to myself, "There, I've got it! and I
- shall die." Life on these miserable terms was not worth living,
- and at last I made up my mind to get the disease and have it
- over, one way or the other. I escaped from the house and went to
- the house of a neighbor where a playmate of mine was very ill
- with the malady. When the chance offered I crept into his room
- and got into bed with him. I was discovered by his mother and
- sent back into captivity. But I had the disease; they could not
- take that from me. I came near to dying. The whole village was
- interested, and anxious, and sent for news of me every day; and
- not only once a day, but several times. Everybody believed I
- would die; but on the fourteenth day a change came for the worse
- and they were disappointed.
-
- This was a turning-point of my life. (Link number one.)
- For when I got well my mother closed my school career and
- apprenticed me to a printer. She was tired of trying to keep me
- out of mischief, and the adventure of the measles decided her to
- put me into more masterful hands than hers.
-
- I became a printer, and began to add one link after another
- to the chain which was to lead me into the literary profession.
- A long road, but I could not know that; and as I did not know
- what its goal was, or even that it had one, I was indifferent.
- Also contented.
-
- A young printer wanders around a good deal, seeking and
- finding work; and seeking again, when necessity commands. N. B.
- Necessity is a CIRCUMSTANCE; Circumstance is man's master--and
- when Circumstance commands, he must obey; he may argue the
- matter--that is his privilege, just as it is the honorable
- privilege of a falling body to argue with the attraction of
- gravitation--but it won't do any good, he must OBEY. I wandered
- for ten years, under the guidance and dictatorship of
- Circumstance, and finally arrived in a city of Iowa, where I
- worked several months. Among the books that interested me in
- those days was one about the Amazon. The traveler told an
- alluring tale of his long voyage up the great river from Para to
- the sources of the Madeira, through the heart of an enchanted
- land, a land wastefully rich in tropical wonders, a romantic land
- where all the birds and flowers and animals were of the museum
- varieties, and where the alligator and the crocodile and the
- monkey seemed as much at home as if they were in the Zoo. Also,
- he told an astonishing tale about COCA, a vegetable product of
- miraculous powers, asserting that it was so nourishing and so
- strength-giving that the native of the mountains of the Madeira
- region would tramp up hill and down all day on a pinch of
- powdered coca and require no other sustenance.
-
- I was fired with a longing to ascend the Amazon. Also with
- a longing to open up a trade in coca with all the world. During
- months I dreamed that dream, and tried to contrive ways to get to
- Para and spring that splendid enterprise upon an unsuspecting
- planet. But all in vain. A person may PLAN as much as he wants
- to, but nothing of consequence is likely to come of it until the
- magician CIRCUMSTANCE steps in and takes the matter off his
- hands. At last Circumstance came to my help. It was in this
- way. Circumstance, to help or hurt another man, made him lose a
- fifty-dollar bill in the street; and to help or hurt me, made me
- find it. I advertised the find, and left for the Amazon the same
- day. This was another turning-point, another link.
-
- Could Circumstance have ordered another dweller in that town
- to go to the Amazon and open up a world-trade in coca on a fifty-
- dollar basis and been obeyed? No, I was the only one. There
- were other fools there--shoals and shoals of them--but they were
- not of my kind. I was the only one of my kind.
-
- Circumstance is powerful, but it cannot work alone; it has
- to have a partner. Its partner is man's TEMPERAMENT--his natural
- disposition. His temperament is not his invention, it is BORN in
- him, and he has no authority over it, neither is he responsible
- for its acts. He cannot change it, nothing can change it,
- nothing can modify it--except temporarily. But it won't stay
- modified. It is permanent, like the color of the man's eyes and
- the shape of his ears. Blue eyes are gray in certain unusual lights;
- but they resume their natural color when that stress is removed.
-
- A Circumstance that will coerce one man will have no effect
- upon a man of a different temperament. If Circumstance had
- thrown the bank-note in Caesar's way, his temperament would not
- have made him start for the Amazon. His temperament would have
- compelled him to do something with the money, but not that. It
- might have made him advertise the note--and WAIT. We can't tell.
- Also, it might have made him go to New York and buy into the
- Government, with results that would leave Tweed nothing to learn
- when it came his turn.
-
- Very well, Circumstance furnished the capital, and my
- temperament told me what to do with it. Sometimes a temperament
- is an ass. When that is the case of the owner of it is an ass,
- too, and is going to remain one. Training, experience,
- association, can temporarily so polish him, improve him, exalt
- him that people will think he is a mule, but they will be
- mistaken. Artificially he IS a mule, for the time being, but at
- bottom he is an ass yet, and will remain one.
-
- By temperament I was the kind of person that DOES things.
- Does them, and reflects afterward. So I started for the Amazon
- without reflecting and without asking any questions. That was
- more than fifty years ago. In all that time my temperament has
- not changed, by even a shade. I have been punished many and many
- a time, and bitterly, for doing things and reflecting afterward,
- but these tortures have been of no value to me; I still do the
- thing commanded by Circumstance and Temperament, and reflect
- afterward. Always violently. When I am reflecting, on these
- occasions, even deaf persons can hear me think.
-
- I went by the way of Cincinnati, and down the Ohio and
- Mississippi. My idea was to take ship, at New Orleans, for Para.
- In New Orleans I inquired, and found there was no ship leaving
- for Para. Also, that there never had BEEN one leaving for Para.
- I reflected. A policeman came and asked me what I was doing, and
- I told him. He made me move on, and said if he caught me
- reflecting in the public street again he would run me in.
-
- After a few days I was out of money. Then Circumstance
- arrived, with another turning-point of my life--a new link. On
- my way down, I had made the acquaintance of a pilot. I begged
- him to teach me the river, and he consented. I became a pilot.
-
- By and by Circumstance came again--introducing the Civil
- War, this time, in order to push me ahead another stage or two
- toward the literary profession. The boats stopped running, my
- livelihood was gone.
-
- Circumstance came to the rescue with a new turning-point and
- a fresh link. My brother was appointed secretary to the new
- Territory of Nevada, and he invited me to go with him and help
- him in his office. I accepted.
-
- In Nevada, Circumstance furnished me the silver fever and I
- went into the mines to make a fortune, as I supposed; but that
- was not the idea. The idea was to advance me another step toward
- literature. For amusement I scribbled things for the Virginia
- City ENTERPRISE. One isn't a printer ten years without setting
- up acres of good and bad literature, and learning--unconsciously
- at first, consciously later--to discriminate between the two,
- within his mental limitations; and meantime he is unconsciously
- acquiring what is called a "style." One of my efforts attracted
- attention, and the ENTERPRISE sent for me and put me on its staff.
-
- And so I became a journalist--another link. By and by Circumstance
- and the Sacramento UNION sent me to the Sandwich Islands for five
- or six months, to write up sugar. I did it; and threw in a good
- deal of extraneous matter that hadn't anything to do with sugar.
- But it was this extraneous matter that helped me to another link.
-
- It made me notorious, and San Francisco invited me to lecture.
- Which I did. And profitably. I had long had a desire to travel
- and see the world, and now Circumstance had most kindly and
- unexpectedly hurled me upon the platform and furnished me the means.
- So I joined the "Quaker City Excursion."
-
- When I returned to America, Circumstance was waiting on the pier--
- with the LAST link--the conspicuous, the consummating, the
- victorious link: I was asked to WRITE A BOOK, and I did it, and
- called it THE INNOCENTS ABROAD. Thus I became at last a member
- of the literary guild. That was forty-two years ago, and I have
- been a member ever since. Leaving the Rubicon incident away back
- where it belongs, I can say with truth that the reason I am in
- the literary profession is because I had the measles when I was
- twelve years old.
-
-
- III
-
- Now what interests me, as regards these details, is not the
- details themselves, but the fact that none of them was foreseen
- by me, none of them was planned by me, I was the author of none
- of them. Circumstance, working in harness with my temperament,
- created them all and compelled them all. I often offered help,
- and with the best intentions, but it was rejected--as a rule,
- uncourteously. I could never plan a thing and get it to come out
- the way I planned it. It came out some other way--some way I had
- not counted upon.
-
- And so I do not admire the human being--as an intellectual
- marvel--as much as I did when I was young, and got him out of
- books, and did not know him personally. When I used to read that
- such and such a general did a certain brilliant thing, I believed
- it. Whereas it was not so. Circumstance did it by help of his
- temperament. The circumstances would have failed of effect with
- a general of another temperament: he might see the chance, but
- lose the advantage by being by nature too slow or too quick or
- too doubtful. Once General Grant was asked a question about a
- matter which had been much debated by the public and the
- newspapers; he answered the question without any hesitancy.
- "General, who planned the the march through Georgia?" "The
- enemy!" He added that the enemy usually makes your plans for
- you. He meant that the enemy by neglect or through force of
- circumstances leaves an opening for you, and you see your chance
- and take advantage of it.
-
- Circumstances do the planning for us all, no doubt, by help
- of our temperaments. I see no great difference between a man and
- a watch, except that the man is conscious and the watch isn't,
- and the man TRIES to plan things and the watch doesn't. The
- watch doesn't wind itself and doesn't regulate itself--these
- things are done exteriorly. Outside influences, outside
- circumstances, wind the MAN and regulate him. Left to himself,
- he wouldn't get regulated at all, and the sort of time he would
- keep would not be valuable. Some rare men are wonderful watches,
- with gold case, compensation balance, and all those things, and
- some men are only simple and sweet and humble Waterburys. I am a
- Waterbury. A Waterbury of that kind, some say.
-
- A nation is only an individual multiplied. It makes plans
- and Circumstances comes and upsets them--or enlarges them. Some
- patriots throw the tea overboard; some other patriots destroy a
- Bastille. The PLANS stop there; then Circumstance comes in,
- quite unexpectedly, and turns these modest riots into a revolution.
-
- And there was poor Columbus. He elaborated a deep plan to
- find a new route to an old country. Circumstance revised his
- plan for him, and he found a new WORLD. And HE gets the credit
- of it to this day. He hadn't anything to do with it.
-
- Necessarily the scene of the real turning-point of my life
- (and of yours) was the Garden of Eden. It was there that the
- first link was forged of the chain that was ultimately to lead to
- the emptying of me into the literary guild. Adam's TEMPERAMENT
- was the first command the Deity ever issued to a human being on
- this planet. And it was the only command Adam would NEVER be
- able to disobey. It said, "Be weak, be water, be characterless,
- be cheaply persuadable." The latter command, to let the fruit
- alone, was certain to be disobeyed. Not by Adam himself, but by
- his TEMPERAMENT--which he did not create and had no authority
- over. For the TEMPERAMENT is the man; the thing tricked out with
- clothes and named Man is merely its Shadow, nothing more. The
- law of the tiger's temperament is, Thou shalt kill; the law of
- the sheep's temperament is Thou shalt not kill. To issue later
- commands requiring the tiger to let the fat stranger alone, and
- requiring the sheep to imbue its hands in the blood of the lion
- is not worth while, for those commands CAN'T be obeyed. They
- would invite to violations of the law of TEMPERAMENT, which is
- supreme, and take precedence of all other authorities. I cannot
- help feeling disappointed in Adam and Eve. That is, in their
- temperaments. Not in THEM, poor helpless young creatures--
- afflicted with temperaments made out of butter; which butter was
- commanded to get into contact with fire and BE MELTED. What I
- cannot help wishing is, that Adam had been postponed, and Martin
- Luther and Joan of Arc put in their place--that splendid pair
- equipped with temperaments not made of butter, but of asbestos.
- By neither sugary persuasions nor by hell fire could Satan have
- beguiled THEM to eat the apple. There would have been results!
- Indeed, yes. The apple would be intact today; there would be no
- human race; there would be no YOU; there would be no ME. And the
- old, old creation-dawn scheme of ultimately launching me into the
- literary guild would have been defeated.
-
- ------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
- HOW TO MAKE HISTORY DATES STICK
-
- These chapters are for children, and I shall try to make the
- words large enough to command respect. In the hope that you are
- listening, and that you have confidence in me, I will proceed.
- Dates are difficult things to acquire; and after they are
- acquired it is difficult to keep them in the head. But they are
- very valuable. They are like the cattle-pens of a ranch--they
- shut in the several brands of historical cattle, each within its
- own fence, and keep them from getting mixed together. Dates are
- hard to remember because they consist of figures; figures are
- monotonously unstriking in appearance, and they don't take hold,
- they form no pictures, and so they give the eye no chance to
- help. Pictures are the thing. Pictures can make dates stick.
- They can make nearly anything stick--particularly IF YOU MAKE THE
- PICTURES YOURSELF. Indeed, that is the great point--make the
- pictures YOURSELF. I know about this from experience. Thirty
- years ago I was delivering a memorized lecture every night, and
- every night I had to help myself with a page of notes to keep
- from getting myself mixed. The notes consisted of beginnings of
- sentences, and were eleven in number, and they ran something like
- this:
-
- "IN THAT REGION THE WEATHER--"
-
- "AT THAT TIME IT WAS A CUSTOM--"
-
- "BUT IN CALIFORNIA ONE NEVER HEARD--"
-
- Eleven of them. They initialed the brief divisions of the
- lecture and protected me against skipping. But they all looked
- about alike on the page; they formed no picture; I had them by
- heart, but I could never with certainty remember the order of
- their succession; therefore I always had to keep those notes by
- me and look at them every little while. Once I mislaid them; you
- will not be able to imagine the terrors of that evening. I now
- saw that I must invent some other protection. So I got ten of
- the initial letters by heart in their proper order--I, A, B, and
- so on--and I went on the platform the next night with these
- marked in ink on my ten finger-nails. But it didn't answer. I
- kept track of the figures for a while; then I lost it, and after
- that I was never quite sure which finger I had used last. I
- couldn't lick off a letter after using it, for while that would
- have made success certain it also would have provoked too much
- curiosity. There was curiosity enough without that. To the
- audience I seemed more interested in my fingernails than I was in
- my subject; one or two persons asked me afterward what was the
- matter with my hands.
-
- It was now that the idea of pictures occurred to me; then my
- troubles passed away. In two minutes I made six pictures with a
- pen, and they did the work of the eleven catch-sentences, and did
- it perfectly. I threw the pictures away as soon as they were
- made, for I was sure I could shut my eyes and see them any time.
- That was a quarter of a century ago; the lecture vanished out of
- my head more than twenty years ago, but I would rewrite it from
- the pictures--for they remain. Here are three of them: (Fig. 1).
-
- The first one is a haystack--below it a rattlesnake--and it
- told me where to begin to talk ranch-life in Carson Valley. The
- second one told me where to begin the talk about a strange and
- violent wind that used to burst upon Carson City from the Sierra
- Nevadas every afternoon at two o'clock and try to blow the town
- away. The third picture, as you easily perceive, is lightning;
- its duty was to remind me when it was time to begin to talk about
- San Francisco weather, where there IS no lightning--nor thunder,
- either--and it never failed me.
-
- I will give you a valuable hint. When a man is making a
- speech and you are to follow him don't jot down notes to speak
- from, jot down PICTURES. It is awkward and embarrassing to have
- to keep referring to notes; and besides it breaks up your speech
- and makes it ragged and non-coherent; but you can tear up your
- pictures as soon as you have made them--they will stay fresh and
- strong in your memory in the order and sequence in which you
- scratched them down. And many will admire to see what a good
- memory you are furnished with, when perhaps your memory is not
- any better than mine.
-
- Sixteen years ago when my children were little creatures the
- governess was trying to hammer some primer histories into their
- heads. Part of this fun--if you like to call it that--consisted
- in the memorizing of the accession dates of the thirty-seven
- personages who had ruled England from the Conqueror down. These
- little people found it a bitter, hard contract. It was all
- dates, and all looked alike, and they wouldn't stick. Day after
- day of the summer vacation dribbled by, and still the kings held
- the fort; the children couldn't conquer any six of them.
-
- With my lecture experience in mind I was aware that I could
- invent some way out of the trouble with pictures, but I hoped a
- way could be found which would let them romp in the open air
- while they learned the kings. I found it, and they mastered
- all the monarchs in a day or two.
-
- The idea was to make them SEE the reigns with their eyes;
- that would be a large help. We were at the farm then. From the
- house-porch the grounds sloped gradually down to the lower fence
- and rose on the right to the high ground where my small work-den
- stood. A carriage-road wound through the grounds and up the
- hill. I staked it out with the English monarchs, beginning with
- the Conqueror, and you could stand on the porch and clearly see
- every reign and its length, from the Conquest down to Victoria,
- then in the forty-sixth year of her reign--EIGHT HUNDRED AND
- SEVENTEEN YEARS OF English history under your eye at once!
-
- English history was an unusually live topic in America just
- then. The world had suddenly realized that while it was not
- noticing the Queen had passed Henry VIII., passed Henry VI. and
- Elizabeth, and gaining in length every day. Her reign had
- entered the list of the long ones; everybody was interested now--
- it was watching a race. Would she pass the long Edward? There
- was a possibility of it. Would she pass the long Henry?
- Doubtful, most people said. The long George? Impossible!
- Everybody said it. But we have lived to see her leave him two
- years behind.
-
- I measured off 817 feet of the roadway, a foot representing
- a year, and at the beginning and end of each reign I drove a
- three-foot white-pine stake in the turf by the roadside and wrote
- the name and dates on it. Abreast the middle of the porch-front
- stood a great granite flower-vase overflowing with a cataract of
- bright-yellow flowers--I can't think of their name. The vase of
- William the Conqueror. We put his name on it and his accession
- date, 1066. We started from that and measured off twenty-one
- feet of the road, and drove William Rufus's state; then thirteen
- feet and drove the first Henry's stake; then thirty-five feet and
- drove Stephen's; then nineteen feet, which brought us just past
- the summer-house on the left; then we staked out thirty-five,
- ten, and seventeen for the second Henry and Richard and John;
- turned the curve and entered upon just what was needed for Henry
- III.--a level, straight stretch of fifty-six feet of road without
- a crinkle in it. And it lay exactly in front of the house, in
- the middle of the grounds. There couldn't have been a better
- place for that long reign; you could stand on the porch and see
- those two wide-apart stakes almost with your eyes shut. (Fig. 2.)
-
- That isn't the shape of the road--I have bunched it up like
- that to save room. The road had some great curves in it, but
- their gradual sweep was such that they were no mar to history.
- No, in our road one could tell at a glance who was who by the size
- of the vacancy between stakes--with LOCALITY to help, of course.
-
- Although I am away off here in a Swedish village [1] and
- those stakes did not stand till the snow came, I can see them
- today as plainly as ever; and whenever I think of an English
- monarch his stakes rise before me of their own accord and I
- notice the large or small space which he takes up on our road.
- Are your kings spaced off in your mind? When you think of
- Richard III. and of James II. do the durations of their reigns
- seem about alike to you? It isn't so to me; I always notice that
- there's a foot's difference. When you think of Henry III. do you
- see a great long stretch of straight road? I do; and just at the
- end where it joins on to Edward I. I always see a small pear-bush
- with its green fruit hanging down. When I think of the
- Commonwealth I see a shady little group of these small saplings
- which we called the oak parlor; when I think of George III. I see
- him stretching up the hill, part of him occupied by a flight of
- stone steps; and I can locate Stephen to an inch when he comes
- into my mind, for he just filled the stretch which went by the
- summer-house. Victoria's reign reached almost to my study door
- on the first little summit; there's sixteen feet to be added now;
- I believe that that would carry it to a big pine-tree that was
- shattered by some lightning one summer when it was trying to hit me.
-
- We got a good deal of fun out of the history road; and
- exercise, too. We trotted the course from the conqueror to the
- study, the children calling out the names, dates, and length of
- reigns as we passed the stakes, going a good gait along the long
- reigns, but slowing down when we came upon people like Mary and
- Edward VI., and the short Stuart and Plantagenet, to give time to
- get in the statistics. I offered prizes, too--apples. I threw
- one as far as I could send it, and the child that first shouted
- the reign it fell in got the apple.
-
- The children were encouraged to stop locating things as
- being "over by the arbor," or "in the oak parlor," or "up at the
- stone steps," and say instead that the things were in Stephen, or
- in the Commonwealth, or in George III. They got the habit
- without trouble. To have the long road mapped out with such
- exactness was a great boon for me, for I had the habit of leaving
- books and other articles lying around everywhere, and had not
- previously been able to definitely name the place, and so had
- often been obliged to go to fetch them myself, to save time and
- failure; but now I could name the reign I left them in, and send
- the children.
-
- Next I thought I would measure off the French reigns, and
- peg them alongside the English ones, so that we could always have
- contemporaneous French history under our eyes as we went our
- English rounds. We pegged them down to the Hundred Years' War,
- then threw the idea aside, I do not now remember why. After that
- we made the English pegs fence in European and American history
- as well as English, and that answered very well. English and
- alien poets, statesmen, artists, heroes, battles, plagues,
- cataclysms, revolutions--we shoveled them all into the English
- fences according to their dates. Do you understand? We gave
- Washington's birth to George II.'s pegs and his death to George
- III.'s; George II. got the Lisbon earthquake and George III. the
- Declaration of Independence. Goethe, Shakespeare, Napoleon,
- Savonarola, Joan of Arc, the French Revolution, the Edict of
- Nantes, Clive, Wellington, Waterloo, Plassey, Patay, Cowpens,
- Saratoga, the Battle of the Boyne, the invention of the
- logarithms, the microscope, the steam-engine, the telegraph--
- anything and everything all over the world--we dumped it all
- in among the English pegs according to it date and regardless
- of its nationality.
-
- If the road-pegging scheme had not succeeded I should have
- lodged the kings in the children's heads by means of pictures--
- that is, I should have tried. It might have failed, for the
- pictures could only be effective WHEN MADE BY THE PUPIL; not the
- master, for it is the work put upon the drawing that makes the
- drawing stay in the memory, and my children were too little to make
- drawings at that time. And, besides, they had no talent for art,
- which is strange, for in other ways they are like me.
-
- But I will develop the picture plan now, hoping that you will
- be able to use it. It will come good for indoors when the
- weather is bad and one cannot go outside and peg a road. Let us
- imagine that the kings are a procession, and that they have come
- out of the Ark and down Ararat for exercise and are now starting
- back again up the zigzag road. This will bring several of them
- into view at once, and each zigzag will represent the length of
- a king's reign.
-
- And so on. You will have plenty of space, for by my project
- you will use the parlor wall. You do not mark on the wall; that
- would cause trouble. You only attach bits of paper to it with
- pins or thumb-tacks. These will leave no mark.
-
- Take your pen now, and twenty-one pieces of white paper,
- each two inches square, and we will do the twenty-one years of
- the Conqueror's reign. On each square draw a picture of a whale
- and write the dates and term of service. We choose the whale for
- several reasons: its name and William's begin with the same
- letter; it is the biggest fish that swims, and William is the
- most conspicuous figure in English history in the way of a
- landmark; finally, a whale is about the easiest thing to draw.
- By the time you have drawn twenty-one wales and written "William
- I.--1066-1087--twenty-one years" twenty-one times, those details
- will be your property; you cannot dislodge them from your memory
- with anything but dynamite. I will make a sample for you to copy:
- (Fig. 3).
-
- I have got his chin up too high, but that is no matter; he
- is looking for Harold. It may be that a whale hasn't that fin up
- there on his back, but I do not remember; and so, since there is
- a doubt, it is best to err on the safe side. He looks better,
- anyway, than he would without it.
-
- Be very careful and ATTENTIVE while you are drawing your
- first whale from my sample and writing the word and figures under
- it, so that you will not need to copy the sample any more.
- Compare your copy with the sample; examine closely; if you find
- you have got everything right and can shut your eyes and see the
- picture and call the words and figures, then turn the sample and
- copy upside down and make the next copy from memory; and also the
- next and next, and so on, always drawing and writing from memory
- until you have finished the whole twenty-one. This will take you
- twenty minutes, or thirty, and by that time you will find that
- you can make a whale in less time than an unpracticed person can
- make a sardine; also, up to the time you die you will always be
- able to furnish William's dates to any ignorant person that
- inquires after them.
-
- You will now take thirteen pieces of BLUE paper, each two
- inches square, and do William II. (Fig. 4.)
-
- Make him spout his water forward instead of backward; also
- make him small, and stick a harpoon in him and give him that sick
- look in the eye. Otherwise you might seem to be continuing the
- other William, and that would be confusing and a damage. It is
- quite right to make him small; he was only about a No. 11 whale,
- or along there somewhere; there wasn't room in him for his
- father's great spirit. The barb of that harpoon ought not to
- show like that, because it is down inside the whale and ought to
- be out of sight, but it cannot be helped; if the barb were
- removed people would think some one had stuck a whip-stock into
- the whale. It is best to leave the barb the way it is, then
- every one will know it is a harpoon and attending to business.
- Remember--draw from the copy only once; make your other twelve
- and the inscription from memory.
-
- Now the truth is that whenever you have copied a picture and
- its inscription once from my sample and two or three times from
- memory the details will stay with you and be hard to forget.
- After that, if you like, you may make merely the whale's HEAD and
- WATER-SPOUT for the Conqueror till you end his reign, each time
- SAYING the inscription in place of writing it; and in the case of
- William II. make the HARPOON alone, and say over the inscription
- each time you do it. You see, it will take nearly twice as long
- to do the first set as it will to do the second, and that will
- give you a marked sense of the difference in length of the two reigns.
-
- Next do Henry I. on thirty-five squares of RED paper.
- (Fig. 5.)
-
- That is a hen, and suggests Henry by furnishing the first syllable.
- When you have repeated the hen and the inscription until you are
- perfectly sure of them, draw merely the hen's head the rest of the
- thirty-five times, saying over the inscription each time. Thus:
- (Fig. 6).
-
- You begin to understand how how this procession is going to
- look when it is on the wall. First there will be the Conqueror's
- twenty-one whales and water-spouts, the twenty-one white squares
- joined to one another and making a white stripe three and one-
- half feet long; the thirteen blue squares of William II. will be
- joined to that--a blue stripe two feet, two inches long, followed
- by Henry's red stripe five feet, ten inches long, and so on. The
- colored divisions will smartly show to the eye the difference in
- the length of the reigns and impress the proportions on the
- memory and the understanding. (Fig. 7.)
-
- Stephen of Blois comes next. He requires nineteen two-inch
- squares of YELLOW paper. (Fig. 8.)
-
- That is a steer. The sound suggests the beginning of
- Stephen's name. I choose it for that reason. I can make a
- better steer than that when I am not excited. But this one will
- do. It is a good-enough steer for history. The tail is
- defective, but it only wants straightening out.
-
- Next comes Henry II. Give him thirty-five squares of RED paper.
- These hens must face west, like the former ones. (Fig. 9.)
-
- This hen differs from the other one. He is on his way to
- inquire what has been happening in Canterbury.
-
- How we arrive at Richard I., called Richard of the Lion-
- heart because he was a brave fighter and was never so contented
- as when he was leading crusades in Palestine and neglecting his
- affairs at home. Give him ten squares of WHITE paper. (Fig. 10).
-
- That is a lion. His office is to remind you of the lion-
- hearted Richard. There is something the matter with his legs,
- but I do not quite know what it is, they do not seem right.
- I think the hind ones are the most unsatisfactory; the front
- ones are well enough, though it would be better if they were
- rights and lefts.
-
- Next comes King John, and he was a poor circumstance.
- He was called Lackland. He gave his realm to the Pope.
- Let him have seventeen squares of YELLOW paper. (Fig. 11.)
-
- That creature is a jamboree. It looks like a trademark, but
- that is only an accident and not intentional. It is prehistoric
- and extinct. It used to roam the earth in the Old Silurian
- times, and lay eggs and catch fish and climb trees and live on
- fossils; for it was of a mixed breed, which was the fashion then.
- It was very fierce, and the Old Silurians were afraid of it, but
- this is a tame one. Physically it has no representative now, but
- its mind has been transmitted. First I drew it sitting down, but
- have turned it the other way now because I think it looks more
- attractive and spirited when one end of it is galloping. I love
- to think that in this attitude it gives us a pleasant idea of
- John coming all in a happy excitement to see what the barons have
- been arranging for him at Runnymede, while the other one gives us
- an idea of him sitting down to wring his hands and grieve over it.
-
- We now come to Henry III.; RED squares again, of course--
- fifty-six of them. We must make all the Henrys the same color;
- it will make their long reigns show up handsomely on the wall.
- Among all the eight Henrys there were but two short ones. A
- lucky name, as far as longevity goes. The reigns of six of the
- Henrys cover 227 years. It might have been well to name all the
- royal princes Henry, but this was overlooked until it was too late.
- (Fig. 12.)
-
- This is the best one yet. He is on his way (1265) to have a
- look at the first House of Commons in English history. It was a
- monumental event, the situation in the House, and was the second
- great liberty landmark which the century had set up. I have made
- Henry looking glad, but this was not intentional.
-
- Edward I. comes next; LIGHT-BROWN paper, thirty-five squares.
- (Fig. 13.)
-
- That is an editor. He is trying to think of a word. He
- props his feet on a chair, which is the editor's way; then he can
- think better. I do not care much for this one; his ears are not
- alike; still, editor suggests the sound of Edward, and he will
- do. I could make him better if I had a model, but I made this
- one from memory. But is no particular matter; they all look
- alike, anyway. They are conceited and troublesome, and don't pay
- enough. Edward was the first really English king that had yet
- occupied the throne. The editor in the picture probably looks
- just as Edward looked when it was first borne in upon him that
- this was so. His whole attitude expressed gratification and
- pride mixed with stupefaction and astonishment.
-
- Edward II. now; twenty BLUE squares. (Fig. 14.)
-
- Another editor. That thing behind his ear is his pencil.
- Whenever he finds a bright thing in your manuscript he strikes it
- out with that. That does him good, and makes him smile and show
- his teeth, the way he is doing in the picture. This one has just
- been striking out a smart thing, and now he is sitting there with
- his thumbs in his vest-holes, gloating. They are full of envy
- and malice, editors are. This picture will serve to remind you
- that Edward II. was the first English king who was DEPOSED. Upon
- demand, he signed his deposition himself. He had found kingship
- a most aggravating and disagreeable occupation, and you can see
- by the look of him that he is glad he resigned. He has put his
- blue pencil up for good now. He had struck out many a good thing
- with it in his time.
-
- Edward III. next; fifty RED squares. (Fig. 15.)
-
- This editor is a critic. He has pulled out his carving-
- knife and his tomahawk and is starting after a book which he is
- going to have for breakfast. This one's arms are put on wrong.
- I did not notice it at first, but I see it now. Somehow he has
- got his right arm on his left shoulder, and his left arm on his
- right shoulder, and this shows us the back of his hands in both
- instances. It makes him left-handed all around, which is a thing
- which has never happened before, except perhaps in a museum.
- That is the way with art, when it is not acquired but born to
- you: you start in to make some simple little thing, not
- suspecting that your genius is beginning to work and swell and
- strain in secret, and all of a sudden there is a convulsion and
- you fetch out something astonishing. This is called inspiration.
- It is an accident; you never know when it is coming. I might
- have tried as much as a year to think of such a strange thing as
- an all-around left-handed man and I could not have done it, for
- the more you try to think of an unthinkable thing the more it
- eludes you; but it can't elude inspiration; you have only to bait
- with inspiration and you will get it every time. Look at
- Botticelli's "Spring." Those snaky women were unthinkable, but
- inspiration secured them for us, thanks to goodness. It is too
- late to reorganize this editor-critic now; we will leave him as
- he is. He will serve to remind us.
-
- Richard II. next; twenty-two WHITE squares. (Fig. 16.)
-
- We use the lion again because this is another Richard. Like
- Edward II., he was DEPOSED. He is taking a last sad look at his
- crown before they take it away. There was not room enough and I
- have made it too small; but it never fitted him, anyway.
-
- Now we turn the corner of the century with a new line of
- monarchs--the Lancastrian kings.
-
- Henry IV.; fourteen squares of YELLOW paper. (Fig. 17.)
-
- This hen has laid the egg of a new dynasty and realizes the
- magnitude of the event. She is giving notice in the usual way.
- You notice I am improving in the construction of hens. At first
- I made them too much like other animals, but this one is
- orthodox. I mention this to encourage you. You will find that
- the more you practice the more accurate you will become. I could
- always draw animals, but before I was educated I could not tell
- what kind they were when I got them done, but now I can. Keep up
- your courage; it will be the same with you, although you may not
- think it. This Henry died the year after Joan of Arc was born.
-
- Henry V.; nine BLUE squares. (Fig. 18)
-
- There you see him lost in meditation over the monument which
- records the amazing figures of the battle of Agincourt. French
- history says 20,000 Englishmen routed 80,000 Frenchmen there; and
- English historians say that the French loss, in killed and
- wounded, was 60,000.
-
- Henry VI.; thirty-nine RED squares. (Fig. 19)
-
- This is poor Henry VI., who reigned long and scored many
- misfortunes and humiliations. Also two great disasters: he lost
- France to Joan of Arc and he lost the throne and ended the
- dynasty which Henry IV. had started in business with such good
- prospects. In the picture we see him sad and weary and downcast,
- with the scepter falling from his nerveless grasp. It is a
- pathetic quenching of a sun which had risen in such splendor.
-
- Edward IV.; twenty-two LIGHT-BROWN squares. (Fig. 20.)
-
- That is a society editor, sitting there elegantly dressed,
- with his legs crossed in that indolent way, observing the clothes
- the ladies wear, so that he can describe them for his paper and
- make them out finer than they are and get bribes for it and
- become wealthy. That flower which he is wearing in his
- buttonhole is a rose--a white rose, a York rose--and will serve
- to remind us of the War of the Roses, and that the white one was
- the winning color when Edward got the throne and dispossessed the
- Lancastrian dynasty.
-
- Edward V.; one-third of a BLACK square. (Fig. 21.)
-
- His uncle Richard had him murdered in the tower. When you
- get the reigns displayed upon the wall this one will be
- conspicuous and easily remembered. It is the shortest one in
- English history except Lady Jane Grey's, which was only nine
- days. She is never officially recognized as a monarch of
- England, but if you or I should ever occupy a throne we should
- like to have proper notice taken of it; and it would be only fair
- and right, too, particularly if we gained nothing by it and lost
- our lives besides.
-
- Richard III.; two WHITE squares. (Fig. 22.)
-
- That is not a very good lion, but Richard was not a very
- good king. You would think that this lion has two heads, but
- that is not so; one is only a shadow. There would be shadows for
- the rest of him, but there was not light enough to go round, it
- being a dull day, with only fleeting sun-glimpses now and then.
- Richard had a humped back and a hard heart, and fell at the
- battle of Bosworth. I do not know the name of that flower in the
- pot, but we will use it as Richard's trade-mark, for it is said
- that it grows in only one place in the world--Bosworth Field--and
- tradition says it never grew there until Richard's royal blood
- warmed its hidden seed to life and made it grow.
-
- Henry VII.; twenty-four BLUE squares. (Fig. 23.)
-
- Henry VII. had no liking for wars and turbulence; he
- preferred peace and quiet and the general prosperity which such
- conditions create. He liked to sit on that kind of eggs on his
- own private account as well as the nation's, and hatch them out
- and count up their result. When he died he left his heir
- 2,000,000 pounds, which was a most unusual fortune for a king to
- possess in those days. Columbus's great achievement gave him the
- discovery-fever, and he sent Sebastian Cabot to the New World to
- search out some foreign territory for England. That is Cabot's
- ship up there in the corner. This was the first time that
- England went far abroad to enlarge her estate--but not the last.
-
- Henry VIII.; thirty-eight RED squares. (Fig. 24.)
-
- That is Henry VIII. suppressing a monastery in his arrogant fashion.
-
- Edward VI.; six squares of YELLOW paper. (Fig. 25.)
-
- He is the last Edward to date. It is indicated by that
- thing over his head, which is a LAST--shoemaker's last.
-
- Mary; five squares of BLACK paper. (Fig. 26.)
-
- The picture represents a burning martyr. He is in back of
- the smoke. The first three letters of Mary's name and the first
- three of the word martyr are the same. Martyrdom was going out
- in her day and martyrs were becoming scarcer, but she made
- several. For this reason she is sometimes called Bloody Mary.
-
- This brings us to the reign of Elizabeth, after passing
- through a period of nearly five hundred years of England's
- history--492 to be exact. I think you may now be trusted to go
- the rest of the way without further lessons in art or
- inspirations in the matter of ideas. You have the scheme now,
- and something in the ruler's name or career will suggest the
- pictorial symbol. The effort of inventing such things will not
- only help your memory, but will develop originality in art. See
- what it has done for me. If you do not find the parlor wall big
- enough for all of England's history, continue it into the dining-
- room and into other rooms. This will make the walls interesting
- and instructive and really worth something instead of being just
- flat things to hold the house together.
-
- -----
- 1. Summer of 1899.
-
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
- THE MEMORABLE ASSASSINATION
-
- Note.--The assassination of the Empress of Austria at
- Geneva, September 10, 1898, occurred during Mark Twain's Austrian
- residence. The news came to him at Kaltenleutgeben, a summer
- resort a little way out of Vienna. To his friend, the Rev. Jos.
- H. Twichell, he wrote:
-
- "That good and unoffending lady, the Empress, is killed by a
- madman, and I am living in the midst of world-history again. The
- Queen's Jubilee last year, the invasion of the Reichsrath by the
- police, and now this murder, which will still be talked of and
- described and painted a thousand a thousand years from now. To
- have a personal friend of the wearer of two crowns burst in at
- the gate in the deep dusk of the evening and say, in a voice
- broken with tears, 'My God! the Empress is murdered,' and fly
- toward her home before we can utter a question--why, it brings
- the giant event home to you, makes you a part of it and
- personally interested; it is as if your neighbor, Antony, should
- come flying and say, 'Caesar is butchered--the head of the world
- is fallen!'
-
- "Of course there is no talk but of this. The mourning is
- universal and genuine, the consternation is stupefying. The
- Austrian Empire is being draped with black. Vienna will be a
- spectacle to see by next Saturday, when the funeral cort`ege
- marches."
-
- He was strongly moved by the tragedy, impelled to write
- concerning it. He prepared the article which follows, but did
- not offer it for publication, perhaps feeling that his own close
- association with the court circles at the moment prohibited this
- personal utterance. There appears no such reason for withholding
- its publication now.
-
- A. B. P.
-
-
- The more one thinks of the assassination, the more imposing
- and tremendous the event becomes. The destruction of a city is a
- large event, but it is one which repeats itself several times in
- a thousand years; the destruction of a third part of a nation by
- plague and famine is a large event, but it has happened several
- times in history; the murder of a king is a large event, but it
- has been frequent.
-
- The murder of an empress is the largest of all events. One
- must go back about two thousand years to find an instance to put
- with this one. The oldest family of unchallenged descent in
- Christendom lives in Rome and traces its line back seventeen
- hundred years, but no member of it has been present in the earth
- when an empress was murdered, until now. Many a time during
- these seventeen centuries members of that family have been
- startled with the news of extraordinary events--the destruction
- of cities, the fall of thrones, the murder of kings, the wreck of
- dynasties, the extinction of religions, the birth of new systems
- of government; and their descendants have been by to hear of it
- and talk about it when all these things were repeated once,
- twice, or a dozen times--but to even that family has come news at
- last which is not staled by use, has no duplicates in the long
- reach of its memory.
-
- It is an event which confers a curious distinction upon
- every individual now living in the world: he has stood alive and
- breathing in the presence of an event such as has not fallen
- within the experience of any traceable or untraceable ancestor of
- his for twenty centuries, and it is not likely to fall within the
- experience of any descendant of his for twenty more.
-
- Time has made some great changes since the Roman days. The
- murder of an empress then--even the assassination of Caesar
- himself--could not electrify the world as this murder has
- electrified it. For one reason, there was then not much of a
- world to electrify; it was a small world, as to known bulk, and
- it had rather a thin population, besides; and for another reason,
- the news traveled so slowly that its tremendous initial thrill
- wasted away, week by week and month by month, on the journey, and
- by the time it reached the remoter regions there was but little
- of it left. It was no longer a fresh event, it was a thing of
- the far past; it was not properly news, it was history. But the
- world is enormous now, and prodigiously populated--that is one
- change; and another is the lightning swiftness of the flight of
- tidings, good and bad. "The Empress is murdered!" When those
- amazing words struck upon my ear in this Austrian village last
- Saturday, three hours after the disaster, I knew that it was
- already old news in London, Paris, Berlin, New York, San
- Francisco, Japan, China, Melbourne, Cape Town, Bombay, Madras,
- Calcutta, and that the entire globe with a single voice, was
- cursing the perpetrator of it. Since the telegraph first began
- to stretch itself wider and wider about the earth, larger and
- increasingly larger areas of the world have, as time went on,
- received simultaneously the shock of a great calamity; but this
- is the first time in history that the entire surface of the globe
- has been swept in a single instant with the thrill of so gigantic
- an event.
-
- And who is the miracle-worker who has furnished to the world
- this spectacle? All the ironies are compacted in the answer. He
- is at the bottom of the human ladder, as the accepted estimates
- of degree and value go: a soiled and patched young loafer,
- without gifts, without talents, without education, without
- morals, without character, without any born charm or any acquired
- one that wins or beguiles or attracts; without a single grace of
- mind or heart or hand that any tramp or prostitute could envy
- him; an unfaithful private in the ranks, an incompetent stone-
- cutter, an inefficient lackey; in a word, a mangy, offensive,
- empty, unwashed, vulgar, gross, mephitic, timid, sneaking, human
- polecat. And it was within the privileges and powers of this
- sarcasm upon the human race to reach up--up--up--and strike from
- its far summit in the social skies the world's accepted ideal of
- Glory and Might and Splendor and Sacredness! It realizes to us
- what sorry shows and shadows we are. Without our clothes and our
- pedestals we are poor things and much of a size; our dignities
- are not real, our pomps are shams. At our best and stateliest we
- are not suns, as we pretended, and teach, and believe, but only
- candles; and any bummer can blow us out.
-
- And now we get realized to us once more another thing which
- we often forget--or try to: that no man has a wholly undiseased
- mind; that in one way or another all men are mad. Many are mad
- for money. When this madness is in a mild form it is harmless
- and the man passes for sane; but when it develops powerfully and
- takes possession of the man, it can make him cheat, rob, and
- kill; and when he has got his fortune and lost it again it can
- land him in the asylum or the suicide's coffin. Love is a
- madness; if thwarted it develops fast; it can grow to a frenzy of
- despair and make an otherwise sane and highly gifted prince, like
- Rudolph, throw away the crown of an empire and snuff out his own
- life. All the whole list of desires, predilections, aversions,
- ambitions, passions, cares, griefs, regrets, remorses, are
- incipient madness, and ready to grow, spread, and consume, when
- the occasion comes. There are no healthy minds, and nothing
- saves any man but accident--the accident of not having his malady
- put to the supreme test.
-
- One of the commonest forms of madness is the desire to be
- noticed, the pleasure derived from being noticed. Perhaps it is
- not merely common, but universal. In its mildest form it
- doubtless is universal. Every child is pleased at being noticed;
- many intolerable children put in their whole time in distressing
- and idiotic effort to attract the attention of visitors; boys are
- always "showing off"; apparently all men and women are glad and
- grateful when they find that they have done a thing which has
- lifted them for a moment out of obscurity and caused wondering
- talk. This common madness can develop, by nurture, into a hunger
- for notoriety in one, for fame in another. It is this madness
- for being noticed and talked about which has invented kingship
- and the thousand other dignities, and tricked them out with
- pretty and showy fineries; it has made kings pick one another's
- pockets, scramble for one another's crowns and estates, slaughter
- one another's subjects; it has raised up prize-fighters, and
- poets, and villages mayors, and little and big politicians, and
- big and little charity-founders, and bicycle champions, and
- banditti chiefs, and frontier desperadoes, and Napoleons.
- Anything to get notoriety; anything to set the village, or the
- township, or the city, or the State, or the nation, or the planet
- shouting, "Look--there he goes--that is the man!" And in five
- minutes' time, at no cost of brain, or labor, or genius this
- mangy Italian tramp has beaten them all, transcended them all,
- outstripped them all, for in time their names will perish; but by
- the friendly help of the insane newspapers and courts and kings
- and historians, his is safe and live and thunder in the world all
- down the ages as long as human speech shall endure! Oh, if it
- were not so tragic how ludicrous it would be!
-
- She was so blameless, the Empress; and so beautiful, in mind
- and heart, in person and spirit; and whether with a crown upon
- her head or without it and nameless, a grace to the human race,
- and almost a justification of its creation; WOULD be, indeed, but
- that the animal that struck her down re-establishes the doubt.
-
- In her character was every quality that in woman invites and
- engages respect, esteem, affection, and homage. Her tastes, her
- instincts, and her aspirations were all high and fine and all her
- life her heart and brain were busy with activities of a noble
- sort. She had had bitter griefs, but they did not sour her
- spirit, and she had had the highest honors in the world's gift,
- but she went her simple way unspoiled. She knew all ranks, and
- won them all, and made them her friends. An English fisherman's
- wife said, "When a body was in trouble she didn't send her help,
- she brought it herself." Crowns have adorned others, but she
- adorned her crowns.
-
- It was a swift celebrity the assassin achieved. And it is
- marked by some curious contrasts. At noon last, Saturday there
- was no one in the world who would have considered
- acquaintanceship with him a thing worth claiming or mentioning;
- no one would have been vain of such an acquaintanceship; the
- humblest honest boot-black would not have valued the fact that he
- had met him or seen him at some time or other; he was sunk in
- abysmal obscurity, he was away beneath the notice of the bottom
- grades of officialdom. Three hours later he was the one subject
- of conversation in the world, the gilded generals and admirals
- and governors were discussing him, all the kings and queens and
- emperors had put aside their other interests to talk about him.
- And wherever there was a man, at the summit of the world or the
- bottom of it, who by chance had at some time or other come across
- that creature, he remembered it with a secret satisfaction, and
- MENTIONED it--for it was a distinction, now! It brings human
- dignity pretty low, and for a moment the thing is not quite
- realizable--but it is perfectly true. If there is a king who can
- remember, now, that he once saw that creature in a time past, he
- has let that fact out, in a more or less studiedly casual and
- indifferent way, some dozens of times during the past week. For
- a king is merely human; the inside of him is exactly like the
- inside of any other person; and it is human to find satisfaction
- in being in a kind of personal way connected with amazing events.
- We are all privately vain of such a thing; we are all alike; a
- king is a king by accident; the reason the rest of us are not
- kings is merely due to another accident; we are all made out of
- the same clay, and it is a sufficient poor quality.
-
- Below the kings, these remarks are in the air these days; I
- know it well as if I were hearing them:
-
- THE COMMANDER: "He was in my army."
-
- THE GENERAL: "He was in my corps."
-
- THE COLONEL: "He was in my regiment. A brute. I remember
- him well."
-
- THE CAPTAIN: "He was in my company. A troublesome
- scoundrel. I remember him well."
-
- THE SERGEANT: "Did I know him? As well as I know you.
- Why, every morning I used to--" etc., etc.; a glad, long story,
- told to devouring ears.
-
- THE LANDLADY: "Many's the time he boarded with me. I can
- show you his very room, and the very bed he slept in. And the
- charcoal mark there on the wall--he made that. My little Johnny
- saw him do it with his own eyes. Didn't you, Johnny?"
-
- It is easy to see, by the papers, that the magistrate and
- the constables and the jailer treasure up the assassin's daily
- remarks and doings as precious things, and as wallowing this week
- in seas of blissful distinction. The interviewer, too; he tried
- to let on that he is not vain of his privilege of contact with
- this man whom few others are allowed to gaze upon, but he is
- human, like the rest, and can no more keep his vanity corked in
- than could you or I.
-
- Some think that this murder is a frenzied revolt against the
- criminal militarism which is impoverishing Europe and driving the
- starving poor mad. That has many crimes to answer for, but not
- this one, I think. One may not attribute to this man a generous
- indignation against the wrongs done the poor; one may not dignify
- him with a generous impulse of any kind. When he saw his
- photograph and said, "I shall be celebrated," he laid bare the
- impulse that prompted him. It was a mere hunger for notoriety.
- There is another confessed case of the kind which is as old as
- history--the burning of the temple of Ephesus.
-
- Among the inadequate attempts to account for the
- assassination we must concede high rank to the many which have
- described it as a "peculiarly brutal crime" and then added that
- it was "ordained from above." I think this verdict will not be
- popular "above." If the deed was ordained from above, there is
- no rational way of making this prisoner even partially
- responsible for it, and the Genevan court cannot condemn him
- without manifestly committing a crime. Logic is logic, and by
- disregarding its laws even the most pious and showy theologian
- may be beguiled into preferring charges which should not be
- ventured upon except in the shelter of plenty of lightning-rods.
-
- I witnessed the funeral procession, in company with friends,
- from the windows of the Krantz, Vienna's sumptuous new hotel. We
- came into town in the middle of the forenoon, and I went on foot
- from the station. Black flags hung down from all the houses; the
- aspects were Sunday-like; the crowds on the sidewalks were quiet
- and moved slowly; very few people were smoking; many ladies wore
- deep mourning, gentlemen were in black as a rule; carriages were
- speeding in all directions, with footmen and coachmen in black
- clothes and wearing black cocked hats; the shops were closed; in
- many windows were pictures of the Empress: as a beautiful young
- bride of seventeen; as a serene and majestic lady with added
- years; and finally in deep black and without ornaments--the
- costume she always wore after the tragic death of her son nine
- years ago, for her heart broke then, and life lost almost all its
- value for her. The people stood grouped before these pictures,
- and now and then one saw women and girls turn away wiping the
- tears from their eyes.
-
- In front of the Krantz is an open square; over the way was
- the church where the funeral services would be held. It is small
- and old and severely plain, plastered outside and whitewashed or
- painted, and with no ornament but a statue of a monk in a niche
- over the door, and above that a small black flag. But in its
- crypt lie several of the great dead of the House of Habsburg,
- among them Maria Theresa and Napoleon's son, the Duke of Reichstadt.
- Hereabouts was a Roman camp, once, and in it the Emperor Marcus
- Aurelius died a thousand years before the first Habsburg ruled
- in Vienna, which was six hundred years ago and more.
-
- The little church is packed in among great modern stores and
- houses, and the windows of them were full of people. Behind the
- vast plate-glass windows of the upper floors of the house on the
- corner one glimpsed terraced masses of fine-clothed men and
- women, dim and shimmery, like people under water. Under us the
- square was noiseless, but it was full of citizens; officials in
- fine uniforms were flitting about on errands, and in a doorstep
- sat a figure in the uttermost raggedness of poverty, the feet
- bare, the head bent humbly down; a youth of eighteen or twenty,
- he was, and through the field-glass one could see that he was
- tearing apart and munching riffraff that he had gathered
- somewhere. Blazing uniforms flashed by him, making a sparkling
- contrast with his drooping ruin of moldy rags, but he took not
- notice; he was not there to grieve for a nation's disaster; he
- had his own cares, and deeper. From two directions two long
- files of infantry came plowing through the pack and press in
- silence; there was a low, crisp order and the crowd vanished, the
- square save the sidewalks was empty, the private mourner was
- gone. Another order, the soldiers fell apart and enclosed the
- square in a double-ranked human fence. It was all so swift,
- noiseless, exact--like a beautifully ordered machine.
-
- It was noon, now. Two hours of stillness and waiting
- followed. Then carriages began to flow past and deliver the two
- and three hundred court personages and high nobilities privileged
- to enter the church. Then the square filled up; not with
- civilians, but with army and navy officers in showy and beautiful
- uniforms. They filled it compactly, leaving only a narrow
- carriage path in front of the church, but there was no civilian
- among them. And it was better so; dull clothes would have marred
- the radiant spectacle. In the jam in front of the church, on its
- steps, and on the sidewalk was a bunch of uniforms which made a
- blazing splotch of color--intense red, gold, and white--which
- dimmed the brilliancies around them; and opposite them on the
- other side of the path was a bunch of cascaded bright-green
- plumes above pale-blue shoulders which made another splotch of
- splendor emphatic and conspicuous in its glowing surroundings.
- It was a sea of flashing color all about, but these two groups
- were the high notes. The green plumes were worn by forty or
- fifty Austrian generals, the group opposite them were chiefly
- Knights of Malta and knights of a German order. The mass of
- heads in the square were covered by gilt helmets and by military
- caps roofed with a mirror-like gaze, and the movements of the
- wearers caused these things to catch the sun-rays, and the effect
- was fine to see--the square was like a garden of richly colored
- flowers with a multitude of blinding and flashing little suns
- distributed over it.
-
- Think of it--it was by command of that Italian loafer yonder
- on his imperial throne in the Geneva prison that this splendid
- multitude was assembled there; and the kings and emperors that
- were entering the church from a side street were there by his will.
- It is so strange, so unrealizable.
-
- At three o'clock the carriages were still streaming by in
- single file. At three-five a cardinal arrives with his
- attendants; later some bishops; then a number of archdeacons--all
- in striking colors that add to the show. At three-ten a
- procession of priests passed along, with crucifix. Another one,
- presently; after an interval, two more; at three-fifty another
- one--very long, with many crosses, gold-embroidered robes, and
- much white lace; also great pictured banners, at intervals,
- receding into the distance.
-
- A hum of tolling bells makes itself heard, but not sharply.
- At three-fifty-eight a waiting interval. Presently a long
- procession of gentlemen in evening dress comes in sight and
- approaches until it is near to the square, then falls back
- against the wall of soldiers at the sidewalk, and the white
- shirt-fronts show like snowflakes and are very conspicuous where
- so much warm color is all about.
-
- A waiting pause. At four-twelve the head of the funeral
- procession comes into view at last. First, a body of cavalry,
- four abreast, to widen the path. Next, a great body of lancers,
- in blue, with gilt helmets. Next, three six-horse mourning-
- coaches; outriders and coachmen in black, with cocked hats and
- white wigs. Next, troops in splendid uniforms, red, gold, and
- white, exceedingly showy.
-
- Now the multitude uncover. The soldiers present arms; there
- is a low rumble of drums; the sumptuous great hearse approaches,
- drawn at a walk by eight black horses plumed with black bunches
- of nodding ostrich feathers; the coffin is borne into the church,
- the doors are closed.
-
- The multitude cover their heads, and the rest of the
- procession moves by; first the Hungarian Guard in their
- indescribably brilliant and picturesque and beautiful uniform,
- inherited from the ages of barbaric splendor, and after them
- other mounted forces, a long and showy array.
-
- Then the shining crown in the square crumbled apart, a
- wrecked rainbow, and melted away in radiant streams, and in the
- turn of a wrist the three dirtiest and raggedest and cheerfulest
- little slum-girls in Austria were capering about in the spacious
- vacancy. It was a day of contrasts.
-
- Twice the Empress entered Vienna in state. The first time
- was in 1854, when she was a bride of seventeen, and then she rode
- in measureless pomp and with blare of music through a fluttering
- world of gay flags and decorations, down streets walled on both
- hands with a press of shouting and welcoming subjects; and the
- second time was last Wednesday, when she entered the city in her
- coffin and moved down the same streets in the dead of the night
- under swaying black flags, between packed human walls again; but
- everywhere was a deep stillness, now--a stillness emphasized,
- rather than broken, by the muffled hoofbeats of the long
- cavalcade over pavements cushioned with sand, and the low sobbing
- of gray-headed women who had witnessed the first entry forty-four
- years before, when she and they were young--and unaware!
-
- A character in Baron von Berger's recent fairy drama
- "Habsburg" tells about the first coming of the girlish Empress-
- Queen, and in his history draws a fine picture: I cannot make a
- close translation of it, but will try to convey the spirit of the
- verses:
-
-
- I saw the stately pageant pass:
- In her high place I saw the Empress-Queen:
- I could not take my eyes away
- From that fair vision, spirit-like and pure,
- That rose serene, sublime, and figured to my sense
- A noble Alp far lighted in the blue,
- That in the flood of morning rends its veil of cloud
- And stands a dream of glory to the gaze
- Of them that in the Valley toil and plod.
- ------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
-
- A SCRAP OF CURIOUS HISTORY
-
- Marion City, on the Mississippi River, in the State of
- Missouri--a village; time, 1845. La Bourboule-les-Bains, France
- --a village; time, the end of June, 1894. I was in the one
- village in that early time; I am in the other now. These times
- and places are sufficiently wide apart, yet today I have the
- strange sense of being thrust back into that Missourian village
- and of reliving certain stirring days that I lived there so long
- ago.
-
- Last Saturday night the life of the President of the French
- Republic was taken by an Italian assassin. Last night a mob
- surrounded our hotel, shouting, howling, singing the
- "Marseillaise," and pelting our windows with sticks and stones;
- for we have Italian waiters, and the mob demanded that they be
- turned out of the house instantly--to be drubbed, and then driven
- out of the village. Everybody in the hotel remained up until far
- into the night, and experienced the several kinds of terror which
- one reads about in books which tell of nigh attacks by Italians
- and by French mobs: the growing roar of the oncoming crowd; the
- arrival, with rain of stones and a crash of glass; the withdrawal
- to rearrange plans--followed by a silence ominous, threatening,
- and harder to bear than even the active siege and the noise. The
- landlord and the two village policemen stood their ground, and at
- last the mob was persuaded to go away and leave our Italians in
- peace. Today four of the ringleaders have been sentenced to
- heavy punishment of a public sort--and are become local heroes,
- by consequence.
-
- That is the very mistake which was at first made in the
- Missourian village half a century ago. The mistake was repeated
- and repeated--just as France is doing in these later months.
-
- In our village we had our Ravochals, our Henrys, our
- Vaillants; and in a humble way our Cesario--I hope I have spelled
- this name wrong. Fifty years ago we passed through, in all
- essentials, what France has been passing through during the past
- two or three years, in the matter of periodical frights, horrors,
- and shudderings.
-
- In several details the parallels are quaintly exact. In
- that day, for a man to speak out openly and proclaim himself an
- enemy of negro slavery was simply to proclaim himself a madman.
- For he was blaspheming against the holiest thing known to a
- Missourian, and could NOT be in his right mind. For a man to
- proclaim himself an anarchist in France, three years ago, was to
- proclaim himself a madman--he could not be in his right mind.
-
- Now the original first blasphemer against any institution
- profoundly venerated by a community is quite sure to be in
- earnest; his followers and imitators may be humbugs and self-
- seekers, but he himself is sincere--his heart is in his protest.
-
- Robert Hardy was our first ABOLITIONIST--awful name! He was
- a journeyman cooper, and worked in the big cooper-shop belonging
- to the great pork-packing establishment which was Marion City's
- chief pride and sole source of prosperity. He was a New-
- Englander, a stranger. And, being a stranger, he was of course
- regarded as an inferior person--for that has been human nature
- from Adam down--and of course, also, he was made to feel
- unwelcome, for this is the ancient law with man and the other
- animals. Hardy was thirty years old, and a bachelor; pale, given
- to reverie and reading. He was reserved, and seemed to prefer
- the isolation which had fallen to his lot. He was treated to
- many side remarks by his fellows, but as he did not resent them
- it was decided that he was a coward.
-
- All of a sudden he proclaimed himself an abolitionist--
- straight out and publicly! He said that negro slavery was a
- crime, an infamy. For a moment the town was paralyzed with
- astonishment; then it broke into a fury of rage and swarmed
- toward the cooper-shop to lynch Hardy. But the Methodist
- minister made a powerful speech to them and stayed their hands.
- He proved to them that Hardy was insane and not responsible for
- his words; that no man COULD be sane and utter such words.
-
- So Hardy was saved. Being insane, he was allowed to go on
- talking. He was found to be good entertainment. Several nights
- running he made abolition speeches in the open air, and all the
- town flocked to hear and laugh. He implored them to believe him
- sane and sincere, and have pity on the poor slaves, and take
- measurements for the restoration of their stolen rights, or in no
- long time blood would flow--blood, blood, rivers of blood!
-
- It was great fun. But all of a sudden the aspect of things
- changed. A slave came flying from Palmyra, the county-seat, a
- few miles back, and was about to escape in a canoe to Illinois
- and freedom in the dull twilight of the approaching dawn, when
- the town constable seized him. Hardy happened along and tried to
- rescue the negro; there was a struggle, and the constable did not
- come out of it alive. Hardly crossed the river with the negro,
- and then came back to give himself up. All this took time, for
- the Mississippi is not a French brook, like the Seine, the Loire,
- and those other rivulets, but is a real river nearly a mile wide.
- The town was on hand in force by now, but the Methodist preacher
- and the sheriff had already made arrangements in the interest of
- order; so Hardy was surrounded by a strong guard and safely
- conveyed to the village calaboose in spite of all the effort of
- the mob to get hold of him. The reader will have begun to
- perceive that this Methodist minister was a prompt man; a prompt
- man, with active hands and a good headpiece. Williams was his
- name--Damon Williams; Damon Williams in public, Damnation Williams
- in private, because he was so powerful on that theme and so frequent.
-
- The excitement was prodigious. The constable was the first
- man who had ever been killed in the town. The event was by long
- odds the most imposing in the town's history. It lifted the
- humble village into sudden importance; its name was in
- everybody's mouth for twenty miles around. And so was the name
- of Robert Hardy--Robert Hardy, the stranger, the despised. In a
- day he was become the person of most consequence in the region,
- the only person talked about. As to those other coopers, they
- found their position curiously changed--they were important
- people, or unimportant, now, in proportion as to how large or how
- small had been their intercourse with the new celebrity. The two
- or three who had really been on a sort of familiar footing with
- him found themselves objects of admiring interest with the public
- and of envy with their shopmates.
-
- The village weekly journal had lately gone into new hands.
- The new man was an enterprising fellow, and he made the most of
- the tragedy. He issued an extra. Then he put up posters
- promising to devote his whole paper to matters connected with the
- great event--there would be a full and intensely interesting
- biography of the murderer, and even a portrait of him. He was as
- good as his word. He carved the portrait himself, on the back of
- a wooden type--and a terror it was to look at. It made a great
- commotion, for this was the first time the village paper had ever
- contained a picture. The village was very proud. The output of
- the paper was ten times as great as it had ever been before, yet
- every copy was sold.
-
- When the trial came on, people came from all the farms
- around, and from Hannibal, and Quincy, and even from Keokuk; and
- the court-house could hold only a fraction of the crowd that
- applied for admission. The trial was published in the village
- paper, with fresh and still more trying pictures of the accused.
-
- Hardy was convicted, and hanged--a mistake. People came
- from miles around to see the hanging; they brought cakes and
- cider, also the women and children, and made a picnic of the
- matter. It was the largest crowd the village had ever seen. The
- rope that hanged Hardy was eagerly bought up, in inch samples,
- for everybody wanted a memento of the memorable event.
-
-
- Martyrdom gilded with notoriety has its fascinations.
- Within one week afterward four young lightweights in the village
- proclaimed themselves abolitionists! In life Hardy had not been
- able to make a convert; everybody laughed at him; but nobody
- could laugh at his legacy. The four swaggered around with their
- slouch-hats pulled down over their faces, and hinted darkly at
- awful possibilities. The people were troubled and afraid, and
- showed it. And they were stunned, too; they could not understand
- it. "Abolitionist" had always been a term of shame and horror;
- yet here were four young men who were not only not ashamed to
- bear that name, but were grimly proud of it. Respectable young
- men they were, too--of good families, and brought up in the
- church. Ed Smith, the printer's apprentice, nineteen, had been
- the head Sunday-school boy, and had once recited three thousand
- Bible verses without making a break. Dick Savage, twenty, the
- baker's apprentice; Will Joyce, twenty-two, journeyman
- blacksmith; and Henry Taylor, twenty-four, tobacco-stemmer--were
- the other three. They were all of a sentimental cast; they were
- all romance-readers; they all wrote poetry, such as it was; they
- were all vain and foolish; but they had never before been
- suspected of having anything bad in them.
-
- They withdrew from society, and grew more and more
- mysterious and dreadful. They presently achieved the distinction
- of being denounced by names from the pulpit--which made an
- immense stir! This was grandeur, this was fame. They were
- envied by all the other young fellows now. This was natural.
- Their company grew--grew alarmingly. They took a name. It was a
- secret name, and was divulged to no outsider; publicly they were
- simply the abolitionists. They had pass-words, grips, and signs;
- they had secret meetings; their initiations were conducted with
- gloomy pomps and ceremonies, at midnight.
-
- They always spoke of Hardy as "the Martyr," and every little
- while they moved through the principal street in procession--at
- midnight, black-robed, masked, to the measured tap of the solemn
- drum--on pilgrimage to the Martyr's grave, where they went
- through with some majestic fooleries and swore vengeance upon his
- murderers. They gave previous notice of the pilgrimage by small
- posters, and warned everybody to keep indoors and darken all
- houses along the route, and leave the road empty. These warnings
- were obeyed, for there was a skull and crossbones at the top of
- the poster.
-
- When this kind of thing had been going on about eight weeks,
- a quite natural thing happened. A few men of character and grit
- woke up out of the nightmare of fear which had been stupefying
- their faculties, and began to discharge scorn and scoffings at
- themselves and the community for enduring this child's-play; and
- at the same time they proposed to end it straightway. Everybody
- felt an uplift; life was breathed into their dead spirits; their
- courage rose and they began to feel like men again. This was on
- a Saturday. All day the new feeling grew and strengthened; it
- grew with a rush; it brought inspiration and cheer with it.
- Midnight saw a united community, full of zeal and pluck, and with
- a clearly defined and welcome piece of work in front of it. The
- best organizer and strongest and bitterest talker on that great
- Saturday was the Presbyterian clergyman who had denounced the
- original four from his pulpit--Rev. Hiram Fletcher--and he
- promised to use his pulpit in the public interest again now. On
- the morrow he had revelations to make, he said--secrets of the
- dreadful society.
-
- But the revelations were never made. At half past two in
- the morning the dead silence of the village was broken by a
- crashing explosion, and the town patrol saw the preacher's house
- spring in a wreck of whirling fragments into the sky. The
- preacher was killed, together with a negro woman, his only slave
- and servant.
-
- The town was paralyzed again, and with reason. To struggle
- against a visible enemy is a thing worth while, and there is a
- plenty of men who stand always ready to undertake it; but to
- struggle against an invisible one--an invisible one who sneaks in
- and does his awful work in the dark and leaves no trace--that is
- another matter. That is a thing to make the bravest tremble and
- hold back.
-
- The cowed populace were afraid to go to the funeral. The
- man who was to have had a packed church to hear him expose and
- denounce the common enemy had but a handful to see him buried.
- The coroner's jury had brought in a verdict of "death by the
- visitation of God," for no witness came forward; if any existed
- they prudently kept out of the way. Nobody seemed sorry. Nobody
- wanted to see the terrible secret society provoked into the
- commission of further outrages. Everybody wanted the tragedy
- hushed up, ignored, forgotten, if possible.
-
- And so there was a bitter surprise and an unwelcome one when
- Will Joyce, the blacksmith's journeyman, came out and proclaimed
- himself the assassin! Plainly he was not minded to be robbed of
- his glory. He made his proclamation, and stuck to it. Stuck to
- it, and insisted upon a trial. Here was an ominous thing; here
- was a new and peculiarly formidable terror, for a motive was
- revealed here which society could not hope to deal with
- successfully--VANITY, thirst for notoriety. If men were going to
- kill for notoriety's sake, and to win the glory of newspaper
- renown, a big trial, and a showy execution, what possible
- invention of man could discourage or deter them? The town was in
- a sort of panic; it did not know what to do.
-
- However, the grand jury had to take hold of the matter--it
- had no choice. It brought in a true bill, and presently the case
- went to the county court. The trial was a fine sensation. The
- prisoner was the principal witness for the prosecution. He gave
- a full account of the assassination; he furnished even the
- minutest particulars: how he deposited his keg of powder and
- laid his train--from the house to such-and-such a spot; how
- George Ronalds and Henry Hart came along just then, smoking, and
- he borrowed Hart's cigar and fired the train with it, shouting,
- "Down with all slave-tyrants!" and how Hart and Ronalds made no
- effort to capture him, but ran away, and had never come forward
- to testify yet.
-
- But they had to testify now, and they did--and pitiful it
- was to see how reluctant they were, and how scared. The crowded
- house listened to Joyce's fearful tale with a profound and
- breathless interest, and in a deep hush which was not broken till
- he broke it himself, in concluding, with a roaring repetition of his
- "Death to all slave-tyrants!"--which came so unexpectedly and so
- startlingly that it made everyone present catch his breath and gasp.
-
- The trial was put in the paper, with biography and large portrait,
- with other slanderous and insane pictures, and the edition sold
- beyond imagination.
-
- The execution of Joyce was a fine and picturesque thing. It
- drew a vast crowd. Good places in trees and seats on rail fences
- sold for half a dollar apiece; lemonade and gingerbread-stands
- had great prosperity. Joyce recited a furious and fantastic and
- denunciatory speech on the scaffold which had imposing passages
- of school-boy eloquence in it, and gave him a reputation on the
- spot as an orator, and his name, later, in the society's records,
- of the "Martyr Orator." He went to his death breathing slaughter and
- charging his society to "avenge his murder." If he knew anything of
- human nature he knew that to plenty of young fellows present in that
- great crowd he was a grand hero--and enviably situated.
-
- He was hanged. It was a mistake. Within a month from his
- death the society which he had honored had twenty new members,
- some of them earnest, determined men. They did not court
- distinction in the same way, but they celebrated his martyrdom.
- The crime which had been obscure and despised had become lofty
- and glorified.
-
- Such things were happening all over the country. Wild-
- brained martyrdom was succeeded by uprising and organization.
- Then, in natural order, followed riot, insurrection, and the
- wrack and restitutions of war. It was bound to come, and it
- would naturally come in that way. It has been the manner of
- reform since the beginning of the world.
-
- ------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
- SWITZERLAND, THE CRADLE OF LIBERTY
-
-
- Interlaken, Switzerland, 1891.
-
- It is a good many years since I was in Switzerland last. In
- that remote time there was only one ladder railway in the
- country. That state of things is all changed. There isn't a
- mountain in Switzerland now that hasn't a ladder railroad or two
- up its back like suspenders; indeed, some mountains are latticed
- with them, and two years hence all will be. In that day the
- peasant of the high altitudes will have to carry a lantern when
- he goes visiting in the night to keep from stumbling over
- railroads that have been built since his last round. And also in
- that day, if there shall remain a high-altitude peasant whose
- potato-patch hasn't a railroad through it, it would make him as
- conspicuous as William Tell.
-
- However, there are only two best ways to travel through
- Switzerland. The first best is afloat. The second best is by
- open two-horse carriage. One can come from Lucerne to Interlaken
- over the Brunig by ladder railroad in an hour or so now, but you
- can glide smoothly in a carriage in ten, and have two hours for
- luncheon at noon--for luncheon, not for rest. There is no
- fatigue connected with the trip. One arrives fresh in spirit and
- in person in the evening--no fret in his heart, no grime on his
- face, no grit in his hair, not a cinder in his eye. This is the
- right condition of mind and body, the right and due preparation
- for the solemn event which closed the day--stepping with
- metaphorically uncovered head into the presence of the most
- impressive mountain mass that the globe can show--the Jungfrau.
- The stranger's first feeling, when suddenly confronted by that
- towering and awful apparition wrapped in its shroud of snow, is
- breath-taking astonishment. It is as if heaven's gates had swung
- open and exposed the throne.
-
- It is peaceful here and pleasant at Interlaken. Nothing
- going on--at least nothing but brilliant life-giving sunshine.
- There are floods and floods of that. One may properly speak of
- it as "going on," for it is full of the suggestion of activity;
- the light pours down with energy, with visible enthusiasm. This
- is a good atmosphere to be in, morally as well as physically.
- After trying the political atmosphere of the neighboring
- monarchies, it is healing and refreshing to breathe air that has
- known no taint of slavery for six hundred years, and to come
- among a people whose political history is great and fine, and
- worthy to be taught in all schools and studied by all races and
- peoples. For the struggle here throughout the centuries has not
- been in the interest of any private family, or any church, but in
- the interest of the whole body of the nation, and for shelter and
- protection of all forms of belief. This fact is colossal. If
- one would realize how colossal it is, and of what dignity and
- majesty, let him contrast it with the purposes and objects of the
- Crusades, the siege of York, the War of the Roses, and other
- historic comedies of that sort and size.
-
- Last week I was beating around the Lake of Four Cantons, and
- I saw Rutli and Altorf. Rutli is a remote little patch of
- meadow, but I do not know how any piece of ground could be holier
- or better worth crossing oceans and continents to see, since it
- was there that the great trinity of Switzerland joined hands six
- centuries ago and swore the oath which set their enslaved and
- insulted country forever free; and Altorf is also honorable
- ground and worshipful, since it was there that William, surnamed
- Tell (which interpreted means "The foolish talker"--that is to
- say, the too-daring talker), refused to bow to Gessler's hat. Of
- late years the prying student of history has been delighting
- himself beyond measure over a wonderful find which he has made--
- to wit, that Tell did not shoot the apple from his son's head.
- To hear the students jubilate, one would suppose that the
- question of whether Tell shot the apple or didn't was an
- important matter; whereas it ranks in importance exactly with the
- question of whether Washington chopped down the cherry-tree or
- didn't. The deeds of Washington, the patriot, are the essential
- thing; the cherry-tree incident is of no consequence. To prove
- that Tell did shoot the apple from his son's head would merely
- prove that he had better nerve than most men and was skillful
- with a bow as a million others who preceded and followed him, but
- not one whit more so. But Tell was more and better than a mere
- marksman, more and better than a mere cool head; he was a type;
- he stands for Swiss patriotism; in his person was represented a
- whole people; his spirit was their spirit--the spirit which would
- bow to none but God, the spirit which said this in words and
- confirmed it with deeds. There have always been Tells in
- Switzerland--people who would not bow. There was a sufficiency
- of them at Rutli; there were plenty of them at Murten; plenty at
- Grandson; there are plenty today. And the first of them all--the
- very first, earliest banner-bearer of human freedom in this
- world--was not a man, but a woman--Stauffacher's wife. There she
- looms dim and great, through the haze of the centuries,
- delivering into her husband's ear that gospel of revolt which was
- to bear fruit in the conspiracy of Rutli and the birth of the
- first free government the world had ever seen.
-
- From this Victoria Hotel one looks straight across a flat of
- trifling width to a lofty mountain barrier, which has a gateway
- in it shaped like an inverted pyramid. Beyond this gateway
- arises the vast bulk of the Jungfrau, a spotless mass of gleaming
- snow, into the sky. The gateway, in the dark-colored barrier,
- makes a strong frame for the great picture. The somber frame and
- the glowing snow-pile are startlingly contrasted. It is this
- frame which concentrates and emphasizes the glory of the Jungfrau
- and makes it the most engaging and beguiling and fascinating
- spectacle that exists on the earth. There are many mountains of
- snow that are as lofty as the Jungfrau and as nobly proportioned,
- but they lack the fame. They stand at large; they are intruded
- upon and elbowed by neighboring domes and summits, and their
- grandeur is diminished and fails of effect.
-
- It is a good name, Jungfrau--Virgin. Nothing could be
- whiter; nothing could be purer; nothing could be saintlier of
- aspect. At six yesterday evening the great intervening barrier
- seen through a faint bluish haze seemed made of air and
- substanceless, so soft and rich it was, so shimmering where the
- wandering lights touched it and so dim where the shadows lay.
- Apparently it was a dream stuff, a work of the imagination,
- nothing real about it. The tint was green, slightly varying
- shades of it, but mainly very dark. The sun was down--as far as
- that barrier was concerned, but not for the Jungfrau, towering
- into the heavens beyond the gateway. She was a roaring
- conflagration of blinding white.
-
-
- It is said the Fridolin (the old Fridolin), a new saint, but
- formerly a missionary, gave the mountain its gracious name. He
- was an Irishman, son of an Irish king--there were thirty thousand
- kings reigning in County Cork alone in his time, fifteen hundred
- years ago. It got so that they could not make a living, there
- was so much competition and wages got cut so. Some of them were
- out of work months at a time, with wife and little children to
- feed, and not a crust in the place. At last a particularly
- severe winter fell upon the country, and hundreds of them were
- reduced to mendicancy and were to be seen day after day in the
- bitterest weather, standing barefoot in the snow, holding out
- their crowns for alms. Indeed, they would have been obliged to
- emigrate or starve but for a fortunate idea of Prince Fridolin's,
- who started a labor-union, the first one in history, and got the
- great bulk of them to join it. He thus won the general
- gratitude, and they wanted to make him emperor--emperor over them
- all--emperor of County Cork, but he said, No, walking delegate
- was good enough for him. For behold! he was modest beyond his
- years, and keen as a whip. To this day in Germany and
- Switzerland, where St. Fridolin is revered and honored, the
- peasantry speak of him affectionately as the first walking
- delegate.
-
- The first walk he took was into France and Germany,
- missionarying--for missionarying was a better thing in those days
- than it is in ours. All you had to do was to cure the savage's
- sick daughter by a "miracle"--a miracle like the miracle of
- Lourdes in our day, for instance--and immediately that head
- savage was your convert, and filled to the eyes with a new
- convert's enthusiasm. You could sit down and make yourself easy,
- now. He would take an ax and convert the rest of the nation
- himself. Charlemagne was that kind of a walking delegate.
-
- Yes, there were great missionaries in those days, for the
- methods were sure and the rewards great. We have no such
- missionaries now, and no such methods.
-
- But to continue the history of the first walking delegate,
- if you are interested. I am interested myself because I have
- seen his relics in Sackingen, and also the very spot where he
- worked his great miracle--the one which won him his sainthood in
- the papal court a few centuries later. To have seen these things
- makes me feel very near to him, almost like a member of the
- family, in fact. While wandering about the Continent he arrived
- at the spot on the Rhine which is now occupied by Sackingen, and
- proposed to settle there, but the people warned him off. He
- appealed to the king of the Franks, who made him a present of the
- whole region, people and all. He built a great cloister there
- for women and proceeded to teach in it and accumulate more land.
- There were two wealthy brothers in the neighborhood, Urso and
- Landulph. Urso died and Fridolin claimed his estates. Landulph
- asked for documents and papers. Fridolin had none to show. He
- said the bequest had been made to him by word of mouth. Landulph
- suggested that he produce a witness and said it in a way which he
- thought was very witty, very sarcastic. This shows that he did
- not know the walking delegate. Fridolin was not disturbed.
- He said:
-
- "Appoint your court. I will bring a witness."
-
- The court thus created consisted of fifteen counts and
- barons. A day was appointed for the trial of the case. On that
- day the judges took their seats in state, and proclamation was
- made that the court was ready for business. Five minutes, ten
- minutes, fifteen minutes passed, and yet no Fridolin appeared.
- Landulph rose, and was in the act of claiming judgment by default
- when a strange clacking sound was heard coming up the stairs.
- In another moment Fridolin entered at the door and came walking
- in a deep hush down the middle aisle, with a tall skeleton
- stalking in his rear.
-
- Amazement and terror sat upon every countenance, for everybody
- suspected that the skeleton was Urso's. It stopped before the
- chief judge and raised its bony arm aloft and began to speak,
- while all the assembled shuddered, for they could see the
- words leak out between its ribs. It said:
-
- "Brother, why dost thou disturb my blessed rest and withhold
- by robbery the gift which I gave thee for the honor of God?"
-
- It seems a strange thing and most irregular, but the verdict
- was actually given against Landulph on the testimony of this
- wandering rack-heap of unidentified bones. In our day a skeleton
- would not be allowed to testify at all, for a skeleton has no
- moral responsibility, and its word could not be believed on oath,
- and this was probably one of them. However, the incident is
- valuable as preserving to us a curious sample of the quaint laws
- of evidence of that remote time--a time so remote, so far back
- toward the beginning of original idiocy, that the difference
- between a bench of judges and a basket of vegetables was as yet
- so slight that we may say with all confidence that it didn't
- really exist.
-
-
- During several afternoons I have been engaged in an
- interesting, maybe useful, piece of work--that is to say, I have
- been trying to make the mighty Jungfrau earn her living--earn it
- in a most humble sphere, but on a prodigious scale, on a
- prodigious scale of necessity, for she couldn't do anything in a
- small way with her size and style. I have been trying to make
- her do service on a stupendous dial and check off the hours as
- they glide along her pallid face up there against the sky, and
- tell the time of day to the populations lying within fifty miles
- of her and to the people in the moon, if they have a good
- telescope there.
-
- Until late in the afternoon the Jungfrau's aspect is that of
- a spotless desert of snow set upon edge against the sky. But by
- mid-afternoon some elevations which rise out of the western
- border of the desert, whose presence you perhaps had not detected
- or suspected up to that time, began to cast black shadows
- eastward across the gleaming surface. At first there is only one
- shadow; later there are two. Toward 4 P.M. the other day I was
- gazing and worshiping as usual when I chanced to notice that
- shadow No. 1 was beginning to take itself something of the shape
- of the human profile. By four the back of the head was good, the
- military cap was pretty good, the nose was bold and strong, the
- upper lip sharp, but not pretty, and there was a great goatee
- that shot straight aggressively forward from the chin.
-
- At four-thirty the nose had changed its shape considerably,
- and the altered slant of the sun had revealed and made
- conspicuous a huge buttress or barrier of naked rock which was so
- located as to answer very well for a shoulder or coat-collar to
- this swarthy and indiscreet sweetheart who had stolen out there
- right before everybody to pillow his head on the Virgin's white
- breast and whisper soft sentimentalities to her in the sensuous
- music of the crashing ice-domes and the boom and thunder of the
- passing avalanche--music very familiar to his ear, for he had
- heard it every afternoon at this hour since the day he first came
- courting this child of the earth, who lives in the sky, and that
- day is far, yes--for he was at this pleasant sport before the
- Middle Ages drifted by him in the valley; before the Romans
- marched past, and before the antique and recordless barbarians
- fished and hunted here and wondered who he might be, and were
- probably afraid of him; and before primeval man himself, just
- emerged from his four-footed estate, stepped out upon this plain,
- first sample of his race, a thousand centuries ago, and cast a
- glad eye up there, judging he had found a brother human being and
- consequently something to kill; and before the big saurians
- wallowed here, still some eons earlier. Oh yes, a day so far
- back that the eternal son was present to see that first visit; a
- day so far back that neither tradition nor history was born yet
- and a whole weary eternity must come and go before the restless
- little creature, of whose face this stupendous Shadow Face was
- the prophecy, would arrive in the earth and begin his shabby
- career and think of a big thing. Oh, indeed yes; when you talk
- about your poor Roman and Egyptian day-before-yesterday
- antiquities, you should choose a time when the hoary Shadow Face
- of the Jungfrau is not by. It antedates all antiquities known or
- imaginable; for it was here the world itself created the theater
- of future antiquities. And it is the only witness with a human
- face that was there to see the marvel, and remains to us a
- memorial of it.
-
- By 4:40 P.M. the nose of the shadow is perfect and is
- beautiful. It is black and is powerfully marked against the
- upright canvas of glowing snow, and covers hundreds of acres of
- that resplendent surface.
-
- Meantime shadow No. 2 has been creeping out well to the rear
- of the face west of it--and at five o'clock has assumed a shape
- that has rather a poor and rude semblance of a shoe.
-
- Meantime, also, the great Shadow Face has been gradually changing
- for twenty minutes, and now, 5 P.M., it is becoming a quite fair
- portrait of Roscoe Conkling. The likeness is there, and is
- unmistakable. The goatee is shortened, now, and has an end;
- formerly it hadn't any, but ran off eastward and arrived nowhere.
-
- By 6 P.M. the face has dissolved and gone, and the goatee
- has become what looks like the shadow of a tower with a pointed
- roof, and the shoe had turned into what the printers call a
- "fist" with a finger pointing.
-
- If I were now imprisoned on a mountain summit a hundred
- miles northward of this point, and was denied a timepiece, I
- could get along well enough from four till six on clear days, for
- I could keep trace of the time by the changing shapes of these
- mighty shadows of the Virgin's front, the most stupendous dial I
- am acquainted with, the oldest clock in the world by a couple of
- million years.
-
- I suppose I should not have noticed the forms of the shadows
- if I hadn't the habit of hunting for faces in the clouds and in
- mountain crags--a sort of amusement which is very entertaining
- even when you don't find any, and brilliantly satisfying when you
- do. I have searched through several bushels of photographs of
- the Jungfrau here, but found only one with the Face in it, and in
- this case it was not strictly recognizable as a face, which was
- evidence that the picture was taken before four o'clock in the
- afternoon, and also evidence that all the photographers have
- persistently overlooked one of the most fascinating features of
- the Jungfrau show. I say fascinating, because if you once detect
- a human face produced on a great plan by unconscious nature, you
- never get tired of watching it. At first you can't make another
- person see it at all, but after he has made it out once he can't
- see anything else afterward.
-
-
- The King of Greece is a man who goes around quietly enough
- when off duty. One day this summer he was traveling in an
- ordinary first-class compartment, just in his other suit, the one
- which he works the realm in when he is at home, and so he was not
- looking like anybody in particular, but a good deal like
- everybody in general. By and by a hearty and healthy German-
- American got in and opened up a frank and interesting and
- sympathetic conversation with him, and asked him a couple of
- thousand questions about himself, which the king answered good-
- naturedly, but in a more or less indefinite way as to private
- particulars.
-
- "Where do you live when you are at home?"
-
- "In Greece."
-
- "Greece! Well, now, that is just astonishing! Born there?"
-
- "No."
-
- "Do you speak Greek?"
-
- "Yes."
-
- "Now, ain't that strange! I never expected to live to see
- that. What is your trade? I mean how do you get your living?
- What is your line of business?"
-
- "Well, I hardly know how to answer. I am only a kind of
- foreman, on a salary; and the business--well, is a very general
- kind of business."
-
- "Yes, I understand--general jobbing--little of everything--
- anything that there's money in."
-
- "That's about it, yes."
-
- "Are you traveling for the house now?"
-
- "Well, partly; but not entirely. Of course I do a stroke of
- business if it falls in the way--"
-
- "Good! I like that in you! That's me every time. Go on."
-
- "I was only going to say I am off on my vacation now."
-
- "Well that's all right. No harm in that. A man works all
- the better for a little let-up now and then. Not that I've been
- used to having it myself; for I haven't. I reckon this is my
- first. I was born in Germany, and when I was a couple of weeks
- old shipped to America, and I've been there ever since, and
- that's sixty-four years by the watch. I'm an American in
- principle and a German at heart, and it's the boss combination.
- Well, how do you get along, as a rule--pretty fair?"
-
- "I've a rather large family--"
-
- "There, that's it--big family and trying to raise them on a
- salary. Now, what did you go to do that for?"
-
- "Well, I thought--"
-
- "Of course you did. You were young and confident and
- thought you could branch out and make things go with a whirl, and
- here you are, you see! But never mind about that. I'm not
- trying to discourage you. Dear me! I've been just where you are
- myself! You've got good grit; there's good stuff in you, I can
- see that. You got a wrong start, that's the whole trouble. But
- you hold your grip, and we'll see what can be done. Your case
- ain't half as bad as it might be. You are going to come out all
- right--I'm bail for that. Boys and girls?"
-
- "My family? Yes, some of them are boys--"
-
- "And the rest girls. It's just as I expected. But that's
- all right, and it's better so, anyway. What are the boys doing--
- learning a trade?"
-
- "Well, no--I thought--"
-
- "It's a big mistake. It's the biggest mistake you ever
- made. You see that in your own case. A man ought always to have
- a trade to fall back on. Now, I was harness-maker at first. Did
- that prevent me from becoming one of the biggest brewers in
- America? Oh no. I always had the harness trick to fall back on
- in rough weather. Now, if you had learned how to make harness--
- However, it's too late now; too late. But it's no good plan to
- cry over spilt milk. But as to the boys, you see--what's to
- become of them if anything happens to you?"
-
- "It has been my idea to let the eldest one succeed me--"
-
- "Oh, come! Suppose the firm don't want him?"
-
- "I hadn't thought of that, but--"
-
- "Now, look here; you want to get right down to business and
- stop dreaming. You are capable of immense things--man. You can
- make a perfect success in life. All you want is somebody to
- steady you and boost you along on the right road. Do you own
- anything in the business?"
-
- "No--not exactly; but if I continue to give satisfaction, I
- suppose I can keep my--"
-
- "Keep your place--yes. Well, don't you depend on anything
- of the kind. They'll bounce you the minute you get a little old
- and worked out; they'll do it sure. Can't you manage somehow to
- get into the firm? That's the great thing, you know."
-
- "I think it is doubtful; very doubtful."
-
- "Um--that's bad--yes, and unfair, too. Do you suppose that
- if I should go there and have a talk with your people-- Look
- here--do you think you could run a brewery?"
-
- "I have never tried, but I think I could do it after a
- little familiarity with the business."
-
- The German was silent for some time. He did a good deal of
- thinking, and the king waited curiously to see what the result
- was going to be. Finally the German said:
-
- "My mind's made up. You leave that crowd--you'll never
- amount to anything there. In these old countries they never give
- a fellow a show. Yes, you come over to America--come to my place
- in Rochester; bring the family along. You shall have a show in
- the business and the foremanship, besides. George--you said your
- name was George?--I'll make a man of you. I give you my word.
- You've never had a chance here, but that's all going to change.
- By gracious! I'll give you a lift that'll make your hair curl!"
-
- ------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
- AT THE SHRINE OF ST. WAGNER
-
-
- Bayreuth, Aug. 2d, 1891
-
-
- It was at Nuremberg that we struck the inundation of music-
- mad strangers that was rolling down upon Bayreuth. It had been
- long since we had seen such multitudes of excited and struggling
- people. It took a good half-hour to pack them and pair them into
- the train--and it was the longest train we have yet seen in
- Europe. Nuremberg had been witnessing this sort of experience a
- couple of times a day for about two weeks. It gives one an
- impressive sense of the magnitude of this biennial pilgrimage.
- For a pilgrimage is what it is. The devotees come from the very
- ends of the earth to worship their prophet in his own Kaaba in
- his own Mecca.
-
- If you are living in New York or San Francisco or Chicago or
- anywhere else in America, and you conclude, by the middle of May,
- that you would like to attend the Bayreuth opera two months and a
- half later, you must use the cable and get about it immediately
- or you will get no seats, and you must cable for lodgings, too.
- Then if you are lucky you will get seats in the last row and
- lodgings in the fringe of the town. If you stop to write you
- will get nothing. There were plenty of people in Nuremberg when
- we passed through who had come on pilgrimage without first
- securing seats and lodgings. They had found neither in Bayreuth;
- they had walked Bayreuth streets a while in sorrow, then had gone
- to Nuremberg and found neither beds nor standing room, and had
- walked those quaint streets all night, waiting for the hotels to
- open and empty their guests into trains, and so make room for
- these, their defeated brethren and sisters in the faith. They
- had endured from thirty to forty hours' railroading on the
- continent of Europe--with all which that implies of worry,
- fatigue, and financial impoverishment--and all they had got and
- all they were to get for it was handiness and accuracy in kicking
- themselves, acquired by practice in the back streets of the two
- towns when other people were in bed; for back they must go over
- that unspeakable journey with their pious mission unfulfilled.
- These humiliated outcasts had the frowsy and unbrushed and
- apologetic look of wet cats, and their eyes were glazed with
- drowsiness, their bodies were adroop from crown to sole, and all
- kind-hearted people refrained from asking them if they had been
- to Bayreuth and failed to connect, as knowing they would lie.
-
- We reached here (Bayreuth) about mid-afternoon of a rainy
- Saturday. We were of the wise, and had secured lodgings and
- opera seats months in advance.
-
- I am not a musical critic, and did not come here to write
- essays about the operas and deliver judgment upon their merits.
- The little children of Bayreuth could do that with a finer
- sympathy and a broader intelligence than I. I only care to bring
- four or five pilgrims to the operas, pilgrims able to appreciate
- them and enjoy them. What I write about the performance to put
- in my odd time would be offered to the public as merely a cat's
- view of a king, and not of didactic value.
-
- Next day, which was Sunday, we left for the opera-house--
- that is to say, the Wagner temple--a little after the middle of
- the afternoon. The great building stands all by itself, grand
- and lonely, on a high ground outside the town. We were warned
- that if we arrived after four o'clock we should be obliged to pay
- two dollars and a half extra by way of fine. We saved that; and
- it may be remarked here that this is the only opportunity that
- Europe offers of saving money. There was a big crowd in the
- grounds about the building, and the ladies' dresses took the sun
- with fine effect. I do not mean to intimate that the ladies were
- in full dress, for that was not so. The dresses were pretty, but
- neither sex was in evening dress.
-
- The interior of the building is simple--severely so; but
- there is no occasion for color and decoration, since the people
- sit in the dark. The auditorium has the shape of a keystone,
- with the stage at the narrow end. There is an aisle on each
- side, but no aisle in the body of the house. Each row of seats
- extends in an unbroken curve from one side of the house to the
- other. There are seven entrance doors on each side of the
- theater and four at the butt, eighteen doors to admit and emit
- 1,650 persons. The number of the particular door by which you
- are to enter the house or leave it is printed on your ticket, and
- you can use no door but that one. Thus, crowding and confusion
- are impossible. Not so many as a hundred people use any one
- door. This is better than having the usual (and useless)
- elaborate fireproof arrangements. It is the model theater of the
- world. It can be emptied while the second hand of a watch makes
- its circuit. It would be entirely safe, even if it were built of
- lucifer matches.
-
- If your seat is near the center of a row and you enter late
- you must work your way along a rank of about twenty-five ladies
- and gentlemen to get to it. Yet this causes no trouble, for
- everybody stands up until all the seats are full, and the filling
- is accomplished in a very few minutes. Then all sit down, and
- you have a solid mass of fifteen hundred heads, making a steep
- cellar-door slant from the rear of the house down to the stage.
-
- All the lights were turned low, so low that the congregation
- sat in a deep and solemn gloom. The funereal rustling of dresses
- and the low buzz of conversation began to die swiftly down, and
- presently not the ghost of a sound was left. This profound and
- increasingly impressive stillness endured for some time--the best
- preparation for music, spectacle, or speech conceivable. I should
- think our show people would have invented or imported that simple
- and impressive device for securing and solidifying the attention
- of an audience long ago; instead of which there continue to this
- day to open a performance against a deadly competition in the
- form of noise, confusion, and a scattered interest.
-
- Finally, out of darkness and distance and mystery soft rich
- notes rose upon the stillness, and from his grave the dead
- magician began to weave his spells about his disciples and steep
- their souls in his enchantments. There was something strangely
- impressive in the fancy which kept intruding itself that the
- composer was conscious in his grave of what was going on here,
- and that these divine souls were the clothing of thoughts which
- were at this moment passing through his brain, and not recognized
- and familiar ones which had issued from it at some former time.
-
- The entire overture, long as it was, was played to a dark
- house with the curtain down. It was exquisite; it was delicious.
- But straightway thereafter, or course, came the singing, and it
- does seem to me that nothing can make a Wagner opera absolutely
- perfect and satisfactory to the untutored but to leave out the
- vocal parts. I wish I could see a Wagner opera done in pantomime
- once. Then one would have the lovely orchestration unvexed to
- listen to and bathe his spirit in, and the bewildering beautiful
- scenery to intoxicate his eyes with, and the dumb acting couldn't
- mar these pleasures, because there isn't often anything in the
- Wagner opera that one would call by such a violent name as
- acting; as a rule all you would see would be a couple of silent
- people, one of them standing still, the other catching flies. Of
- course I do not really mean that he would be catching flies; I
- only mean that the usual operatic gestures which consist in
- reaching first one hand out into the air and then the other might
- suggest the sport I speak of if the operator attended strictly to
- business and uttered no sound.
-
- This present opera was "Parsifal." Madame Wagner does not
- permit its representation anywhere but in Bayreuth. The first
- act of the three occupied two hours, and I enjoyed that in spite
- of the singing.
-
- I trust that I know as well as anybody that singing is one
- of the most entrancing and bewitching and moving and eloquent of
- all the vehicles invented by man for the conveying of feeling;
- but it seems to me that the chief virtue in song is melody, air,
- tune, rhythm, or what you please to call it, and that when this
- feature is absent what remains is a picture with the color left
- out. I was not able to detect in the vocal parts of "Parsifal"
- anything that might with confidence be called rhythm or tune or
- melody; one person performed at a time--and a long time, too--
- often in a noble, and always in a high-toned, voice; but he only
- pulled out long notes, then some short ones, then another long
- one, then a sharp, quick, peremptory bark or two--and so on and
- so on; and when he was done you saw that the information which he
- had conveyed had not compensated for the disturbance. Not
- always, but pretty often. If two of them would but put in a duet
- occasionally and blend the voices; but no, they don't do that.
- The great master, who knew so well how to make a hundred
- instruments rejoice in unison and pour out their souls in mingled
- and melodious tides of delicious sound, deals only in barren
- solos when he puts in the vocal parts. It may be that he was
- deep, and only added the singing to his operas for the sake of
- the contrast it would make with the music. Singing! It does
- seem the wrong name to apply to it. Strictly described, it is a
- practicing of difficult and unpleasant intervals, mainly. An
- ignorant person gets tired of listening to gymnastic intervals in
- the long run, no matter how pleasant they may be. In "Parsifal"
- there is a hermit named Gurnemanz who stands on the stage in one
- spot and practices by the hour, while first one and then another
- character of the cast endures what he can of it and then retires
- to die.
-
- During the evening there was an intermission of three-
- quarters of an hour after the first act and one an hour long
- after the second. In both instances the theater was totally
- emptied. People who had previously engaged tables in the one
- sole eating-house were able to put in their time very
- satisfactorily; the other thousand went hungry. The opera was
- concluded at ten in the evening or a little later. When we
- reached home we had been gone more than seven hours. Seven hours
- at five dollars a ticket is almost too much for the money.
-
- While browsing about the front yard among the crowd between
- the acts I encountered twelve or fifteen friends from different
- parts of America, and those of them who were most familiar with
- Wagner said that "Parsifal" seldom pleased at first, but that
- after one had heard it several times it was almost sure to become
- a favorite. It seemed impossible, but it was true, for the
- statement came from people whose word was not to be doubted.
-
- And I gathered some further information. On the ground I
- found part of a German musical magazine, and in it a letter
- written by Uhlic thirty-three years ago, in which he defends the
- scorned and abused Wagner against people like me, who found fault
- with the comprehensive absence of what our kind regards as
- singing. Uhlic says Wagner despised "JENE PLAPPERUDE MUSIC," and
- therefore "runs, trills, and SCHNORKEL are discarded by him." I
- don't know what a SCHNORKEL is, but now that I know it has been
- left out of these operas I never have missed so much in my life.
- And Uhlic further says that Wagner's song is true: that it is
- "simply emphasized intoned speech." That certainly describes it
- --in "Parsifal" and some of the operas; and if I understand
- Uhlic's elaborate German he apologizes for the beautiful airs in
- "Tannh:auser." Very well; now that Wagner and I understand each
- other, perhaps we shall get along better, and I shall stop
- calling Waggner, on the American plan, and thereafter call him
- Waggner as per German custom, for I feel entirely friendly now.
- The minute we get reconciled to a person, how willing we are to
- throw aside little needless puctilios and pronounce his name
- right!
-
- Of course I came home wondering why people should come from
- all corners of America to hear these operas, when we have lately
- had a season or two of them in New York with these same singers
- in the several parts, and possibly this same orchestra. I
- resolved to think that out at all hazards.
-
- TUESDAY.--Yesterday they played the only operatic favorite I
- have ever had--an opera which has always driven me mad with
- ignorant delight whenever I have heard it--"Tannh:auser." I
- heard it first when I was a youth; I heard it last in the last
- German season in New York. I was busy yesterday and I did not
- intend to go, knowing I should have another "Tannh:auser"
- opportunity in a few days; but after five o'clock I found myself
- free and walked out to the opera-house and arrived about the
- beginning of the second act. My opera ticket admitted me to the
- grounds in front, past the policeman and the chain, and I thought
- I would take a rest on a bench for an hour and two and wait for
- the third act.
-
- In a moment or so the first bugles blew, and the multitude
- began to crumble apart and melt into the theater. I will explain
- that this bugle-call is one of the pretty features here. You
- see, the theater is empty, and hundreds of the audience are a
- good way off in the feeding-house; the first bugle-call is blown
- about a quarter of an hour before time for the curtain to rise.
- This company of buglers, in uniform, march out with military step
- and send out over the landscape a few bars of the theme of the
- approaching act, piercing the distances with the gracious notes;
- then they march to the other entrance and repeat. Presently they
- do this over again. Yesterday only about two hundred people were
- still left in front of the house when the second call was blown;
- in another half-minute they would have been in the house, but
- then a thing happened which delayed them--the only solitary thing
- in this world which could be relied on with certainty to
- accomplish it, I suppose--an imperial princess appeared in the
- balcony above them. They stopped dead in their tracks and began
- to gaze in a stupor of gratitude and satisfaction. The lady
- presently saw that she must disappear or the doors would be
- closed upon these worshipers, so she returned to her box. This
- daughter-in-law of an emperor was pretty; she had a kind face;
- she was without airs; she is known to be full of common human
- sympathies. There are many kinds of princesses, but this kind is
- the most harmful of all, for wherever they go they reconcile
- people to monarchy and set back the clock of progress. The
- valuable princes, the desirable princes, are the czars and their
- sort. By their mere dumb presence in the world they cover with
- derision every argument that can be invented in favor of royalty
- by the most ingenious casuist. In his time the husband of this
- princess was valuable. He led a degraded life, he ended it with
- his own hand in circumstances and surroundings of a hideous sort,
- and was buried like a god.
-
- In the opera-house there is a long loft back of the
- audience, a kind of open gallery, in which princes are displayed.
- It is sacred to them; it is the holy of holies. As soon as the
- filling of the house is about complete the standing multitude
- turn and fix their eyes upon the princely layout and gaze mutely
- and longingly and adoringly and regretfully like sinners looking
- into heaven. They become rapt, unconscious, steeped in worship.
- There is no spectacle anywhere that is more pathetic than this.
- It is worth crossing many oceans to see. It is somehow not the
- same gaze that people rivet upon a Victor Hugo, or Niagara, or
- the bones of the mastodon, or the guillotine of the Revolution,
- or the great pyramid, or distant Vesuvius smoking in the sky, or
- any man long celebrated to you by his genius and achievements, or
- thing long celebrated to you by the praises of books and
- pictures--no, that gaze is only the gaze of intense curiosity,
- interest, wonder, engaged in drinking delicious deep draughts
- that taste good all the way down and appease and satisfy the
- thirst of a lifetime. Satisfy it--that is the word. Hugo and
- the mastodon will still have a degree of intense interest
- thereafter when encountered, but never anything approaching the
- ecstasy of that first view. The interest of a prince is
- different. It may be envy, it may be worship, doubtless it is a
- mixture of both--and it does not satisfy its thirst with one
- view, or even noticeably diminish it. Perhaps the essence of the
- thing is the value which men attach to a valuable something which
- has come by luck and not been earned. A dollar picked up in the
- road is more satisfaction to you than the ninety-and-nine which
- you had to work for, and money won at faro or in stocks snuggles
- into your heart in the same way. A prince picks up grandeur,
- power, and a permanent holiday and gratis support by a pure
- accident, the accident of birth, and he stands always before the
- grieved eye of poverty and obscurity a monumental representative
- of luck. And then--supremest value of all-his is the only high
- fortune on the earth which is secure. The commercial millionaire
- may become a beggar; the illustrious statesman can make a vital
- mistake and be dropped and forgotten; the illustrious general can
- lose a decisive battle and with it the consideration of men; but
- once a prince always a prince--that is to say, an imitation god,
- and neither hard fortune nor an infamous character nor an addled
- brain nor the speech of an ass can undeify him. By common
- consent of all the nations and all the ages the most valuable
- thing in this world is the homage of men, whether deserved or
- undeserved. It follows without doubt or question, then, that the
- most desirable position possible is that of a prince. And I
- think it also follows that the so-called usurpations with which
- history is littered are the most excusable misdemeanors which men
- have committed. To usurp a usurpation--that is all it amounts
- to, isn't it?
-
- A prince is not to us what he is to a European, of course.
- We have not been taught to regard him as a god, and so one good
- look at him is likely to so nearly appease our curiosity as to
- make him an object of no greater interest the next time. We want
- a fresh one. But it is not so with the European. I am quite
- sure of it. The same old one will answer; he never stales.
- Eighteen years ago I was in London and I called at an
- Englishman's house on a bleak and foggy and dismal December
- afternoon to visit his wife and married daughter by appointment.
- I waited half an hour and then they arrived, frozen. They
- explained that they had been delayed by an unlooked-for
- circumstance: while passing in the neighborhood of Marlborough
- House they saw a crowd gathering and were told that the Prince of
- Wales was about to drive out, so they stopped to get a sight of
- him. They had waited half an hour on the sidewalk, freezing with
- the crowd, but were disappointed at last--the Prince had changed
- his mind. I said, with a good deal of surprise, "Is it possible
- that you two have lived in London all your lives and have never
- seen the Prince of Wales?"
-
- Apparently it was their turn to be surprised, for they
- exclaimed: "What an idea! Why, we have seen him hundreds of
- times."
-
- They had seem him hundreds of times, yet they had waited
- half an hour in the gloom and the bitter cold, in the midst of a
- jam of patients from the same asylum, on the chance of seeing him
- again. It was a stupefying statement, but one is obliged to
- believe the English, even when they say a thing like that. I
- fumbled around for a remark, and got out this one:
-
- "I can't understand it at all. If I had never seen General
- Grant I doubt if I would do that even to get a sight of him."
- With a slight emphasis on the last word.
-
- Their blank faces showed that they wondered where the
- parallel came in. Then they said, blankly: "Of course not. He
- is only a President."
-
- It is doubtless a fact that a prince is a permanent
- interest, an interest not subject to deterioration. The general
- who was never defeated, the general who never held a council of
- war, the only general who ever commanded a connected battle-front
- twelve hundred miles long, the smith who welded together the
- broken parts of a great republic and re-established it where it
- is quite likely to outlast all the monarchies present and to
- come, was really a person of no serious consequence to these
- people. To them, with their training, my General was only a man,
- after all, while their Prince was clearly much more than that--a
- being of a wholly unsimilar construction and constitution, and
- being of no more blood and kinship with men than are the serene
- eternal lights of the firmament with the poor dull tallow candles
- of commerce that sputter and die and leave nothing behind but a
- pinch of ashes and a stink.
-
- I saw the last act of "Tannh:auser." I sat in the gloom and
- the deep stillness, waiting--one minute, two minutes, I do not
- know exactly how long--then the soft music of the hidden
- orchestra began to breathe its rich, long sighs out from under
- the distant stage, and by and by the drop-curtain parted in the
- middle and was drawn softly aside, disclosing the twilighted wood
- and a wayside shrine, with a white-robed girl praying and a man
- standing near. Presently that noble chorus of men's voices was
- heard approaching, and from that moment until the closing of the
- curtain it was music, just music--music to make one drunk with
- pleasure, music to make one take scrip and staff and beg his way
- round the globe to hear it.
-
- To such as are intending to come here in the Wagner season
- next year I wish to say, bring your dinner-pail with you. If you
- do, you will never cease to be thankful. If you do not, you will
- find it a hard fight to save yourself from famishing in Bayreuth.
- Bayreuth is merely a large village, and has no very large hotels
- or eating-houses. The principal inns are the Golden Anchor and
- the Sun. At either of these places you can get an excellent
- meal--no, I mean you can go there and see other people get it.
- There is no charge for this. The town is littered with
- restaurants, but they are small and bad, and they are overdriven
- with custom. You must secure a table hours beforehand, and often
- when you arrive you will find somebody occupying it. We have had
- this experience. We have had a daily scramble for life; and when
- I say we, I include shoals of people. I have the impression that
- the only people who do not have to scramble are the veterans--the
- disciples who have been here before and know the ropes. I think
- they arrive about a week before the first opera, and engage all
- the tables for the season. My tribe had tried all kinds of
- places--some outside of the town, a mile or two--and have
- captured only nibblings and odds and ends, never in any instance
- a complete and satisfying meal. Digestible? No, the reverse.
- These odds and ends are going to serve as souvenirs of Bayreuth,
- and in that regard their value is not to be overestimated.
- Photographs fade, bric-a-brac gets lost, busts of Wagner get
- broken, but once you absorb a Bayreuth-restaurant meal it is your
- possession and your property until the time comes to embalm the
- rest of you. Some of these pilgrims here become, in effect,
- cabinets; cabinets of souvenirs of Bayreuth. It is believed
- among scientists that you could examine the crop of a dead
- Bayreuth pilgrim anywhere in the earth and tell where he came
- from. But I like this ballast. I think a "Hermitage" scrap-up
- at eight in the evening, when all the famine-breeders have been
- there and laid in their mementoes and gone, is the quietest thing
- you can lay on your keelson except gravel.
-
- THURSDAY.--They keep two teams of singers in stock for the
- chief roles, and one of these is composed of the most renowned
- artists in the world, with Materna and Alvary in the lead. I
- suppose a double team is necessary; doubtless a single team would
- die of exhaustion in a week, for all the plays last from four in
- the afternoon till ten at night. Nearly all the labor falls upon
- the half-dozen head singers, and apparently they are required to
- furnish all the noise they can for the money. If they feel a
- soft, whispery, mysterious feeling they are required to open out
- and let the public know it. Operas are given only on Sundays,
- Mondays, Wednesdays, and Thursdays, with three days of ostensible
- rest per week, and two teams to do the four operas; but the
- ostensible rest is devoted largely to rehearsing. It is said
- that the off days are devoted to rehearsing from some time in the
- morning till ten at night. Are there two orchestras also? It is
- quite likely, since there are one hundred and ten names in the
- orchestra list.
-
- Yesterday the opera was "Tristan and Isolde." I have seen
- all sorts of audiences--at theaters, operas, concerts, lectures,
- sermons, funerals--but none which was twin to the Wagner audience
- of Bayreuth for fixed and reverential attention. Absolute
- attention and petrified retention to the end of an act of the
- attitude assumed at the beginning of it. You detect no movement
- in the solid mass of heads and shoulders. You seem to sit with
- the dead in the gloom of a tomb. You know that they are being
- stirred to their profoundest depths; that there are times when
- they want to rise and wave handkerchiefs and shout their
- approbation, and times when tears are running down their faces,
- and it would be a relief to free their pent emotions in sobs or
- screams; yet you hear not one utterance till the curtain swings
- together and the closing strains have slowly faded out and died;
- then the dead rise with one impulse and shake the building with
- their applause. Every seat is full in the first act; there is
- not a vacant one in the last. If a man would be conspicuous, let
- him come here and retire from the house in the midst of an act.
- It would make him celebrated.
-
- This audience reminds me of nothing I have ever seen and of
- nothing I have read about except the city in the Arabian tale
- where all the inhabitants have been turned to brass and the
- traveler finds them after centuries mute, motionless, and still
- retaining the attitudes which they last knew in life. Here the
- Wagner audience dress as they please, and sit in the dark and
- worship in silence. At the Metropolitan in New York they sit in
- a glare, and wear their showiest harness; they hum airs, they
- squeak fans, they titter, and they gabble all the time. In some
- of the boxes the conversation and laughter are so loud as to
- divide the attention of the house with the stage. In large
- measure the Metropolitan is a show-case for rich fashionables who
- are not trained in Wagnerian music and have no reverence for it,
- but who like to promote art and show their clothes.
-
- Can that be an agreeable atmosphere to persons in whom this
- music produces a sort of divine ecstasy and to whom its creator
- is a very deity, his stage a temple, the works of his brain and
- hands consecrated things, and the partaking of them with eye and
- ear a sacred solemnity? Manifestly, no. Then, perhaps the
- temporary expatriation, the tedious traversing of seas and
- continents, the pilgrimage to Bayreuth stands explained. These
- devotees would worship in an atmosphere of devotion. It is only
- here that they can find it without fleck or blemish or any
- worldly pollution. In this remote village there are no sights to
- see, there is no newspaper to intrude the worries of the distant
- world, there is nothing going on, it is always Sunday. The
- pilgrim wends to his temple out of town, sits out his moving
- service, returns to his bed with his heart and soul and his body
- exhausted by long hours of tremendous emotion, and he is in no
- fit condition to do anything but to lie torpid and slowly gather
- back life and strength for the next service. This opera of
- "Tristan and Isolde" last night broke the hearts of all witnesses
- who were of the faith, and I know of some who have heard of many
- who could not sleep after it, but cried the night away. I feel
- strongly out of place here. Sometimes I feel like the sane
- person in a community of the mad; sometimes I feel like the one
- blind man where all others see; the one groping savage in the
- college of the learned, and always, during service, I feel like a
- heretic in heaven.
-
- But by no means do I ever overlook or minify the fact that
- this is one of the most extraordinary experiences of my life. I
- have never seen anything like this before. I have never seen
- anything so great and fine and real as this devotion.
-
- FRIDAY.--Yesterday's opera was "Parsifal" again. The others
- went and they show marked advance in appreciation; but I went
- hunting for relics and reminders of the Margravine Wilhelmina,
- she of the imperishable "Memoirs." I am properly grateful to her
- for her (unconscious) satire upon monarchy and nobility, and
- therefore nothing which her hand touched or her eye looked upon
- is indifferent to me. I am her pilgrim; the rest of this
- multitude here are Wagner's.
-
- TUESDAY.--I have seen my last two operas; my season is
- ended, and we cross over into Bohemia this afternoon. I was
- supposing that my musical regeneration was accomplished and
- perfected, because I enjoyed both of these operas, singing and
- all, and, moreover, one of them was "Parsifal," but the experts
- have disenchanted me. They say:
-
- "Singing! That wasn't singing; that was the wailing,
- screeching of third-rate obscurities, palmed off on us in the
- interest of economy."
-
- Well, I ought to have recognized the sign--the old, sure
- sign that has never failed me in matters of art. Whenever I
- enjoy anything in art it means that it is mighty poor. The
- private knowledge of this fact has saved me from going to pieces
- with enthusiasm in front of many and many a chromo. However, my
- base instinct does bring me profit sometimes; I was the only man
- out of thirty-two hundred who got his money back on those two operas.
-
-
- WILLIAM DEAN HOWELLS
-
-
-
- Is it true that the sun of a man's mentality touches noon at
- forty and then begins to wane toward setting? Doctor Osler is
- charged with saying so. Maybe he said it, maybe he didn't; I
- don't know which it is. But if he said it, I can point him to a
- case which proves his rule. Proves it by being an exception to
- it. To this place I nominate Mr. Howells.
-
- I read his VENETIAN DAYS about forty years ago. I compare
- it with his paper on Machiavelli in a late number of HARPER, and
- I cannot find that his English has suffered any impairment. For
- forty years his English has been to me a continual delight and
- astonishment. In the sustained exhibition of certain great
- qualities--clearness, compression, verbal exactness, and unforced
- and seemingly unconscious felicity of phrasing--he is, in my
- belief, without his peer in the English-writing world. SUSTAINED.
- I entrench myself behind that protecting word. There are others
- who exhibit those great qualities as greatly as he does, but only
- by intervaled distributions of rich moonlight, with stretches of
- veiled and dimmer landscape between; whereas Howells's moon sails
- cloudless skies all night and all the nights.
-
- In the matter of verbal exactness Mr. Howells has no superior,
- I suppose. He seems to be almost always able to find that
- elusive and shifty grain of gold, the RIGHT WORD. Others have
- to put up with approximations, more or less frequently; he
- has better luck. To me, the others are miners working with the
- gold-pan--of necessity some of the gold washes over and escapes;
- whereas, in my fancy, he is quicksilver raiding down a riffle--no
- grain of the metal stands much chance of eluding him. A powerful
- agent is the right word: it lights the reader's way and makes it
- plain; a close approximation to it will answer, and much
- traveling is done in a well-enough fashion by its help, but we do
- not welcome it and applaud it and rejoice in it as we do when THE
- right one blazes out on us. Whenever we come upon one of those
- intensely right words in a book or a newspaper the resulting
- effect is physical as well as spiritual, and electrically prompt:
- it tingles exquisitely around through the walls of the mouth and
- tastes as tart and crisp and good as the autumn-butter that
- creams the sumac-berry. One has no time to examine the word and
- vote upon its rank and standing, the automatic recognition of its
- supremacy is so immediate. There is a plenty of acceptable
- literature which deals largely in approximations, but it may be
- likened to a fine landscape seen through the rain; the right word
- would dismiss the rain, then you would see it better. It doesn't
- rain when Howells is at work.
-
- And where does he get the easy and effortless flow of his
- speech? and its cadenced and undulating rhythm? and its
- architectural felicities of construction, its graces of
- expression, its pemmican quality of compression, and all that?
- Born to him, no doubt. All in shining good order in the
- beginning, all extraordinary; and all just as shining, just as
- extraordinary today, after forty years of diligent wear and tear
- and use. He passed his fortieth year long and long ago; but I
- think his English of today--his perfect English, I wish to say --
- can throw down the glove before his English of that antique time
- and not be afraid.
-
- I will got back to the paper on Machiavelli now, and ask the
- reader to examine this passage from it which I append. I do not
- mean examine it in a bird's-eye way; I mean search it, study it.
- And, of course, read it aloud. I may be wrong, still it is my
- conviction that one cannot get out of finely wrought literature
- all that is in it by reading it mutely:
-
-
- Mr. Dyer is rather of the opinion, first luminously
- suggested by Macaulay, that Machiavelli was in earnest, but must
- not be judged as a political moralist of our time and race would
- be judged. He thinks that Machiavelli was in earnest, as none
- but an idealist can be, and he is the first to imagine him an
- idealist immersed in realities, who involuntarily transmutes the
- events under his eye into something like the visionary issues of
- reverie. The Machiavelli whom he depicts does not cease to be
- politically a republican and socially a just man because he holds
- up an atrocious despot like Caesar Borgia as a mirror for rulers.
- What Machiavelli beheld round him in Italy was a civic disorder
- in which there was oppression without statecraft, and revolt
- without patriotism. When a miscreant like Borgia appeared upon
- the scene and reduced both tyrants and rebels to an apparent
- quiescence, he might very well seem to such a dreamer the savior
- of society whom a certain sort of dreamers are always looking
- for. Machiavelli was no less honest when he honored the
- diabolical force than Carlyle was when at different times he
- extolled the strong man who destroys liberty in creating order.
- But Carlyle has only just ceased to be mistaken for a reformer,
- while it is still Machiavelli's hard fate to be so trammeled in
- his material that his name stands for whatever is most malevolent
- and perfidious in human nature.
-
-
- You see how easy and flowing it is; how unvexed by ruggednesses,
- clumsinesses, broken meters; how simple and--so far as you or I
- can make out--unstudied; how clear, how limpid, how understandable,
- how unconfused by cross-currents, eddies, undertows; how seemingly
- unadorned, yet is all adornment, like the lily-of-the-valley;
- and how compressed, how compact, without a complacency-signal
- hung out anywhere to call attention to it.
-
- There are twenty-three lines in the quoted passage. After reading
- it several times aloud, one perceives that a good deal of matter
- is crowded into that small space. I think it is a model
- of compactness. When I take its materials apart and work them
- over and put them together in my way, I find I cannot crowd the
- result back into the same hole, there not being room enough. I
- find it a case of a woman packing a man's trunk: he can get the
- things out, but he can't ever get them back again.
-
- The proffered paragraph is a just and fair sample; the rest
- of the article is as compact as it is; there are no waste words.
- The sample is just in other ways: limpid, fluent, graceful, and
- rhythmical as it is, it holds no superiority in these respects
- over the rest of the essay. Also, the choice phrasing noticeable
- in the sample is not lonely; there is a plenty of its kin
- distributed through the other paragraphs. This is claiming much
- when that kin must face the challenge of a phrase like the one in
- the middle sentence: "an idealist immersed in realities who
- involuntarily transmutes the events under his eye into something
- like the visionary issues of reverie." With a hundred words to
- do it with, the literary artisan could catch that airy thought
- and tie it down and reduce it to a concrete condition, visible,
- substantial, understandable and all right, like a cabbage; but
- the artist does it with twenty, and the result is a flower.
-
- The quoted phrase, like a thousand others that have come
- from the same source, has the quality of certain scraps of verse
- which take hold of us and stay in our memories, we do not
- understand why, at first: all the words being the right words,
- none of them is conspicuous, and so they all seem inconspicuous,
- therefore we wonder what it is about them that makes their
- message take hold.
-
-
- The mossy marbles rest
- On the lips that he has prest
- In their bloom,
-
- And the names he loved to hear
- Have been carved for many a year
- On the tomb.
-
-
- It is like a dreamy strain of moving music, with no sharp
- notes in it. The words are all "right" words, and all the same
- size. We do not notice it at first. We get the effect, it goes
- straight home to us, but we do not know why. It is when the
- right words are conspicuous that they thunder:
-
-
- The glory that was Greece and the grandeur that was Rome!
-
-
- When I got back from Howells old to Howells young I find him
- arranging and clustering English words well, but not any better
- than now. He is not more felicitous in concreting abstractions
- now than he was in translating, then, the visions of the eyes of
- flesh into words that reproduced their forms and colors:
-
-
- In Venetian streets they give the fallen snow no rest. It
- is at once shoveled into the canals by hundreds of half-naked
- FACCHINI; and now in St. Mark's Place the music of innumerable
- shovels smote upon my ear; and I saw the shivering legion of
- poverty as it engaged the elements in a struggle for the
- possession of the Piazza. But the snow continued to fall, and
- through the twilight of the descending flakes all this toil and
- encountered looked like that weary kind of effort in dreams, when
- the most determined industry seems only to renew the task. The
- lofty crest of the bell-tower was hidden in the folds of falling
- snow, and I could no longer see the golden angel upon its summit.
- But looked at across the Piazza, the beautiful outline of St.
- Mark's Church was perfectly penciled in the air, and the shifting
- threads of the snowfall were woven into a spell of novel
- enchantment around the structure that always seemed to me too
- exquisite in its fantastic loveliness to be anything but the
- creation of magic. The tender snow had compassionated the
- beautiful edifice for all the wrongs of time, and so hid the
- stains and ugliness of decay that it looked as if just from the
- hand of the builder--or, better said, just from the brain of the
- architect. There was marvelous freshness in the colors of the
- mosaics in the great arches of the facade, and all that gracious
- harmony into which the temple rises, or marble scrolls and leafy
- exuberance airily supporting the statues of the saints, was a
- hundred times etherealized by the purity and whiteness of the
- drifting flakes. The snow lay lightly on the golden gloves that
- tremble like peacocks-crests above the vast domes, and plumed
- them with softest white; it robed the saints in ermine; and it
- danced over all its works, as if exulting in its beauty--beauty
- which filled me with subtle, selfish yearning to keep such
- evanescent loveliness for the little-while-longer of my whole
- life, and with despair to think that even the poor lifeless
- shadow of it could never be fairly reflected in picture or poem.
-
- Through the wavering snowfall, the Saint Theodore upon one
- of the granite pillars of the Piazzetta did not show so grim as
- his wont is, and the winged lion on the other might have been a
- winged lamb, so gentle and mild he looked by the tender light of
- the storm. The towers of the island churches loomed faint and
- far away in the dimness; the sailors in the rigging of the ships
- that lay in the Basin wrought like phantoms among the shrouds;
- the gondolas stole in and out of the opaque distance more
- noiselessly and dreamily than ever; and a silence, almost
- palpable, lay upon the mutest city in the world.
-
-
- The spirit of Venice is there: of a city where Age and
- Decay, fagged with distributing damage and repulsiveness among
- the other cities of the planet in accordance with the policy and
- business of their profession, come for rest and play between
- seasons, and treat themselves to the luxury and relaxation of
- sinking the shop and inventing and squandering charms all about,
- instead of abolishing such as they find, as it their habit when
- not on vacation.
-
- In the working season they do business in Boston sometimes,
- and a character in THE UNDISCOVERED COUNTRY takes accurate note
- of pathetic effects wrought by them upon the aspects of a street
- of once dignified and elegant homes whose occupants have moved
- away and left them a prey to neglect and gradual ruin and
- progressive degradation; a descent which reaches bottom at last,
- when the street becomes a roost for humble professionals of the
- faith-cure and fortune-telling sort.
-
-
- What a queer, melancholy house, what a queer, melancholy
- street! I don't think I was ever in a street before when quite
- so many professional ladies, with English surnames, preferred
- Madam to Mrs. on their door-plates. And the poor old place has
- such a desperately conscious air of going to the deuce. Every
- house seems to wince as you go by, and button itself up to the
- chin for fear you should find out it had no shirt on--so to
- speak. I don't know what's the reason, but these material tokens
- of a social decay afflict me terribly; a tipsy woman isn't
- dreadfuler than a haggard old house, that's once been a home, in
- a street like this.
-
-
- Mr. Howells's pictures are not mere stiff, hard, accurate
- photographs; they are photographs with feeling in them, and
- sentiment, photographs taken in a dream, one might say.
-
- As concerns his humor, I will not try to say anything, yet I
- would try, if I had the words that might approximately reach up
- to its high place. I do not think any one else can play with
- humorous fancies so gracefully and delicately and deliciously as
- he does, nor has so many to play with, nor can come so near
- making them look as if they were doing the playing themselves and
- he was not aware that they were at it. For they are unobtrusive,
- and quiet in their ways, and well conducted. His is a humor
- which flows softly all around about and over and through the mesh
- of the page, pervasive, refreshing, health-giving, and makes no
- more show and no more noise than does the circulation of the
- blood.
-
- There is another thing which is contentingly noticeable in
- Mr. Howells's books. That is his "stage directions"--those
- artifices which authors employ to throw a kind of human
- naturalness around a scene and a conversation, and help the
- reader to see the one and get at meanings in the other which
- might not be perceived if entrusted unexplained to the bare words
- of the talk. Some authors overdo the stage directions, they
- elaborate them quite beyond necessity; they spend so much time
- and take up so much room in telling us how a person said a thing
- and how he looked and acted when he said it that we get tired and
- vexed and wish he hadn't said it all. Other authors' directions
- are brief enough, but it is seldom that the brevity contains
- either wit or information. Writers of this school go in rags, in
- the matter of state directions; the majority of them having
- nothing in stock but a cigar, a laugh, a blush, and a bursting
- into tears. In their poverty they work these sorry things to the
- bone. They say:
-
- ". . . replied Alfred, flipping the ash from his cigar."
- (This explains nothing; it only wastes space.)
-
- ". . . responded Richard, with a laugh." (There was nothing
- to laugh about; there never is. The writer puts it in from
- habit--automatically; he is paying no attention to his work; or
- he would see that there is nothing to laugh at; often, when a
- remark is unusually and poignantly flat and silly, he tries to
- deceive the reader by enlarging the stage direction and making
- Richard break into "frenzies of uncontrollable laughter." This
- makes the reader sad.)
-
- ". . . murmured Gladys, blushing." (This poor old shop-worn
- blush is a tiresome thing. We get so we would rather Gladys
- would fall out of the book and break her neck than do it again.
- She is always doing it, and usually irrelevantly. Whenever it is
- her turn to murmur she hangs out her blush; it is the only thing
- she's got. In a little while we hate her, just as we do
- Richard.)
-
- ". . . repeated Evelyn, bursting into tears." (This kind
- keep a book damp all the time. They can't say a thing without
- crying. They cry so much about nothing that by and by when they
- have something to cry ABOUT they have gone dry; they sob, and
- fetch nothing; we are not moved. We are only glad.)
-
- They gavel me, these stale and overworked stage directions,
- these carbon films that got burnt out long ago and cannot now
- carry any faintest thread of light. It would be well if they
- could be relieved from duty and flung out in the literary back
- yard to rot and disappear along with the discarded and forgotten
- "steeds" and "halidomes" and similar stage-properties once so
- dear to our grandfathers. But I am friendly to Mr. Howells's
- stage directions; more friendly to them than to any one else's, I
- think. They are done with a competent and discriminating art,
- and are faithful to the requirements of a state direction's
- proper and lawful office, which is to inform. Sometimes they
- convey a scene and its conditions so well that I believe I could
- see the scene and get the spirit and meaning of the accompanying
- dialogue if some one would read merely the stage directions to me
- and leave out the talk. For instance, a scene like this, from
- THE UNDISCOVERED COUNTRY:
-
- ". . . and she laid her arms with a beseeching gesture on
- her father's shoulder."
-
- ". . . she answered, following his gesture with a glance."
-
- ". . . she said, laughing nervously."
-
- ". . . she asked, turning swiftly upon him that strange, searching glance."
-
- ". . . she answered, vaguely."
-
- ". . . she reluctantly admitted."
-
- ". . . but her voice died wearily away, and she stood looking
- into his face with puzzled entreaty."
-
- Mr. Howells does not repeat his forms, and does not need to;
- he can invent fresh ones without limit. It is mainly the
- repetition over and over again, by the third-rates, of worn and
- commonplace and juiceless forms that makes their novels such a
- weariness and vexation to us, I think. We do not mind one or two
- deliveries of their wares, but as we turn the pages over and keep
- on meeting them we presently get tired of them and wish they
- would do other things for a change.
-
- ". . . replied Alfred, flipping the ash from his cigar."
-
- ". . . responded Richard, with a laugh."
-
- ". . . murmured Gladys, blushing."
-
- ". . . repeated Evelyn, bursting into tears."
-
- ". . . replied the Earl, flipping the ash from his cigar."
-
- ". . . responded the undertaker, with a laugh."
-
- ". . . murmured the chambermaid, blushing."
-
- ". . . repeated the burglar, bursting into tears."
-
- ". . . replied the conductor, flipping the ash from his cigar."
-
- ". . . responded Arkwright, with a laugh."
-
- ". . . murmured the chief of police, blushing."
-
- ". . . repeated the house-cat, bursting into tears."
-
- And so on and so on; till at last it ceases to excite. I
- always notice stage directions, because they fret me and keep me
- trying to get out of their way, just as the automobiles do. At
- first; then by and by they become monotonous and I get run over.
-
- Mr. Howells has done much work, and the spirit of it is as
- beautiful as the make of it. I have held him in admiration and
- affection so many years that I know by the number of those years
- that he is old now; but his heart isn't, nor his pen; and years
- do not count. Let him have plenty of them; there is profit in
- them for us.
-
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
- ENGLISH AS SHE IS TAUGHT
-
- In the appendix to Croker's Boswell's Johnson one finds this anecdote:
-
-
- CATO'S SOLILOQUY.--One day Mrs. Gastrel set a little girl to
- repeat to him [Dr. Samuel Johnson] Cato's Soliloquy, which she
- went through very correctly. The Doctor, after a pause, asked
- the child:
-
- "What was to bring Cato to an end?"
-
- She said it was a knife.
-
- "No, my dear, it was not so."
-
- "My aunt Polly said it was a knife."
-
- "Why, Aunt Polly's knife MAY DO, but it was a DAGGER, my dear."
-
- He then asked her the meaning of "bane and antidote," which
- she was unable to give. Mrs. Gastrel said:
-
- "You cannot expect so young a child to know the meaning of such words."
-
- He then said:
-
- "My dear, how many pence are there in SIXPENCE?"
-
- "I cannot tell, sir," was the half-terrified reply.
-
- On this, addressing himself to Mrs. Gastrel, he said:
-
- "Now, my dear lady, can anything be more ridiculous than to
- teach a child Cato's Soliloquy, who does not know how many pence
- there are in a sixpence?"
-
-
- In a lecture before the Royal Geographical Society Professor
- Ravenstein quoted the following list of frantic questions, and
- said that they had been asked in an examination:
-
-
- Mention all names of places in the world derived from Julius
- Caesar or Augustus Caesar.
-
- Where are the following rivers: Pisuerga, Sakaria,
- Guadalete, Jalon, Mulde?
-
- All you know of the following: Machacha, Pilmo, Schebulos,
- Crivoscia, Basces, Mancikert, Taxhem, Citeaux, Meloria, Zutphen.
-
- The highest peaks of the Karakorum range.
-
- The number of universities in Prussia.
-
- Why are the tops of mountains continually covered with snow [sic]?
-
- Name the length and breadth of the streams of lava which
- issued from the Skaptar Jokul in the eruption of 1783.
-
-
- That list would oversize nearly anybody's geographical
- knowledge. Isn't it reasonably possible that in our schools many
- of the questions in all studies are several miles ahead of where
- the pupil is?--that he is set to struggle with things that are
- ludicrously beyond his present reach, hopelessly beyond his
- present strength? This remark in passing, and by way of text;
- now I come to what I was going to say.
-
- I have just now fallen upon a darling literary curiosity.
- It is a little book, a manuscript compilation, and the compiler
- sent it to me with the request that I say whether I think it
- ought to be published or not. I said, Yes; but as I slowly grow
- wise I briskly grow cautious; and so, now that the publication is
- imminent, it has seemed to me that I should feel more comfortable
- if I could divide up this responsibility with the public by
- adding them to the court. Therefore I will print some extracts
- from the book, in the hope that they may make converts to my
- judgment that the volume has merit which entitles it to publication.
-
- As to its character. Every one has sampled "English as She
- is Spoke" and "English as She is Wrote"; this little volume
- furnishes us an instructive array of examples of "English as She
- is Taught"--in the public schools of--well, this country. The
- collection is made by a teacher in those schools, and all the
- examples in it are genuine; none of them have been tampered with,
- or doctored in any way. From time to time, during several years,
- whenever a pupil has delivered himself of anything peculiarly
- quaint or toothsome in the course of his recitations, this
- teacher and her associates have privately set that thing down in
- a memorandum-book; strictly following the original, as to
- grammar, construction, spelling, and all; and the result is this
- literary curiosity.
-
- The contents of the book consist mainly of answers given by
- the boys and girls to questions, said answers being given
- sometimes verbally, sometimes in writing. The subjects touched
- upon are fifteen in number: I. Etymology; II. Grammar; III.
- Mathematics; IV. Geography; V. "Original"; VI. Analysis; VII.
- History; VIII. "Intellectual"; IX. Philosophy; X. Physiology; XI.
- Astronomy; XII. Politics; XIII. Music; XIV. Oratory; XV.
- Metaphysics.
-
- You perceive that the poor little young idea has taken a
- shot at a good many kinds of game in the course of the book. Now
- as to results. Here are some quaint definitions of words. It
- will be noticed that in all of these instances the sound of the
- word, or the look of it on paper, has misled the child:
-
-
- ABORIGINES, a system of mountains.
-
- ALIAS, a good man in the Bible.
-
- AMENABLE, anything that is mean.
-
- AMMONIA, the food of the gods.
-
- ASSIDUITY, state of being an acid.
-
- AURIFEROUS, pertaining to an orifice.
-
- CAPILLARY, a little caterpillar.
-
- CORNIFEROUS, rocks in which fossil corn is found.
-
- EMOLUMENT, a headstone to a grave.
-
- EQUESTRIAN, one who asks questions.
-
- EUCHARIST, one who plays euchre.
-
- FRANCHISE, anything belonging to the French.
-
- IDOLATER, a very idle person.
-
- IPECAC, a man who likes a good dinner.
-
- IRRIGATE, to make fun of.
-
- MENDACIOUS, what can be mended.
-
- MERCENARY, one who feels for another.
-
- PARASITE, a kind of umbrella.
-
- PARASITE, the murder of an infant.
-
- PUBLICAN, a man who does his prayers in public.
-
- TENACIOUS, ten acres of land.
-
-
- Here is one where the phrase "publicans and sinners" has got
- mixed up in the child's mind with politics, and the result is a
- definition which takes one in a sudden and unexpected way:
-
-
- REPUBLICAN, a sinner mentioned in the Bible.
-
-
- Also in Democratic newspapers now and then. Here are two where
- the mistake has resulted from sound assisted by remote fact:
-
-
- PLAGIARIST, a writer of plays.
-
- DEMAGOGUE, a vessel containing beer and other liquids.
-
-
- I cannot quite make out what it was that misled the pupil in
- the following instances; it would not seem to have been the sound
- of the word, nor the look of it in print:
-
-
- ASPHYXIA, a grumbling, fussy temper.
-
- QUARTERNIONS, a bird with a flat beak and no bill, living in
- New Zealand.
-
- QUARTERNIONS, the name given to a style of art practiced by
- the Phoenicians.
-
- QUARTERNIONS, a religious convention held every hundred
- years.
-
- SIBILANT, the state of being idiotic.
-
- CROSIER, a staff carried by the Deity.
-
-
- In the following sentences the pupil's ear has been
- deceiving him again:
-
-
- The marriage was illegible.
-
- He was totally dismasted with the whole performance.
-
- He enjoys riding on a philosopher.
-
- She was very quick at repertoire.
-
- He prayed for the waters to subsidize.
-
- The leopard is watching his sheep.
-
- They had a strawberry vestibule.
-
-
- Here is one which--well, now, how often we do slam right
- into the truth without ever suspecting it:
-
-
- The men employed by the Gas Company go around and
- speculate the meter.
-
-
- Indeed they do, dear; and when you grow up, many and many's
- the time you will notice it in the gas bill. In the following
- sentences the little people have some information to convey,
- every time; but in my case they fail to connect: the light
- always went out on the keystone word:
-
-
- The coercion of some things is remarkable; as bread and molasses.
-
- Her hat is contiguous because she wears it on one side.
-
- He preached to an egregious congregation.
-
- The captain eliminated a bullet through the man's heart.
-
- You should take caution and be precarious.
-
- The supercilious girl acted with vicissitude when the
- perennial time came.
-
-
- The last is a curiously plausible sentence; one seems to
- know what it means, and yet he knows all the time that he
- doesn't. Here is an odd (but entirely proper) use of a word, and
- a most sudden descent from a lofty philosophical altitude to a
- very practical and homely illustration:
-
-
- We should endeavor to avoid extremes--like those of wasps and bees.
-
-
- And here--with "zoological" and "geological" in his mind,
- but not ready to his tongue--the small scholar has innocently
- gone and let out a couple of secrets which ought never to have
- been divulged in any circumstances:
-
-
- There are a good many donkeys in theological gardens.
-
- Some of the best fossils are found in theological gardens.
-
-
- Under the head of "Grammar" the little scholars furnish the
- following information:
-
-
- Gender is the distinguishing nouns without regard to sex.
-
- A verb is something to eat.
-
- Adverbs should always be used as adjectives and adjectives as adverbs.
-
- Every sentence and name of God must begin with a caterpillar.
-
-
- "Caterpillar" is well enough, but capital letter would have
- been stricter. The following is a brave attempt at a solution,
- but it failed to liquify:
-
-
- When they are going to say some prose or poetry before they
- say the poetry or prose they must put a semicolon just after the
- introduction of the prose or poetry.
-
-
- The chapter on "Mathematics" is full of fruit. From it I
- take a few samples--mainly in an unripe state:
-
-
- A straight line is any distance between two places.
-
- Parallel lines are lines that can never meet until they run together.
-
- A circle is a round straight line with a hole in the middle.
-
- Things which are equal to each other are equal to anything else.
-
- To find the number of square feet in a room you multiply the
- room by the number of the feet. The product is the result.
-
-
- Right you are. In the matter of geography this little book
- is unspeakably rich. The questions do not appear to have applied
- the microscope to the subject, as did those quoted by Professor
- Ravenstein; still, they proved plenty difficult enough without
- that. These pupils did not hunt with a microscope, they hunted
- with a shot-gun; this is shown by the crippled condition of the
- game they brought in:
-
-
- America is divided into the Passiffic slope and the Mississippi valey.
-
- North America is separated by Spain.
-
- America consists from north to south about five hundred miles.
-
- The United States is quite a small country compared with
- some other countrys, but it about as industrious.
-
- The capital of the United States is Long Island.
-
- The five seaports of the U.S. are Newfunlan and Sanfrancisco.
-
- The principal products of the U.S. is earthquakes and volcanoes.
-
- The Alaginnies are mountains in Philadelphia.
-
- The Rocky Mountains are on the western side of Philadelphia.
-
- Cape Hateras is a vast body of water surrounded by land and
- flowing into the Gulf of Mexico.
-
- Mason and Dixon's line is the Equator.
-
- One of the leading industries of the United States is
- mollasses, book-covers, numbers, gas, teaching, lumber,
- manufacturers, paper-making, publishers, coal.
-
- In Austria the principal occupation is gathering Austrich feathers.
-
- Gibraltar is an island built on a rock.
-
- Russia is very cold and tyrannical.
-
- Sicily is one of the Sandwich Islands.
-
- Hindoostan flows through the Ganges and empties into the
- Mediterranean Sea.
-
- Ireland is called the Emigrant Isle because it is so
- beautiful and green.
-
- The width of the different zones Europe lies in depend upon
- the surrounding country.
-
- The imports of a country are the things that are paid for,
- the exports are the things that are not.
-
- Climate lasts all the time and weather only a few days.
-
- The two most famous volcanoes of Europe are Sodom and Gomorrah.
-
-
- The chapter headed "Analysis" shows us that the pupils in
- our public schools are not merely loaded up with those showy
- facts about geography, mathematics, and so on, and left in that
- incomplete state; no, there's machinery for clarifying and
- expanding their minds. They are required to take poems and
- analyze them, dig out their common sense, reduce them to
- statistics, and reproduce them in a luminous prose translation
- which shall tell you at a glance what the poet was trying to get
- at. One sample will do. Here is a stanza from "The Lady of the
- Lake," followed by the pupil's impressive explanation of it:
-
-
- Alone, but with unbated zeal,
- The horseman plied with scourge and steel;
- For jaded now and spent with toil,
- Embossed with foam and dark with soil,
- While every gasp with sobs he drew,
- The laboring stag strained full in view.
-
-
- The man who rode on the horse performed the whip and an
- instrument made of steel alone with strong ardor not diminishing,
- for, being tired from the time passed with hard labor overworked
- with anger and ignorant with weariness, while every breath for
- labor he drew with cries full or sorrow, the young deer made
- imperfect who worked hard filtered in sight.
-
-
- I see, now, that I never understood that poem before. I
- have had glimpses of its meaning, it moments when I was not as
- ignorant with weariness as usual, but this is the first time the
- whole spacious idea of it ever filtered in sight. If I were a
- public-school pupil I would put those other studies aside and
- stick to analysis; for, after all, it is the thing to spread your
- mind.
-
- We come now to historical matters, historical remains, one
- might say. As one turns the pages he is impressed with the depth
- to which one date has been driven into the American child's head
- --1492. The date is there, and it is there to stay. And it is
- always at hand, always deliverable at a moment's notice. But the
- Fact that belongs with it? That is quite another matter. Only
- the date itself is familiar and sure: its vast Fact has failed
- of lodgment. It would appear that whenever you ask a public-
- school pupil when a thing--anything, no matter what--happened,
- and he is in doubt, he always rips out his 1492. He applies it
- to everything, from the landing of the ark to the introduction of
- the horse-car. Well, after all, it is our first date, and so it
- is right enough to honor it, and pay the public schools to teach
- our children to honor it:
-
-
- George Washington was born in 1492.
-
- Washington wrote the Declaration of Independence in 1492.
-
- St. Bartholemew was massacred in 1492.
-
- The Brittains were the Saxons who entered England in 1492
- under Julius Caesar.
-
- The earth is 1492 miles in circumference.
-
-
-
- To proceed with "History"
-
-
- Christopher Columbus was called the Father of his Country.
-
- Queen Isabella of Spain sold her watch and chain and other
- millinery so that Columbus could discover America.
-
- The Indian wars were very desecrating to the country.
-
- The Indians pursued their warfare by hiding in the bushes
- and then scalping them.
-
- Captain John Smith has been styled the father of his country.
- His life was saved by his daughter Pochahantas.
-
- The Puritans found an insane asylum in the wilds of America.
-
- The Stamp Act was to make everybody stamp all materials so
- they should be null and void.
-
- Washington died in Spain almost broken-hearted. His remains
- were taken to the cathedral in Havana.
-
- Gorilla warfare was where men rode on gorillas.
-
- John Brown was a very good insane man who tried to get
- fugitives slaves into Virginia. He captured all the inhabitants,
- but was finally conquered and condemned to his death. The
- confederasy was formed by the fugitive slaves.
-
- Alfred the Great reigned 872 years. He was distinguished
- for letting some buckwheat cakes burn, and the lady scolded him.
-
- Henry Eight was famous for being a great widower haveing
- lost several wives.
-
- Lady Jane Grey studied Greek and Latin and was beheaded
- after a few days.
-
- John Bright is noted for an incurable disease.
-
- Lord James Gordon Bennet instigated the Gordon Riots.
-
- The Middle Ages come in between antiquity and posterity.
-
- Luther introduced Christianity into England a good many
- thousand years ago. His birthday was November 1883. He was once
- a Pope. He lived at the time of the Rebellion of Worms.
-
- Julius Caesar is noted for his famous telegram dispatch I
- came I saw I conquered.
-
- Julius Caesar was really a very great man. He was a very
- great soldier and wrote a book for beginners in the Latin.
-
- Cleopatra was caused by the death of an asp which she
- dissolved in a wine cup.
-
- The only form of government in Greece was a limited monkey.
-
- The Persian war lasted about 500 years.
-
- Greece had only 7 wise men.
-
- Socrates . . . destroyed some statues and had to drink Shamrock.
-
-
- Here is a fact correctly stated; and yet it is phrased with
- such ingenious infelicity that it can be depended upon to convey
- misinformation every time it is uncarefully unread:
-
-
- By the Salic law no woman or descendant of a woman could
- occupy the throne.
-
-
- To show how far a child can travel in history with judicious
- and diligent boosting in the public school, we select the
- following mosaic:
-
-
- Abraham Lincoln was born in Wales in 1599.
-
-
- In the chapter headed "Intellectual" I find a great number of most
- interesting statements. A sample or two may be found not amiss:
-
- Bracebridge Hall was written by Henry Irving.
-
- Show Bound was written by Peter Cooper.
-
- The House of the Seven Gables was written by Lord Bryant.
-
- Edgar A. Poe was a very curdling writer.
-
- Cotton Mather was a writer who invented the cotten gin and
- wrote histories.
-
- Beowulf wrote the Scriptures.
-
- Ben Johnson survived Shakspeare in some respects.
-
- In the Canterbury Tale it gives account of King Alfred on
- his way to the shrine of Thomas Bucket.
-
- Chaucer was the father of English pottery.
-
- Chaucer was a bland verse writer of the third century.
-
- Chaucer was succeeded by H. Wads. Longfellow an American
- Writer. His writings were chiefly prose and nearly one hundred
- years elapsed.
-
- Shakspere translated the Scriptures and it was called St.
- James because he did it.
-
-
- In the middle of the chapter I find many pages of
- information concerning Shakespeare's plays, Milton's works, and
- those of Bacon, Addison, Samuel Johnson, Fielding, Richardson,
- Sterne, Smollett, De Foe, Locke, Pope, Swift, Goldsmith, Burns,
- Cowper, Wordsworth, Gibbon, Byron, Coleridge, Hood, Scott,
- Macaulay, George Eliot, Dickens, Bulwer, Thackeray, Browning,
- Mrs. Browning, Tennyson, and Disraeli--a fact which shows that
- into the restricted stomach of the public-school pupil is
- shoveled every year the blood, bone, and viscera of a gigantic
- literature, and the same is there digested and disposed of in a
- most successful and characteristic and gratifying public-school
- way. I have space for but a trifling few of the results:
-
-
- Lord Byron was the son of an heiress and a drunken man.
-
- Wm. Wordsworth wrote the Barefoot Boy and Imitations on Immortality.
-
- Gibbon wrote a history of his travels in Italy. This was original.
-
- George Eliot left a wife and children who mourned greatly for his genius.
-
- George Eliot Miss Mary Evans Mrs. Cross Mrs. Lewis was the greatest
- female poet unless George Sands is made an exception of.
-
- Bulwell is considered a good writer.
-
- Sir Walter Scott Charles Bronte Alfred the Great and Johnson
- were the first great novelists.
-
- Thomas Babington Makorlay graduated at Harvard and then studied law,
- he was raised to the peerage as baron in 1557 and died in 1776.
-
-
- Here are two or three miscellaneous facts that may be of value,
- if taken in moderation:
-
-
- Homer's writings are Homer's Essays Virgil the Aenid and
- Paradise lost some people say that these poems were not written
- by Homer but by another man of the same name.
-
- A sort of sadness kind of shone in Bryant's poems.
-
- Holmes is a very profligate and amusing writer.
-
-
- When the public-school pupil wrestles with the political
- features of the Great Republic, they throw him sometimes:
-
-
- A bill becomes a law when the President vetoes it.
-
- The three departments of the government is the President rules
- the world, the governor rules the State, the mayor rules the city.
-
- The first conscientious Congress met in Philadelphia.
-
- The Constitution of the United States was established to
- ensure domestic hostility.
-
-
- Truth crushed to earth will rise again. As follows:
-
-
- The Constitution of the United States is that part of the
- book at the end which nobody reads.
-
-
- And here she rises once more and untimely. There should be
- a limit to public-school instruction; it cannot be wise or well
- to let the young find out everything:
-
-
- Congress is divided into civilized half civilized and savage.
-
-
- Here are some results of study in music and oratory:
-
-
- An interval in music is the distance on the keyboard from
- one piano to the next.
-
- A rest means you are not to sing it.
-
- Emphasis is putting more distress on one word than another.
-
-
- The chapter on "Physiology" contains much that ought not to
- be lost to science:
-
- Physillogigy is to study about your bones stummick and vertebry.
-
- Occupations which are injurious to health are cabolic acid
- gas which is impure blood.
-
- We have an upper and lower skin. The lower skin moves all
- the time and the upper skin moves when we do.
-
- The body is mostly composed of water and about one half is
- avaricious tissue.
-
- The stomach is a small pear-shaped bone situated in the body.
-
- The gastric juice keeps the bones from creaking.
-
- The Chyle flows up the middle of the backbone and reaches
- the heart where it meets the oxygen and is purified.
-
- The salivary glands are used to salivate the body.
-
- In the stomach starch is changed to cane sugar and cane
- sugar to sugar cane.
-
- The olfactory nerve enters the cavity of the orbit and is
- developed into the special sense of hearing.
-
- The growth of a tooth begins in the back of the mouth and
- extends to the stomach.
-
- If we were on a railroad track and a train was coming the train
- would deafen our ears so that we couldn't see to get off the track.
-
-
- If, up to this point, none of my quotations have added
- flavor to the Johnsonian anecdote at the head of this article,
- let us make another attempt:
-
-
- The theory that intuitive truths are discovered by the light
- of nature originated from St. John's interpretation of a passage
- in the Gospel of Plato.
-
- The weight of the earth is found by comparing a mass of
- known lead with that of a mass of unknown lead.
-
- To find the weight of the earth take the length of a degree
- on a meridian and multiply by 6 1/2 pounds.
-
- The spheres are to each other as the squares of their
- homologous sides.
-
- A body will go just as far in the first second as the body
- will go plus the force of gravity and that's equal to twice what
- the body will go.
-
- Specific gravity is the weight to be compared weight of an
- equal volume of or that is the weight of a body compared with the
- weight of an equal volume.
-
- The law of fluid pressure divide the different forms of
- organized bodies by the form of attraction and the number
- increased will be the form.
-
- Inertia is that property of bodies by virtue of which it
- cannot change its own condition of rest or motion. In other
- words it is the negative quality of passiveness either in
- recoverable latency or insipient latescence.
-
-
- If a laugh is fair here, not the struggling child, nor the
- unintelligent teacher--or rather the unintelligent Boards,
- Committees, and Trustees--are the proper target for it. All
- through this little book one detects the signs of a certain
- probable fact--that a large part of the pupil's "instruction"
- consists in cramming him with obscure and wordy "rules" which he
- does not understand and has no time to understand. It would be
- as useful to cram him with brickbats; they would at least stay.
- In a town in the interior of New York, a few years ago, a
- gentleman set forth a mathematical problem and proposed to give a
- prize to every public-school pupil who should furnish the correct
- solution of it. Twenty-two of the brightest boys in the public
- schools entered the contest. The problem was not a very
- difficult one for pupils of their mathematical rank and standing,
- yet they all failed--by a hair--through one trifling mistake or
- another. Some searching questions were asked, when it turned out
- that these lads were as glib as parrots with the "rules," but
- could not reason out a single rule or explain the principle
- underlying it. Their memories had been stocked, but not their
- understandings. It was a case of brickbat culture, pure and
- simple.
-
- There are several curious "compositions" in the little book,
- and we must make room for one. It is full of naivete, brutal
- truth, and unembarrassed directness, and is the funniest
- (genuine) boy's composition I think I have ever seen:
-
-
-
- ON GIRLS
-
- Girls are very stuck up and dignefied in their maner and be
- have your. They think more of dress than anything and like to
- play with dowls and rags. They cry if they see a cow in a far
- distance and are afraid of guns. They stay at home all the time
- and go to church on Sunday. They are al-ways sick. They are al-
- ways funy and making fun of boy's hands and they say how dirty.
- They cant play marbels. I pity them poor things. They make fun
- of boys and then turn round and love them. I dont beleave they
- ever kiled a cat or anything. They look out every nite and say
- oh ant the moon lovely. Thir is one thing I have not told and
- that is they al-ways now their lessons bettern boys.
-
-
- From Mr. Edward Channing's recent article in SCIENCE:
-
-
- The marked difference between the books now being produced
- by French, English, and American travelers, on the one hand, and
- German explorers, on the other, is too great to escape attention.
- That difference is due entirely to the fact that in school and
- university the German is taught, in the first place to see, and
- in the second place to understand what he does see.
-
- ------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
- A SIMPLIFIED ALPHABET
-
-
- (This article, written during the autumn of 1899, was about
- the last writing done by Mark Twain on any impersonal subject.)
-
-
- I have had a kindly feeling, a friendly feeling, a cousinly
- feeling toward Simplified Spelling, from the beginning of the
- movement three years ago, but nothing more inflamed than that.
- It seemed to me to merely propose to substitute one inadequacy
- for another; a sort of patching and plugging poor old dental
- relics with cement and gold and porcelain paste; what was really
- needed was a new set of teeth. That is to say, a new ALPHABET.
-
- The heart of our trouble is with our foolish alphabet. It
- doesn't know how to spell, and can't be taught. In this it is
- like all other alphabets except one--the phonographic. This is
- the only competent alphabet in the world. It can spell and
- correctly pronounce any word in our language.
-
- That admirable alphabet, that brilliant alphabet, that
- inspired alphabet, can be learned in an hour or two. In a week
- the student can learn to write it with some little facility, and
- to read it with considerable ease. I know, for I saw it tried in
- a public school in Nevada forty-five years ago, and was so
- impressed by the incident that it has remained in my memory ever
- since.
-
- I wish we could adopt it in place of our present written
- (and printed) character. I mean SIMPLY the alphabet; simply the
- consonants and the vowels--I don't mean any REDUCTIONS or
- abbreviations of them, such as the shorthand writer uses in order
- to get compression and speed. No, I would SPELL EVERY WORD OUT.
-
- I will insert the alphabet here as I find it in Burnz's
- PHONIC SHORTHAND. [Figure 1] It is arranged on the basis of
- Isaac Pitman's PHONOGRAPHY. Isaac Pitman was the originator and
- father of scientific phonography. It is used throughout the
- globe. It was a memorable invention. He made it public seventy-
- three years ago. The firm of Isaac Pitman & Sons, New York,
- still exists, and they continue the master's work.
-
- What should we gain?
-
- First of all, we could spell DEFINITELY--and correctly--any
- word you please, just by the SOUND of it. We can't do that with
- our present alphabet. For instance, take a simple, every-day
- word PHTHISIS. If we tried to spell it by the sound of it, we
- should make it TYSIS, and be laughed at by every educated person.
-
- Secondly, we should gain in REDUCTION OF LABOR in writing.
-
- Simplified Spelling makes valuable reductions in the case of
- several hundred words, but the new spelling must be LEARNED. You
- can't spell them by the sound; you must get them out of the book.
-
- But even if we knew the simplified form for every word in
- the language, the phonographic alphabet would still beat the
- Simplified Speller "hands down" in the important matter of
- economy of labor. I will illustrate:
-
- PRESENT FORM: through, laugh, highland.
-
- SIMPLIFIED FORM: thru, laff, hyland.
-
- PHONOGRAPHIC FORM: [Figure 2]
-
- To write the word "through," the pen has to make twenty-one strokes.
-
- To write the word "thru," then pen has to make twelve strokes--
- a good saving.
-
- To write that same word with the phonographic alphabet, the
- pen has to make only THREE strokes.
-
- To write the word "laugh," the pen has to make FOURTEEN
- strokes.
-
- To write "laff," the pen has to make the SAME NUMBER of
- strokes--no labor is saved to the penman.
-
- To write the same word with the phonographic alphabet, the
- pen has to make only THREE strokes.
-
- To write the word "highland," the pen has to make twenty-two
- strokes.
-
- To write "hyland," the pen has to make eighteen strokes.
-
- To write that word with the phonographic alphabet, the pen
- has to make only FIVE strokes. [Figure 3]
-
- To write the words "phonographic alphabet," the pen has to
- make fifty-three strokes.
-
- To write "fonografic alfabet," the pen has to make fifty strokes.
- To the penman, the saving in labor is insignificant.
-
- To write that word (with vowels) with the phonographic
- alphabet, the pen has to make only SEVENTEEN strokes.
-
- Without the vowels, only THIRTEEN strokes. [Figure 4] The
- vowels are hardly necessary, this time.
-
- We make five pen-strokes in writing an m. Thus: [Figure 5]
- a stroke down; a stroke up; a second stroke down; a second stroke
- up; a final stroke down. Total, five. The phonographic alphabet
- accomplishes the m with a single stroke--a curve, like a
- parenthesis that has come home drunk and has fallen face down
- right at the front door where everybody that goes along will see
- him and say, Alas!
-
- When our written m is not the end of a word, but is
- otherwise located, it has to be connected with the next letter,
- and that requires another pen-stroke, making six in all, before
- you get rid of that m. But never mind about the connecting
- strokes--let them go. Without counting them, the twenty-six
- letters of our alphabet consumed about eighty pen-strokes for
- their construction--about three pen-strokes per letter.
-
- It is THREE TIMES THE NUMBER required by the phonographic
- alphabet. It requires but ONE stroke for each letter.
-
- My writing-gait is--well, I don't know what it is, but I
- will time myself and see. Result: it is twenty-four words per
- minute. I don't mean composing; I mean COPYING. There isn't any
- definite composing-gait.
-
- Very well, my copying-gait is 1,440 words per hour--say
- 1,500. If I could use the phonographic character with facility I
- could do the 1,500 in twenty minutes. I could do nine hours'
- copying in three hours; I could do three years' copying in one
- year. Also, if I had a typewriting machine with the phonographic
- alphabet on it--oh, the miracles I could do!
-
- I am not pretending to write that character well. I have
- never had a lesson, and I am copying the letters from the book.
- But I can accomplish my desire, at any rate, which is, to make
- the reader get a good and clear idea of the advantage it would be
- to us if we could discard our present alphabet and put this
- better one in its place--using it in books, newspapers, with the
- typewriter, and with the pen.
-
- [Figure 6] --MAN DOG HORSE. I think it is graceful and
- would look comely in print. And consider--once more, I beg--what
- a labor-saver it is! Ten pen-strokes with the one system to
- convey those three words above, and thirty-three by the other!
- [Figure 6] I mean, in SOME ways, not in all. I suppose I might
- go so far as to say in most ways, and be within the facts, but
- never mind; let it go at SOME. One of the ways in which it
- exercises this birthright is--as I think--continuing to use our
- laughable alphabet these seventy-three years while there was a
- rational one at hand, to be had for the taking.
-
- It has taken five hundred years to simplify some of
- Chaucer's rotten spelling--if I may be allowed to use to frank a
- term as that--and it will take five hundred years more to get our
- exasperating new Simplified Corruptions accepted and running
- smoothly. And we sha'n't be any better off then than we are now;
- for in that day we shall still have the privilege the Simplifiers
- are exercising now: ANYBODY can change the spelling that wants
- to.
-
- BUT YOU CAN'T CHANGE THE PHONOGRAPHIC SPELLING; THERE ISN'T
- ANY WAY. It will always follow the SOUND. If you want to change
- the spelling, you have to change the sound first.
-
- Mind, I myself am a Simplified Speller; I belong to that
- unhappy guild that is patiently and hopefully trying to reform
- our drunken old alphabet by reducing his whiskey. Well, it will
- improve him. When they get through and have reformed him all
- they can by their system he will be only HALF drunk. Above that
- condition their system can never lift him. There is no
- competent, and lasting, and real reform for him but to take away
- his whiskey entirely, and fill up his jug with Pitman's wholesome
- and undiseased alphabet.
-
- One great drawback to Simplified Spelling is, that in print
- a simplified word looks so like the very nation! and when you
- bunch a whole squadron of the Simplified together the spectacle
- is very nearly unendurable.
-
- The da ma ov koars kum when the publik ma be expektd to get
- rekonsyled to the bezair asspekt of the Simplified Kombynashuns,
- but--if I may be allowed the expression--is it worth the wasted
- time? [Figure 7]
-
- To see our letters put together in ways to which we are not accustomed
- offends the eye, and also takes the EXPRESSION out of the words.
-
- La on, Makduf, and damd be he hoo furst krys hold, enuf!
-
- It doesn't thrill you as it used to do. The simplifications
- have sucked the thrill all out of it.
-
- But a written character with which we are NOT ACQUAINTED
- does not offend us--Greek, Hebrew, Russian, Arabic, and the
- others--they have an interesting look, and we see beauty in them,
- too. And this is true of hieroglyphics, as well. There is
- something pleasant and engaging about the mathematical signs when
- we do not understand them. The mystery hidden in these things
- has a fascination for us: we can't come across a printed page of
- shorthand without being impressed by it and wishing we could read
- it.
-
- Very well, what I am offering for acceptance and adopting is
- not shorthand, but longhand, written with the SHORTHAND ALPHABET
- UNREACHED. You can write three times as many words in a minute
- with it as you can write with our alphabet. And so, in a way, it
- IS properly a shorthand. It has a pleasant look, too; a
- beguiling look, an inviting look. I will write something in it,
- in my rude and untaught way: [Figure 8]
-
- Even when _I_ do it it comes out prettier than it does in
- Simplified Spelling. Yes, and in the Simplified it costs one
- hundred and twenty-three pen-strokes to write it, whereas in the
- phonographic it costs only twenty-nine.
-
- [Figure 9] is probably [Figure 10].
-
- Let us hope so, anyway.
-
-
- AS CONCERNS INTERPRETING THE DEITY
-
-
- I
-
- This line of hieroglyphics was for fourteen years the
- despair of all the scholars who labored over the mysteries of the
- Rosetta stone: [Figure 1]
-
-
- After five years of study Champollion translated it thus:
-
-
- Therefore let the worship of Epiphanes be maintained in all
- the temples, this upon pain of death.
-
-
- That was the twenty-forth translation that had been
- furnished by scholars. For a time it stood. But only for a
- time. Then doubts began to assail it and undermine it, and the
- scholars resumed their labors. Three years of patient work
- produced eleven new translations; among them, this, by
- Gr:unfeldt, was received with considerable favor:
-
-
- The horse of Epiphanes shall be maintained at the public expense;
- this upon pain of death.
-
-
- But the following rendering, by Gospodin, was received by
- the learned world with yet greater favor:
-
-
- The priest shall explain the wisdom of Epiphanes to all these people,
- and these shall listen with reverence, upon pain of death.
-
-
- Seven years followed, in which twenty-one fresh and widely
- varying renderings were scored--none of them quite convincing.
- But now, at last, came Rawlinson, the youngest of all the
- scholars, with a translation which was immediately and
- universally recognized as being the correct version, and his name
- became famous in a day. So famous, indeed, that even the
- children were familiar with it; and such a noise did the
- achievement itself make that not even the noise of the monumental
- political event of that same year--the flight from Elba--was able
- to smother it to silence. Rawlinson's version reads as follows:
-
-
- Therefore, walk not away from the wisdom of Epiphanes, but
- turn and follow it; so shall it conduct thee to the temple's
- peace, and soften for thee the sorrows of life and the pains of
- death.
-
-
- Here is another difficult text: [Figure 2]
-
-
- It is demotic--a style of Egyptian writing and a phase of
- the language which has perished from the knowledge of all men
- twenty-five hundred years before the Christian era.
-
- Our red Indians have left many records, in the form of
- pictures, upon our crags and boulders. It has taken our most
- gifted and painstaking students two centuries to get at the
- meanings hidden in these pictures; yet there are still two little
- lines of hieroglyphics among the figures grouped upon the Dighton
- Rocks which they have not succeeds in interpreting to their
- satisfaction. These: [Figure 3]
-
-
- The suggested solutions are practically innumerable; they
- would fill a book.
-
- Thus we have infinite trouble in solving man-made mysteries;
- it is only when we set out to discover the secret of God that our
- difficulties disappear. It was always so. In antique Roman
- times it was the custom of the Deity to try to conceal His
- intentions in the entrails of birds, and this was patiently and
- hopefully continued century after century, although the attempted
- concealment never succeeded, in a single recorded instance. The
- augurs could read entrails as easily as a modern child can read
- coarse print. Roman history is full of the marvels of
- interpretation which these extraordinary men performed. These
- strange and wonderful achievements move our awe and compel our
- admiration. Those men could pierce to the marrow of a mystery
- instantly. If the Rosetta-stone idea had been introduced it
- would have defeated them, but entrails had no embarrassments for
- them. Entrails have gone out, now--entrails and dreams. It was
- at last found out that as hiding-places for the divine intentions
- they were inadequate.
-
-
- A part of the wall of Valletri in former times been struck
- with thunder, the response of the soothsayers was, that a native
- of that town would some time or other arrive at supreme power.--
- BOHN'S SUETONIUS, p. 138.
-
-
- "Some time or other." It looks indefinite, but no matter,
- it happened, all the same; one needed only to wait, and be
- patient, and keep watch, then he would find out that the thunder-
- stroke had Caesar Augustus in mind, and had come to give notice.
-
- There were other advance-advertisements. One of them
- appeared just before Caesar Augustus was born, and was most
- poetic and touching and romantic in its feelings and aspects.
- It was a dream. It was dreamed by Caesar Augustus's mother,
- and interpreted at the usual rates:
-
-
- Atia, before her delivery, dreamed that her bowels stretched
- to the stars and expanded through the whole circuit of heaven
- and earth.--SUETONIUS, p. 139.
-
-
- That was in the augur's line, and furnished him no
- difficulties, but it would have taken Rawlinson and Champollion
- fourteen years to make sure of what it meant, because they would
- have been surprised and dizzy. It would have been too late to be
- valuable, then, and the bill for service would have been barred
- by the statute of limitation.
-
- In those old Roman days a gentleman's education was not
- complete until he had taken a theological course at the seminary
- and learned how to translate entrails. Caesar Augustus's
- education received this final polish. All through his life,
- whenever he had poultry on the menu he saved the interiors and
- kept himself informed of the Deity's plans by exercising upon
- those interiors the arts of augury.
-
-
- In his first consulship, while he was observing the
- auguries, twelve vultures presented themselves, as they had done
- to Romulus. And when he offered sacrifice, the livers of all
- the victims were folded inward in the lower part; a circumstance
- which was regarded by those present who had skill in things of
- that nature, as an indubitable prognostic of great and wonderful
- fortune.--SUETONIUS, p. 141.
-
-
- "Indubitable" is a strong word, but no doubt it was
- justified, if the livers were really turned that way. In those
- days chicken livers were strangely and delicately sensitive to
- coming events, no matter how far off they might be; and they
- could never keep still, but would curl and squirm like that,
- particularly when vultures came and showed interest in that
- approaching great event and in breakfast.
-
-
- II
-
- We may now skip eleven hundred and thirty or forty years,
- which brings us down to enlightened Christian times and the
- troubled days of King Stephen of England. The augur has had his
- day and has been long ago forgotten; the priest had fallen heir
- to his trade.
-
- King Henry is dead; Stephen, that bold and outrageous
- person, comes flying over from Normandy to steal the throne from
- Henry's daughter. He accomplished his crime, and Henry of
- Huntington, a priest of high degree, mourns over it in his
- Chronicle. The Archbishop of Canterbury consecrated Stephen:
- "wherefore the Lord visited the Archbishop with the same judgment
- which he had inflicted upon him who struck Jeremiah the great
- priest: he died with a year."
-
- Stephen's was the greater offense, but Stephen could wait;
- not so the Archbishop, apparently.
-
-
- The kingdom was a prey to intestine wars; slaughter, fire,
- and rapine spread ruin throughout the land; cries of distress,
- horror, and woe rose in every quarter.
-
-
- That was the result of Stephen's crime. These unspeakable
- conditions continued during nineteen years. Then Stephen died as
- comfortably as any man ever did, and was honorably buried. It
- makes one pity the poor Archbishop, and with that he, too, could
- have been let off as leniently. How did Henry of Huntington know
- that the Archbishop was sent to his grave by judgment of God for
- consecrating Stephen? He does not explain. Neither does he
- explain why Stephen was awarded a pleasanter death than he was
- entitled to, while the aged King Henry, his predecessor, who had
- ruled England thirty-five years to the people's strongly worded
- satisfaction, was condemned to close his life in circumstances
- most distinctly unpleasant, inconvenient, and disagreeable. His
- was probably the most uninspiring funeral that is set down in
- history. There is not a detail about it that is attractive. It
- seems to have been just the funeral for Stephen, and even at this
- far-distant day it is matter of just regret that by an
- indiscretion the wrong man got it.
-
- Whenever God punishes a man, Henry of Huntington knows why
- it was done, and tells us; and his pen is eloquent with
- admiration; but when a man has earned punishment, and escapes, he
- does not explain. He is evidently puzzled, but he does not say
- anything. I think it is often apparent that he is pained by
- these discrepancies, but loyally tries his best not to show it.
- When he cannot praise, he delivers himself of a silence so marked
- that a suspicious person could mistake it for suppressed
- criticism. However, he has plenty of opportunities to feel
- contented with the way things go--his book is full of them.
-
-
- King David of Scotland . . . under color of religion caused
- his followers to deal most barbarously with the English. They
- ripped open women, tossed children on the points of spears,
- butchered priests at the altars, and, cutting off the heads from
- the images on crucifixes, placed them on the bodies of the slain,
- while in exchange they fixed on the crucifixes the heads of their
- victims. Wherever the Scots came, there was the same scene of
- horror and cruelty: women shrieking, old men lamenting, amid the
- groans of the dying and the despair of the living.
-
-
- But the English got the victory.
-
-
- Then the chief of the men of Lothian fell, pierced by an arrow,
- and all his followers were put to flight. For the Almighty was
- offended at them and their strength was rent like a cobweb.
-
-
- Offended at them for what? For committing those fearful
- butcheries? No, for that was the common custom on both sides,
- and not open to criticism. Then was it for doing the butcheries
- "under cover of religion"? No, that was not it; religious
- feeling was often expressed in that fervent way all through those
- old centuries. The truth is, He was not offended at "them" at all;
- He was only offended at their king, who had been false to an oath.
- Then why did not He put the punishment upon the king instead of
- upon "them"? It is a difficult question. One can see by the
- Chronicle that the "judgments" fell rather customarily upon
- the wrong person, but Henry of Huntington does not explain why.
- Here is one that went true; the chronicler's satisfaction
- in it is not hidden:
-
-
- In the month of August, Providence displayed its justice in
- a remarkable manner; for two of the nobles who had converted
- monasteries into fortifications, expelling the monks, their sin
- being the same, met with a similar punishment. Robert Marmion
- was one, Godfrey de Mandeville the other. Robert Marmion,
- issuing forth against the enemy, was slain under the walls of the
- monastery, being the only one who fell, though he was surrounded
- by his troops. Dying excommunicated, he became subject to death
- everlasting. In like manner Earl Godfrey was singled out among
- his followers, and shot with an arrow by a common foot-soldier.
- He made light of the wound, but he died of it in a few days,
- under excommunication. See here the like judgment of God,
- memorable through all ages!
-
-
- The exaltation jars upon me; not because of the death of the
- men, for they deserved that, but because it is death eternal, in
- white-hot fire and flame. It makes my flesh crawl. I have not
- known more than three men, or perhaps four, in my whole lifetime,
- *whom I would rejoice to see writhing in those fires for even a
- year, let alone forever. I believe I would relent before the
- year was up, and get them out if I could. I think that in
- the long run, if a man's wife and babies, who had not harmed me,
- should come crying and pleading, I couldn't stand it; I know I
- should forgive him and let him go, even if he had violated a
- monastery. Henry of Huntington has been watching Godfrey and
- Marmion for nearly seven hundred and fifty years, now, but I
- couldn't do it, I know I couldn't. I am soft and gentle in my
- nature, and I should have forgiven them seventy-and-seven times,
- long ago. And I think God has; but this is only an opinion,
- and not authoritative, like Henry of Huntington's interpretations.
- I could learn to interpret, but I have never tried; I get so
- little time.
-
- All through his book Henry exhibits his familiarity with the
- intentions of God, and with the reasons for his intentions.
- Sometimes--very often, in fact--the act follows the intention
- after such a wide interval of time that one wonders how Henry
- could fit one act out of a hundred to one intention out of a
- hundred and get the thing right every time when there was such
- abundant choice among acts and intentions. Sometimes a man
- offends the Deity with a crime, and is punished for it thirty
- years later; meantime he was committed a million other crimes:
- no matter, Henry can pick out the one that brought the worms.
- Worms were generally used in those days for the slaying of
- particularly wicked people. This has gone out, now, but in old
- times it was a favorite. It always indicated a case of "wrath."
- For instance:
-
-
- . . . the just God avenging Robert Fitzhilderbrand's
- perfidy, a worm grew in his vitals, which gradually gnawing its
- way through his intestines fattened on the abandoned man till,
- tortured with excruciating sufferings and venting himself in
- bitter moans, he was by a fitting punishment brought to his end.
- --(P. 400.)
-
-
- It was probably an alligator, but we cannot tell; we only
- know it was a particular breed, and only used to convey wrath.
- Some authorities think it was an ichthyosaurus, but there is
- much doubt.
-
- However, one thing we do know; and that is that that worm had been
- due years and years. Robert F. had violated a monastery once;
- he had committed unprintable crimes since, and they had been
- permitted--under disapproval--but the ravishment of the monastery
- had not been forgotten nor forgiven, and the worm came at last.
-
- Why were these reforms put off in this strange way? What was to
- be gained by it? Did Henry of Huntington really know his facts,
- or was he only guessing? Sometimes I am half persuaded that
- he is only a guesser, and not a good one. The divine wisdom
- must surely be of the better quality than he makes it out to be.
-
- Five hundred years before Henry's time some forecasts of the
- Lord's purposes were furnished by a pope, who perceived, by
- certain perfectly trustworthy signs furnished by the Deity for
- the information of His familiars, that the end of the world was
-
-
- . . . about to come. But as this end of the world draws
- near many things are at hand which have not before happened, as
- changes in the air, terrible signs in the heavens, tempests out
- of the common order of the seasons, wars, famines, pestilences,
- earthquakes in various places; all which will not happen in our
- days, but after our days all will come to pass.
-
-
- Still, the end was so near that these signs were "sent before
- that we may be careful for our souls and be found prepared
- to meet the impending judgment."
-
- That was thirteen hundred years ago. This is really no
- improvement on the work of the Roman augurs.
-
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
- CONCERNING TOBACCO
-
- As concerns tobacco, there are many superstitions. And the
- chiefest is this--that there is a STANDARD governing the matter,
- whereas there is nothing of the kind. Each man's own preference
- is the only standard for him, the only one which he can accept,
- the only one which can command him. A congress of all the
- tobacco-lovers in the world could not elect a standard which
- would be binding upon you or me, or would even much influence us.
-
- The next superstition is that a man has a standard of his own.
- He hasn't. He thinks he has, but he hasn't. He thinks he can
- tell what he regards as a good cigar from what he regards as a
- bad one--but he can't. He goes by the brand, yet imagines he goes
- by the flavor. One may palm off the worst counterfeit upon him;
- if it bears his brand he will smoke it contentedly and never suspect.
-
- Children of twenty-five, who have seven years experience,
- try to tell me what is a good cigar and what isn't.
- Me, who never learned to smoke, but always smoked;
- me, who came into the world asking for a light.
-
- No one can tell me what is a good cigar--for me. I am the
- only judge. People who claim to know say that I smoke the worst
- cigars in the world. They bring their own cigars when they come
- to my house. They betray an unmanly terror when I offer them
- a cigar; they tell lies and hurry away to meet engagements
- which they have not made when they are threatened with the
- hospitalities of my box. Now then, observe what superstition,
- assisted by a man's reputation, can do. I was to have twelve
- personal friends to supper one night. One of them was as
- notorious for costly and elegant cigars as I was for cheap and
- devilish ones. I called at his house and when no one was looking
- borrowed a double handful of his very choicest; cigars which cost
- him forty cents apiece and bore red-and-gold labels in sign of
- their nobility. I removed the labels and put the cigars into a
- box with my favorite brand on it--a brand which those people all
- knew, and which cowed them as men are cowed by an epidemic. They
- took these cigars when offered at the end of the supper, and lit
- them and sternly struggled with them--in dreary silence, for
- hilarity died when the fell brand came into view and started
- around--but their fortitude held for a short time only; then they
- made excuses and filed out, treading on one another's heels with
- indecent eagerness; and in the morning when I went out to observe
- results the cigars lay all between the front door and the gate.
- All except one--that one lay in the plate of the man from whom I
- had cabbaged the lot. One or two whiffs was all he could stand.
- He told me afterward that some day I would get shot for giving
- people that kind of cigars to smoke.
-
- Am I certain of my own standard? Perfectly; yes, absolutely
- --unless somebody fools me by putting my brand on some other kind
- of cigar; for no doubt I am like the rest, and know my cigar by
- the brand instead of by the flavor. However, my standard is a
- pretty wide one and covers a good deal of territory. To me,
- almost any cigar is good that nobody else will smoke, and to me
- almost all cigars are bad that other people consider good.
- Nearly any cigar will do me, except a Havana. People think they
- hurt my feelings when then come to my house with their life
- preservers on--I mean, with their own cigars in their pockets.
- It is an error; I take care of myself in a similar way. When I
- go into danger--that is, into rich people's houses, where, in the
- nature of things, they will have high-tariff cigars, red-and-gilt
- girded and nested in a rosewood box along with a damp sponge,
- cigars which develop a dismal black ash and burn down the side
- and smell, and will grow hot to the fingers, and will go on
- growing hotter and hotter, and go on smelling more and more
- infamously and unendurably the deeper the fire tunnels down
- inside below the thimbleful of honest tobacco that is in the
- front end, the furnisher of it praising it all the time and
- telling you how much the deadly thing cost--yes, when I go into
- that sort of peril I carry my own defense along; I carry my own
- brand--twenty-seven cents a barrel--and I live to see my family
- again. I may seem to light his red-gartered cigar, but that is
- only for courtesy's sake; I smuggle it into my pocket for the
- poor, of whom I know many, and light one of my own; and while he
- praises it I join in, but when he says it cost forty-five cents I
- say nothing, for I know better.
-
- However, to say true, my tastes are so catholic that I have
- never seen any cigars that I really could not smoke, except those
- that cost a dollar apiece. I have examined those and know that
- they are made of dog-hair, and not good dog-hair at that.
-
- I have a thoroughly satisfactory time in Europe, for all
- over the Continent one finds cigars which not even the most
- hardened newsboys in New York would smoke. I brought cigars with
- me, the last time; I will not do that any more. In Italy, as in
- France, the Government is the only cigar-peddler. Italy has
- three or four domestic brands: the Minghetti, the Trabuco, the
- Virginia, and a very coarse one which is a modification of the
- Virginia. The Minghettis are large and comely, and cost three
- dollars and sixty cents a hundred; I can smoke a hundred in seven
- days and enjoy every one of them. The Trabucos suit me, too; I
- don't remember the price. But one has to learn to like the
- Virginia, nobody is born friendly to it. It looks like a rat-
- tail file, but smokes better, some think. It has a straw through
- it; you pull this out, and it leaves a flue, otherwise there
- would be no draught, not even as much as there is to a nail.
- Some prefer a nail at first. However, I like all the French,
- Swiss, German, and Italian domestic cigars, and have never cared
- to inquire what they are made of; and nobody would know, anyhow,
- perhaps. There is even a brand of European smoking-tobacco that
- I like. It is a brand used by the Italian peasants. It is loose
- and dry and black, and looks like tea-grounds. When the fire is
- applied it expands, and climbs up and towers above the pipe, and
- presently tumbles off inside of one's vest. The tobacco itself
- is cheap, but it raises the insurance. It is as I remarked in
- the beginning--the taste for tobacco is a matter of superstition.
- There are no standards--no real standards. Each man's preference
- is the only standard for him, the only one which he can accept,
- the only one which can command him.
-
- ------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
- THE BEE
-
- It was Maeterlinck who introduced me to the bee. I mean, in
- the psychical and in the poetical way. I had had a business
- introduction earlier. It was when I was a boy. It is strange
- that I should remember a formality like that so long; it must be
- nearly sixty years.
-
- Bee scientists always speak of the bee as she. It is
- because all the important bees are of that sex. In the hive
- there is one married bee, called the queen; she has fifty
- thousand children; of these, about one hundred are sons; the rest
- are daughters. Some of the daughters are young maids, some are
- old maids, and all are virgins and remain so.
-
- Every spring the queen comes out of the hive and flies away
- with one of her sons and marries him. The honeymoon lasts only
- an hour or two; then the queen divorces her husband and returns
- home competent to lay two million eggs. This will be enough to
- last the year, but not more than enough, because hundreds of bees
- are drowned every day, and other hundreds are eaten by birds, and
- it is the queen's business to keep the population up to standard
- --say, fifty thousand. She must always have that many children
- on hand and efficient during the busy season, which is summer, or
- winter would catch the community short of food. She lays from
- two thousand to three thousand eggs a day, according to the
- demand; and she must exercise judgment, and not lay more than are
- needed in a slim flower-harvest, nor fewer than are required in a
- prodigal one, or the board of directors will dethrone her and
- elect a queen that has more sense.
-
- There are always a few royal heirs in stock and ready to
- take her place--ready and more than anxious to do it, although
- she is their own mother. These girls are kept by themselves, and
- are regally fed and tended from birth. No other bees get such
- fine food as they get, or live such a high and luxurious life.
- By consequence they are larger and longer and sleeker than their
- working sisters. And they have a curved sting, shaped like a
- scimitar, while the others have a straight one.
-
- A common bee will sting any one or anybody, but a royalty
- stings royalties only. A common bee will sting and kill another
- common bee, for cause, but when it is necessary to kill the queen
- other ways are employed. When a queen has grown old and slack
- and does not lay eggs enough one of her royal daughters is
- allowed to come to attack her, the rest of the bees looking on at
- the duel and seeing fair play. It is a duel with the curved
- stings. If one of the fighters gets hard pressed and gives it up
- and runs, she is brought back and must try again--once, maybe
- twice; then, if she runs yet once more for her life, judicial
- death is her portion; her children pack themselves into a ball
- around her person and hold her in that compact grip two or three
- days, until she starves to death or is suffocated. Meantime the
- victor bee is receiving royal honors and performing the one royal
- function--laying eggs.
-
- As regards the ethics of the judicial assassination of the
- queen, that is a matter of politics, and will be discussed later,
- in its proper place.
-
- During substantially the whole of her short life of five or
- six years the queen lives in Egyptian darkness and stately
- seclusion of the royal apartments, with none about her but
- plebeian servants, who give her empty lip-affection in place of
- the love which her heart hungers for; who spy upon her in the
- interest of her waiting heirs, and report and exaggerate her
- defects and deficiencies to them; who fawn upon her and flatter
- her to her face and slander her behind her back; who grovel
- before her in the day of her power and forsake her in her age and
- weakness. There she sits, friendless, upon her throne through
- the long night of her life, cut off from the consoling sympathies
- and sweet companionship and loving endearments which she craves,
- by the gilded barriers of her awful rank; a forlorn exile in her
- own house and home, weary object of formal ceremonies and
- machine-made worship, winged child of the sun, native to the free
- air and the blue skies and the flowery fields, doomed by the
- splendid accident of her birth to trade this priceless heritage
- for a black captivity, a tinsel grandeur, and a loveless life,
- with shame and insult at the end and a cruel death--and condemned
- by the human instinct in her to hold the bargain valuable!
-
- Huber, Lubbock, Maeterlinck--in fact, all the great
- authorities--are agreed in denying that the bee is a member of
- the human family. I do not know why they have done this, but I
- think it is from dishonest motives. Why, the innumerable facts
- brought to light by their own painstaking and exhaustive
- experiments prove that if there is a master fool in the world, it
- is the bee. That seems to settle it.
-
- But that is the way of the scientist. He will spend thirty
- years in building up a mountain range of facts with the intent to
- prove a certain theory; then he is so happy in his achievement
- that as a rule he overlooks the main chief fact of all--that his
- accumulation proves an entirely different thing. When you point
- out this miscarriage to him he does not answer your letters; when
- you call to convince him, the servant prevaricates and you do not
- get in. Scientists have odious manners, except when you prop up
- their theory; then you can borrow money of them.
-
- To be strictly fair, I will concede that now and then one of
- them will answer your letter, but when they do they avoid the
- issue--you cannot pin them down. When I discovered that the bee
- was human I wrote about it to all those scientists whom I have
- just mentioned. For evasions, I have seen nothing to equal the
- answers I got.
-
- After the queen, the personage next in importance in the
- hive is the virgin. The virgins are fifty thousand or one
- hundred thousand in number, and they are the workers, the
- laborers. No work is done, in the hive or out of it, save by
- them. The males do not work, the queen does no work, unless
- laying eggs is work, but it does not seem so to me. There are
- only two million of them, anyway, and all of five months to
- finish the contract in. The distribution of work in a hive is as
- cleverly and elaborately specialized as it is in a vast American
- machine-shop or factory. A bee that has been trained to one of
- the many and various industries of the concern doesn't know how
- to exercise any other, and would be offended if asked to take a
- hand in anything outside of her profession. She is as human as a
- cook; and if you should ask the cook to wait on the table, you
- know what will happen. Cooks will play the piano if you like,
- but they draw the line there. In my time I have asked a cook to
- chop wood, and I know about these things. Even the hired girl
- has her frontiers; true, they are vague, they are ill-defined,
- even flexible, but they are there. This is not conjecture; it is
- founded on the absolute. And then the butler. You ask the
- butler to wash the dog. It is just as I say; there is much to be
- learned in these ways, without going to books. Books are very well,
- but books do not cover the whole domain of esthetic human culture.
- Pride of profession is one of the boniest bones in existence,
- if not the boniest. Without doubt it is so in the hive.
-
-
-
- TAMING THE BICYCLE
-
- In the early eighties Mark Twain learned to ride one of the
- old high-wheel bicycles of that period. He wrote an account of
- his experience, but did not offer it for publication. The form
- of bicycle he rode long ago became antiquated, but in the humor
- of his pleasantry is a quality which does not grow old.
-
-
- A. B. P.
-
-
-
- I
-
- I thought the matter over, and concluded I could do it. So
- I went down a bought a barrel of Pond's Extract and a bicycle.
- The Expert came home with me to instruct me. We chose the
- back yard, for the sake of privacy, and went to work.
-
- Mine was not a full-grown bicycle, but only a colt--a
- fifty-inch, with the pedals shortened up to forty-eight--and
- skittish, like any other colt. The Expert explained the thing's
- points briefly, then he got on its back and rode around a little,
- to show me how easy it was to do. He said that the dismounting
- was perhaps the hardest thing to learn, and so we would leave
- that to the last. But he was in error there. He found, to his
- surprise and joy, that all that he needed to do was to get me on
- to the machine and stand out of the way; I could get off, myself.
- Although I was wholly inexperienced, I dismounted in the best
- time on record. He was on that side, shoving up the machine;
- we all came down with a crash, he at the bottom, I next,
- and the machine on top.
-
- We examined the machine, but it was not in the least
- injured. This was hardly believable. Yet the Expert assured me
- that it was true; in fact, the examination proved it. I was
- partly to realize, then, how admirably these things are
- constructed. We applied some Pond's Extract, and resumed. The
- Expert got on the OTHER side to shove up this time, but I
- dismounted on that side; so the result was as before.
-
- The machine was not hurt. We oiled ourselves again, and resumed.
- This time the Expert took up a sheltered position behind,
- but somehow or other we landed on him again.
-
- He was full of admiration; said it was abnormal. She was
- all right, not a scratch on her, not a timber started anywhere.
- I said it was wonderful, while we were greasing up, but he said
- that when I came to know these steel spider-webs I would realize
- that nothing but dynamite could cripple them. Then he limped out
- to position, and we resumed once more. This time the Expert took
- up the position of short-stop, and got a man to shove up behind.
- We got up a handsome speed, and presently traversed a brick, and
- I went out over the top of the tiller and landed, head down, on
- the instructor's back, and saw the machine fluttering in the air
- between me and the sun. It was well it came down on us, for that
- broke the fall, and it was not injured.
-
- Five days later I got out and was carried down to the
- hospital, and found the Expert doing pretty fairly. In a few
- more days I was quite sound. I attribute this to my prudence in
- always dismounting on something soft. Some recommend a feather
- bed, but I think an Expert is better.
-
- The Expert got out at last, brought four assistants with
- him. It was a good idea. These four held the graceful cobweb
- upright while I climbed into the saddle; then they formed in
- column and marched on either side of me while the Expert pushed
- behind; all hands assisted at the dismount.
-
- The bicycle had what is called the "wabbles," and had them
- very badly. In order to keep my position, a good many things
- were required of me, and in every instance the thing required was
- against nature. That is to say, that whatever the needed thing
- might be, my nature, habit, and breeding moved me to attempt it
- in one way, while some immutable and unsuspected law of physics
- required that it be done in just the other way. I perceived by
- this how radically and grotesquely wrong had been the life-long
- education of my body and members. They were steeped in
- ignorance; they knew nothing--nothing which it could profit them
- to know. For instance, if I found myself falling to the right, I
- put the tiller hard down the other way, by a quite natural
- impulse, and so violated a law, and kept on going down. The law
- required the opposite thing--the big wheel must be turned in the
- direction in which you are falling. It is hard to believe this,
- when you are told it. And not merely hard to believe it, but
- impossible; it is opposed to all your notions. And it is just as
- hard to do it, after you do come to believe it. Believing it,
- and knowing by the most convincing proof that it is true, does
- not help it: you can't any more DO it than you could before; you
- can neither force nor persuade yourself to do it at first. The
- intellect has to come to the front, now. It has to teach the
- limbs to discard their old education and adopt the new.
-
- The steps of one's progress are distinctly marked. At the
- end of each lesson he knows he has acquired something, and he
- also knows what that something is, and likewise that it will stay
- with him. It is not like studying German, where you mull along,
- in a groping, uncertain way, for thirty years; and at last, just
- as you think you've got it, they spring the subjunctive on you,
- and there you are. No--and I see now, plainly enough, that the
- great pity about the German language is, that you can't fall off
- it and hurt yourself. There is nothing like that feature to make
- you attend strictly to business. But I also see, by what I have
- learned of bicycling, that the right and only sure way to learn
- German is by the bicycling method. That is to say, take a grip
- on one villainy of it at a time, leaving that one half learned.
-
- When you have reached the point in bicycling where you can
- balance the machine tolerably fairly and propel it and steer it,
- then comes your next task--how to mount it. You do it in this
- way: you hop along behind it on your right foot, resting the
- other on the mounting-peg, and grasping the tiller with your
- hands. At the word, you rise on the peg, stiffen your left leg,
- hang your other one around in the air in a general in indefinite
- way, lean your stomach against the rear of the saddle, and then
- fall off, maybe on one side, maybe on the other; but you fall off.
- You get up and do it again; and once more; and then several times.
-
- By this time you have learned to keep your balance; and also
- to steer without wrenching the tiller out by the roots (I say
- tiller because it IS a tiller; "handle-bar" is a lamely
- descriptive phrase). So you steer along, straight ahead, a little
- while, then you rise forward, with a steady strain, bringing your
- right leg, and then your body, into the saddle, catch your
- breath, fetch a violent hitch this way and then that, and down
- you go again.
-
- But you have ceased to mind the going down by this time; you
- are getting to light on one foot or the other with considerable
- certainty. Six more attempts and six more falls make you
- perfect. You land in the saddle comfortably, next time, and stay
- there--that is, if you can be content to let your legs dangle,
- and leave the pedals alone a while; but if you grab at once for
- the pedals, you are gone again. You soon learn to wait a little
- and perfect your balance before reaching for the pedals; then the
- mounting-art is acquired, is complete, and a little practice will
- make it simple and easy to you, though spectators ought to keep
- off a rod or two to one side, along at first, if you have nothing
- against them.
-
- And now you come to the voluntary dismount; you learned the
- other kind first of all. It is quite easy to tell one how to do
- the voluntary dismount; the words are few, the requirement
- simple, and apparently undifficult; let your left pedal go down
- till your left leg is nearly straight, turn your wheel to the
- left, and get off as you would from a horse. It certainly does
- sound exceedingly easy; but it isn't. I don't know why it isn't
- but it isn't. Try as you may, you don't get down as you would
- from a horse, you get down as you would from a house afire. You
- make a spectacle of yourself every time.
-
-
- II
-
- During the eight days I took a daily lesson an hour and a
- half. At the end of this twelve working-hours' appreticeship I
- was graduated--in the rough. I was pronounced competent to
- paddle my own bicycle without outside help. It seems incredible,
- this celerity of acquirement. It takes considerably longer than
- that to learn horseback-riding in the rough.
-
- Now it is true that I could have learned without a teacher,
- but it would have been risky for me, because of my natural
- clumsiness. The self-taught man seldom knows anything
- accurately, and he does not know a tenth as much as he could have
- known if he had worked under teachers; and, besides, he brags,
- and is the means of fooling other thoughtless people into going
- and doing as he himself has done. There are those who imagine
- that the unlucky accidents of life--life's "experiences"--are in
- some way useful to us. I wish I could find out how. I never
- knew one of them to happen twice. They always change off and
- swap around and catch you on your inexperienced side. If
- personal experience can be worth anything as an education, it
- wouldn't seem likely that you could trip Methuselah; and yet if
- that old person could come back here it is more that likely that
- one of the first things he would do would be to take hold of one
- of these electric wires and tie himself all up in a knot. Now
- the surer thing and the wiser thing would be for him to ask
- somebody whether it was a good thing to take hold of. But that
- would not suit him; he would be one of the self-taught kind that
- go by experience; he would want to examine for himself. And he
- would find, for his instruction, that the coiled patriarch shuns
- the electric wire; and it would be useful to him, too, and would
- leave his education in quite a complete and rounded-out
- condition, till he should come again, some day, and go to
- bouncing a dynamite-can around to find out what was in it.
-
- But we wander from the point. However, get a teacher; it
- saves much time and Pond's Extract.
-
- Before taking final leave of me, my instructor inquired
- concerning my physical strength, and I was able to inform him
- that I hadn't any. He said that that was a defect which would
- make up-hill wheeling pretty difficult for me at first; but he
- also said the bicycle would soon remove it. The contrast between
- his muscles and mine was quite marked. He wanted to test mine,
- so I offered my biceps--which was my best. It almost made him
- smile. He said, "It is pulpy, and soft, and yielding, and
- rounded; it evades pressure, and glides from under the fingers;
- in the dark a body might think it was an oyster in a rag."
- Perhaps this made me look grieved, for he added, briskly: "Oh,
- that's all right, you needn't worry about that; in a little while
- you can't tell it from a petrified kidney. Just go right along
- with your practice; you're all right."
-
- Then he left me, and I started out alone to seek adventures.
- You don't really have to seek them--that is nothing but a phrase
- --they come to you.
-
- I chose a reposeful Sabbath-day sort of a back street which
- was about thirty yards wide between the curbstones. I knew it
- was not wide enough; still, I thought that by keeping strict
- watch and wasting no space unnecessarily I could crowd through.
-
- Of course I had trouble mounting the machine, entirely on my
- own responsibility, with no encouraging moral support from the
- outside, no sympathetic instructor to say, "Good! now you're
- doing well--good again--don't hurry--there, now, you're all right
- --brace up, go ahead." In place of this I had some other
- support. This was a boy, who was perched on a gate-post munching
- a hunk of maple sugar.
-
- He was full of interest and comment. The first time I
- failed and went down he said that if he was me he would dress up
- in pillows, that's what he would do. The next time I went down
- he advised me to go and learn to ride a tricycle first. The
- third time I collapsed he said he didn't believe I could stay on
- a horse-car. But the next time I succeeded, and got clumsily
- under way in a weaving, tottering, uncertain fashion, and
- occupying pretty much all of the street. My slow and lumbering
- gait filled the boy to the chin with scorn, and he sung out, "My,
- but don't he rip along!" Then he got down from his post and
- loafed along the sidewalk, still observing and occasionally
- commenting. Presently he dropped into my wake and followed along
- behind. A little girl passed by, balancing a wash-board on her
- head, and giggled, and seemed about to make a remark, but the boy
- said, rebukingly, "Let him alone, he's going to a funeral."
-
- I have been familiar with that street for years, and had
- always supposed it was a dead level; but it was not, as the
- bicycle now informed me, to my surprise. The bicycle, in the
- hands of a novice, is as alert and acute as a spirit-level in the
- detecting the delicate and vanishing shades of difference in
- these matters. It notices a rise where your untrained eye would
- not observe that one existed; it notices any decline which water
- will run down. I was toiling up a slight rise, but was not aware
- of it. It made me tug and pant and perspire; and still, labor as
- I might, the machine came almost to a standstill every little while.
- At such times the boy would say: "That's it! take a rest--
- there ain't no hurry. They can't hold the funeral without YOU."
-
- Stones were a bother to me. Even the smallest ones gave me a
- panic when I went over them. I could hit any kind of a stone,
- no matter how small, if I tried to miss it; and of course at
- first I couldn't help trying to do that. It is but natural.
- It is part of the ass that is put in us all, for some
- inscrutable reason.
-
- It was at the end of my course, at last, and it was necessary
- for me to round to. This is not a pleasant thing, when you
- undertake it for the first time on your own responsibility,
- and neither is it likely to succeed. Your confidence oozes away,
- you fill steadily up with nameless apprehensions, every fiber of
- you is tense with a watchful strain, you start a cautious and
- gradual curve, but your squirmy nerves are all full of electric
- anxieties, so the curve is quickly demoralized into a jerky and
- perilous zigzag; then suddenly the nickel-clad horse takes the
- bit in its mouth and goes slanting for the curbstone, defying all
- prayers and all your powers to change its mind--your heart stands
- still, your breath hangs fire, your legs forget to work, straight
- on you go, and there are but a couple of feet between you and the
- curb now. And now is the desperate moment, the last chance to
- save yourself; of course all your instructions fly out of your
- head, and you whirl your wheel AWAY from the curb instead of
- TOWARD it, and so you go sprawling on that granite-bound
- inhospitable shore. That was my luck; that was my experience. I
- dragged myself out from under the indestructible bicycle and sat
- down on the curb to examine.
-
- I started on the return trip. It was now that I saw a
- farmer's wagon poking along down toward me, loaded with cabbages.
- If I needed anything to perfect the precariousness of my steering,
- it was just that. The farmer was occupying the middle of the road
- with his wagon, leaving barely fourteen or fifteen yards of space
- on either side. I couldn't shout at him--a beginner can't shout;
- if he opens his mouth he is gone; he must keep all his attention
- on his business. But in this grisly emergency, the boy came
- to the rescue, and for once I had to be grateful to him.
- He kept a sharp lookout on the swiftly varying impulses and
- inspirations of my bicycle, and shouted to the man accordingly:
-
- "To the left! Turn to the left, or this jackass 'll run over you!"
- The man started to do it. "No, to the right, to the right!
- Hold on! THAT won't do!--to the left!--to the right!--to the
- LEFT--right! left--ri-- Stay where you ARE, or you're a goner!"
-
- And just then I caught the off horse in the starboard and went
- down in a pile. I said, "Hang it! Couldn't you SEE I was coming?"
-
- "Yes, I see you was coming, but I couldn't tell which WAY you
- was coming. Nobody could--now, COULD they? You couldn't
- yourself--now, COULD you? So what could _I_ do?
-
- There was something in that, and so I had the magnanimity to
- say so. I said I was no doubt as much to blame as he was.
-
- Within the next five days I achieved so much progress that
- the boy couldn't keep up with me. He had to go back to his gate-
- post, and content himself with watching me fall at long range.
-
- There was a row of low stepping-stones across one end of the
- street, a measured yard apart. Even after I got so I could steer
- pretty fairly I was so afraid of those stones that I always hit
- them. They gave me the worst falls I ever got in that street,
- except those which I got from dogs. I have seen it stated that
- no expert is quick enough to run over a dog; that a dog is always
- able to skip out of his way. I think that that may be true: but
- I think that the reason he couldn't run over the dog was because
- he was trying to. I did not try to run over any dog. But I ran
- over every dog that came along. I think it makes a great deal of
- difference. If you try to run over the dog he knows how to
- calculate, but if you are trying to miss him he does not know how
- to calculate, and is liable to jump the wrong way every time. It
- was always so in my experience. Even when I could not hit a
- wagon I could hit a dog that came to see me practice. They all
- liked to see me practice, and they all came, for there was very
- little going on in our neighborhood to entertain a dog. It took
- time to learn to miss a dog, but I achieved even that.
-
- I can steer as well as I want to, now, and I will catch that
- boy one of these days and run over HIM if he doesn't reform.
-
- Get a bicycle. You will not regret it, if you live.
-
-
-
- IS SHAKESPEARE DEAD?
-
- (from My Autobiography)
-
-
- Scattered here and there through the stacks of unpublished
- manuscript which constitute this formidable Autobiography and
- Diary of mine, certain chapters will in some distant future be
- found which deal with "Claimants"--claimants historically
- notorious: Satan, Claimant; the Golden Calf, Claimant; the
- Veiled Prophet of Khorassan, Claimant; Louis XVII., Claimant;
- William Shakespeare, Claimant; Arthur Orton, Claimant; Mary Baker
- G. Eddy, Claimant--and the rest of them. Eminent Claimants,
- successful Claimants, defeated Claimants, royal Claimants, pleb
- Claimants, showy Claimants, shabby Claimants, revered Claimants,
- despised Claimants, twinkle star-like here and there and yonder
- through the mists of history and legend and tradition--and, oh,
- all the darling tribe are clothed in mystery and romance, and we
- read about them with deep interest and discuss them with loving
- sympathy or with rancorous resentment, according to which side we
- hitch ourselves to. It has always been so with the human race.
- There was never a Claimant that couldn't get a hearing, nor one
- that couldn't accumulate a rapturous following, no matter how
- flimsy and apparently unauthentic his claim might be. Arthur
- Orton's claim that he was the lost Tichborne baronet come to life
- again was as flimsy as Mrs. Eddy's that she wrote SCIENCE AND
- HEALTH from the direct dictation of the Deity; yet in England
- nearly forty years ago Orton had a huge army of devotees and
- incorrigible adherents, many of whom remained stubbornly
- unconvinced after their fat god had been proven an impostor and
- jailed as a perjurer, and today Mrs. Eddy's following is not only
- immense, but is daily augmenting in numbers and enthusiasm.
- Orton had many fine and educated minds among his adherents, Mrs.
- Eddy has had the like among hers from the beginning. Her Church
- is as well equipped in those particulars as is any other Church.
- Claimants can always count upon a following, it doesn't matter
- who they are, nor what they claim, nor whether they come with
- documents or without. It was always so. Down out of the long-
- vanished past, across the abyss of the ages, if you listen, you
- can still hear the believing multitudes shouting for Perkin
- Warbeck and Lambert Simnel.
-
- A friend has sent me a new book, from England--THE
- SHAKESPEARE PROBLEM RESTATED--well restated and closely reasoned;
- and my fifty years' interest in that matter--asleep for the last
- three years--is excited once more. It is an interest which was
- born of Delia Bacon's book--away back in the ancient day--1857,
- or maybe 1856. About a year later my pilot-master, Bixby,
- transferred me from his own steamboat to the PENNSYLVANIA, and
- placed me under the orders and instructions of George Ealer--dead
- now, these many, many years. I steered for him a good many
- months--as was the humble duty of the pilot-apprentice: stood a
- daylight watch and spun the wheel under the severe
- superintendence and correction of the master. He was a prime
- chess-player and an idolater of Shakespeare. He would play chess
- with anybody; even with me, and it cost his official dignity
- something to do that. Also--quite uninvited--he would read
- Shakespeare to me; not just casually, but by the hour, when it
- was his watch and I was steering. He read well, but not
- profitably for me, because he constantly injected commands into
- the text. That broke it all up, mixed it all up, tangled it all
- up--to that degree, in fact, that if we were in a risky and
- difficult piece of river an ignorant person couldn't have told,
- sometimes, which observations were Shakespeare's and which were
- Ealer's. For instance:
-
-
- What man dare, _I_ dare!
-
- Approach thou WHAT are you laying in the leads for? what a
- hell of an idea! like the rugged ease her off a little, ease her
- off! rugged Russian bear, the armed rhinoceros or the THERE she
- goes! meet her, meet her! didn't you KNOW she'd smell the reef if
- you crowded in like that? Hyrcan tiger; take any ship but that
- and my firm nerves she'll be in the WOODS the first you know!
- stop he starboard! come ahead strong on the larboard! back the
- starboard! . . . NOW then, you're all right; come ahead on the
- starboard; straighten up and go 'long, never tremble: or be
- alive again, and dare me to the desert DAMNATION can't you keep
- away from that greasy water? pull her down! snatch her! snatch
- her baldheaded! with thy sword; if trembling I inhabit then, lay
- in the leads!--no, only with the starboard one, leave the other
- alone, protest me the baby of a girl. Hence horrible shadow!
- eight bells--that watchman's asleep again, I reckon, go down and
- call Brown yourself, unreal mockery, hence!
-
-
- He certainly was a good reader, and splendidly thrilling and
- stormy and tragic, but it was a damage to me, because I have
- never since been able to read Shakespeare in a calm and sane way.
- I cannot rid it of his explosive interlardings, they break in
- everywhere with their irrelevant, "What in hell are you up to
- NOW! pull her down! more! MORE!--there now, steady as you go,"
- and the other disorganizing interruptions that were always
- leaping from his mouth. When I read Shakespeare now I can hear
- them as plainly as I did in that long-departed time--fifty-one
- years ago. I never regarded Ealer's readings as educational.
- Indeed, they were a detriment to me.
-
- His contributions to the text seldom improved it, but
- barring that detail he was a good reader; I can say that much for
- him. He did not use the book, and did not need to; he knew his
- Shakespeare as well as Euclid ever knew his multiplication table.
-
- Did he have something to say--this Shakespeare-adoring
- Mississippi pilot--anent Delia Bacon's book?
-
- Yes. And he said it; said it all the time, for months--in
- the morning watch, the middle watch, and dog watch; and probably
- kept it going in his sleep. He bought the literature of the
- dispute as fast as it appeared, and we discussed it all through
- thirteen hundred miles of river four times traversed in every
- thirty-five days--the time required by that swift boat to achieve
- two round trips. We discussed, and discussed, and discussed, and
- disputed and disputed and disputed; at any rate, HE did, and I
- got in a word now and then when he slipped a cog and there was a
- vacancy. He did his arguing with heat, with energy, with
- violence; and I did mine with the reverse and moderation of a
- subordinate who does not like to be flung out of a pilot-house
- and is perched forty feet above the water. He was fiercely loyal
- to Shakespeare and cordially scornful of Bacon and of all the
- pretensions of the Baconians. So was I--at first. And at first
- he was glad that that was my attitude. There were even
- indications that he admired it; indications dimmed, it is true,
- by the distance that lay between the lofty boss-pilotical
- altitude and my lowly one, yet perceptible to me; perceptible,
- and translatable into a compliment--compliment coming down from
- about the snow-line and not well thawed in the transit, and not
- likely to set anything afire, not even a cub-pilot's self-
- conceit; still a detectable complement, and precious.
-
- Naturally it flattered me into being more loyal to Shakespeare--
- if possible--than I was before, and more prejudiced against
- Bacon--if possible--that I was before. And so we discussed
- and discussed, both on the same side, and were happy.
- For a while. Only for a while. Only for a very little while,
- a very, very, very little while. Then the atmosphere began
- to change; began to cool off.
-
- A brighter person would have seen what the trouble was,
- earlier than I did, perhaps, but I saw it early enough for all
- practical purposes. You see, he was of an argumentative
- disposition. Therefore it took him but a little time to get
- tired of arguing with a person who agreed with everything he said
- and consequently never furnished him a provocative to flare up
- and show what he could do when it came to clear, cold, hard,
- rose-cut, hundred-faceted, diamond-flashing REASONING. That was
- his name for it. It has been applied since, with complacency, as
- many as several times, in the Bacon-Shakespeare scuffle. On the
- Shakespeare side.
-
- Then the thing happened which has happened to more persons
- than to me when principle and personal interest found themselves
- in opposition to each other and a choice had to be made: I let
- principle go, and went over to the other side. Not the entire
- way, but far enough to answer the requirements of the case. That
- is to say, I took this attitude--to wit, I only BELIEVED Bacon
- wrote Shakespeare, whereas I KNEW Shakespeare didn't. Ealer was
- satisfied with that, and the war broke loose. Study, practice,
- experience in handling my end of the matter presently enabled me
- to take my new position almost seriously; a little bit later,
- utterly seriously; a little later still, lovingly, gratefully,
- devotedly; finally: fiercely, rabidly, uncompromisingly. After
- that I was welded to my faith, I was theoretically ready to die
- for it, and I looked down with compassion not unmixed with scorn
- upon everybody else's faith that didn't tally with mine. That
- faith, imposed upon me by self-interest in that ancient day,
- remains my faith today, and in it I find comfort, solace, peace,
- and never-failing joy. You see how curiously theological it is.
- The "rice Christian" of the Orient goes through the very same
- steps, when he is after rice and the missionary is after HIM; he
- goes for rice, and remains to worship.
-
- Ealer did a lot of our "reasoning"--not to say substantially
- all of it. The slaves of his cult have a passion for calling it
- by that large name. We others do not call our inductions and
- deductions and reductions by any name at all. They show for
- themselves what they are, and we can with tranquil confidence
- leave the world to ennoble them with a title of its own choosing.
-
- Now and then when Ealer had to stop to cough, I pulled my
- induction-talents together and hove the controversial lead
- myself: always getting eight feet, eight and a half, often nine,
- sometimes even quarter-less-twain--as _I_ believed; but always
- "no bottom," as HE said.
-
- I got the best of him only once. I prepared myself. I
- wrote out a passage from Shakespeare--it may have been the very
- one I quoted awhile ago, I don't remember--and riddled it with
- his wild steamboatful interlardings. When an unrisky opportunity
- offered, one lovely summer day, when we had sounded and buoyed a
- tangled patch of crossings known as Hell's Half Acre, and were
- aboard again and he had sneaked the PENNSYLVANIA triumphantly
- through it without once scraping sand, and the A. T. LACEY had
- followed in our wake and got stuck, and he was feeling good, I
- showed it to him. It amused him. I asked him to fire it off--
- READ it; read it, I diplomatically added, as only HE could read
- dramatic poetry. The compliment touched him where he lived. He
- did read it; read it with surpassing fire and spirit; read it as
- it will never be read again; for HE know how to put the right
- music into those thunderous interlardings and make them seem a
- part of the text, make them sound as if they were bursting from
- Shakespeare's own soul, each one of them a golden inspiration and
- not to be left out without damage to the massed and magnificent
- whole.
-
- I waited a week, to let the incident fade; waited longer;
- waited until he brought up for reasonings and vituperation my pet
- position, my pet argument, the one which I was fondest of, the
- one which I prized far above all others in my ammunition-wagon--
- to wit, that Shakespeare couldn't have written Shakespeare's
- words, for the reason that the man who wrote them was limitlessly
- familiar with the laws, and the law-courts, and law-proceedings,
- and lawyer-talk, and lawyer-ways--and if Shakespeare was
- possessed of the infinitely divided star-dust that constituted
- this vast wealth, HOW did he get it, and WHERE and WHEN?
-
- "From books."
-
- From books! That was always the idea. I answered as my
- readings of the champions of my side of the great controversy had
- taught me to answer: that a man can't handle glibly and easily
- and comfortably and successfully the argot of a trade at which he
- has not personally served. He will make mistakes; he will not,
- and cannot, get the trade-phrasings precisely and exactly right;
- and the moment he departs, by even a shade, from a common trade-
- form, the reader who has served that trade will know the writer
- HASN'T. Ealer would not be convinced; he said a man could learn
- how to correctly handle the subtleties and mysteries and free-
- masonries of ANY trade by careful reading and studying. But when
- I got him to read again the passage from Shakespeare with the
- interlardings, he perceived, himself, that books couldn't teach a
- student a bewildering multitude of pilot-phrases so thoroughly
- and perfectly that he could talk them off in book and play or
- conversation and make no mistake that a pilot would not
- immediately discover. It was a triumph for me. He was silent
- awhile, and I knew what was happening--he was losing his temper.
- And I knew he would presently close the session with the same old
- argument that was always his stay and his support in time of
- need; the same old argument, the one I couldn't answer, because I
- dasn't--the argument that I was an ass, and better shut up. He
- delivered it, and I obeyed.
-
- O dear, how long ago it was--how pathetically long ago! And
- here am I, old, forsaken, forlorn, and alone, arranging to get
- that argument out of somebody again.
-
- When a man has a passion for Shakespeare, it goes without
- saying that he keeps company with other standard authors. Ealer
- always had several high-class books in the pilot-house, and he
- read the same ones over and over again, and did not care to
- change to newer and fresher ones. He played well on the flute,
- and greatly enjoyed hearing himself play. So did I. He had a
- notion that a flute would keep its health better if you took it
- apart when it was not standing a watch; and so, when it was not
- on duty it took its rest, disjointed, on the compass-shelf under
- the breastboard. When the PENNSYLVANIA blew up and became a
- drifting rack-heap freighted with wounded and dying poor souls
- (my young brother Henry among them), pilot Brown had the watch
- below, and was probably asleep and never knew what killed him;
- but Ealer escaped unhurt. He and his pilot-house were shot up
- into the air; then they fell, and Ealer sank through the ragged
- cavern where the hurricane-deck and the boiler-deck had been, and
- landed in a nest of ruins on the main deck, on top of one of the
- unexploded boilers, where he lay prone in a fog of scald and
- deadly steam. But not for long. He did not lose his head--long
- familiarity with danger had taught him to keep it, in any and all
- emergencies. He held his coat-lapels to his nose with one hand,
- to keep out the steam, and scrabbled around with the other till
- he found the joints of his flute, then he took measures to save
- himself alive, and was successful. I was not on board. I had
- been put ashore in New Orleans by Captain Klinenfelter. The
- reason--however, I have told all about it in the book called OLD
- TIMES ON THE MISSISSIPPI, and it isn't important, anyway, it is
- so long ago.
-
-
- II
-
- When I was a Sunday-school scholar, something more than
- sixty years ago, I became interested in Satan, and wanted to find
- out all I could about him. I began to ask questions, but my
- class-teacher, Mr. Barclay, the stone-mason, was reluctant about
- answering them, it seemed to me. I was anxious to be praised for
- turning my thoughts to serious subjects when there wasn't another
- boy in the village who could be hired to do such a thing. I was
- greatly interested in the incident of Eve and the serpent, and
- thought Eve's calmness was perfectly noble. I asked Mr. Barclay
- if he had ever heard of another woman who, being approached by a
- serpeant, would not excuse herself and break for the nearest
- timber. He did not answer my question, but rebuked me for
- inquiring into matters above my age and comprehension. I will
- say for Mr. Barclay that he was willing to tell me the facts of
- Satan's history, but he stopped there: he wouldn't allow any
- discussion of them.
-
- In the course of time we exhausted the facts. There were
- only five or six of them; you could set them all down on a
- visiting-card. I was disappointed. I had been meditating a
- biography, and was grieved to find that there were no materials.
- I said as much, with the tears running down. Mr. Barclay's
- sympathy and compassion were aroused, for he was a most kind and
- gentle-spirited man, and he patted me on the head and cheered me
- up by saying there was a whole vast ocean of materials! I can
- still feel the happy thrill which these blessed words shot
- through me.
-
- Then he began to bail out that ocean's riches for my
- encouragement and joy. Like this: it was "conjectured"--though
- not established--that Satan was originally an angel in Heaven;
- that he fell; that he rebelled, and brought on a war; that he was
- defeated, and banished to perdition. Also, "we have reason to
- believe" that later he did so and so; that "we are warranted in
- supposing" that at a subsequent time he traveled extensively,
- seeking whom he might devour; that a couple of centuries
- afterward, "as tradition instructs us," he took up the cruel
- trade of tempting people to their ruin, with vast and fearful
- results; that by and by, "as the probabilities seem to indicate,"
- he may have done certain things, he might have done certain other
- things, he must have done still other things.
-
- And so on and so on. We set down the five known facts by
- themselves on a piece of paper, and numbered it "page 1"; then on
- fifteen hundred other pieces of paper we set down the
- "conjectures," and "suppositions," and "maybes," and "perhapses,"
- and "doubtlesses," and "rumors," and guesses," and
- "probabilities," and "likelihoods," and "we are permitted to
- thinks," and "we are warranted in believings," and "might have
- beens," and "could have beens," and "must have beens," and
- "unquestionablys," and "without a shadow of doubt"--and behold!
-
- MATERIALS? Why, we had enough to build a biography of Shakespeare!
-
- Yet he made me put away my pen; he would not let me write
- the history of Satan. Why? Because, as he said, he had
- suspicions--suspicions that my attitude in the matter was not
- reverent, and that a person must be reverent when writing about
- the sacred characters. He said any one who spoke flippantly of
- Satan would be frowned upon by the religious world and also be
- brought to account.
-
- I assured him, in earnest and sincere words, that he had
- wholly misconceived my attitude; that I had the highest respect
- for Satan, and that my reverence for him equaled, and possibly
- even exceeded, that of any member of the church. I said it
- wounded me deeply to perceive by his words that he thought I
- would make fun of Satan, and deride him, laugh at him, scoff at
- him; whereas in truth I had never thought of such a thing, but
- had only a warm desire to make fun of those others and laugh at
- THEM. "What others? "Why, the Supposers, the Perhapsers, the
- Might-Have-Beeners, the Could-Have-Beeners, the Must-Have-Beeners,
- the Without-a-Shadow-of-Doubters, the We-Are-Warranted-in-Believingers,
- and all that funny crop of solemn architects who have taken a
- good solid foundation of five indisputable and unimportant facts
- and built upon it a Conjectural Satan thirty miles high."
-
- What did Mr. Barclay do then? Was he disarmed? Was he
- silenced? No. He was shocked. He was so shocked that he
- visibly shuddered. He said the Satanic Traditioners and
- Perhapsers and Conjecturers were THEMSELVES sacred! As sacred as
- their work. So sacred that whoso ventured to mock them or make
- fun of their work, could not afterward enter any respectable
- house, even by the back door.
-
- How true were his words, and how wise! How fortunate it
- would have been for me if I had heeded them. But I was young, I
- was but seven years of age, and vain, foolish, and anxious to
- attract attention. I wrote the biography, and have never been in
- a respectable house since.
-
-
- III
-
- How curious and interesting is the parallel--as far as
- poverty of biographical details is concerned--between Satan and
- Shakespeare. It is wonderful, it is unique, it stands quite
- alone, there is nothing resembling it in history, nothing
- resembling it in romance, nothing approaching it even in
- tradition. How sublime is their position, and how over-topping,
- how sky-reaching, how supreme--the two Great Unknowns, the two
- Illustrious Conjecturabilities! They are the best-known unknown
- persons that have ever drawn breath upon the planet.
-
- For the instruction of the ignorant I will make a list, now,
- of those details of Shakespeare's history which are FACTS--
- verified facts, established facts, undisputed facts.
-
-
-
- Facts
-
- He was born on the 23d of April, 1564.
-
- Of good farmer-class parents who could not read, could not
- write, could not sign their names.
-
- At Stratford, a small back settlement which in that day was
- shabby and unclean, and densely illiterate. Of the nineteen
- important men charged with the government of the town, thirteen
- had to "make their mark" in attesting important documents,
- because they could not write their names.
-
- Of the first eighteen years of his life NOTHING is known.
- They are a blank.
-
- On the 27th of November (1582) William Shakespeare took out
- a license to marry Anne Whateley.
-
- Next day William Shakespeare took out a license to marry
- Anne Hathaway. She was eight years his senior.
-
- William Shakespeare married Anne Hathaway. In a hurry. By
- grace of a reluctantly granted dispensation there was but one
- publication of the banns.
-
- Within six months the first child was born.
-
- About two (blank) years followed, during which period
- NOTHING AT ALL HAPPENED TO SHAKESPEARE, so far as anybody knows.
-
- Then came twins--1585. February.
-
- Two blank years follow.
-
- Then--1587--he makes a ten-year visit to London, leaving the family behind.
-
- Five blank years follow. During this period NOTHING
- HAPPENED TO HIM, as far as anybody actually knows.
-
- Then--1592--there is mention of him as an actor.
-
- Next year--1593--his name appears in the official list of players.
-
- Next year--1594--he played before the queen. A detail of no
- consequence: other obscurities did it every year of the forty-
- five of her reign. And remained obscure.
-
- Three pretty full years follow. Full of play-acting. Then*
-
- In 1597 he bought New Place, Stratford.
-
- Thirteen or fourteen busy years follow; years in which he
- accumulated money, and also reputation as actor and manager.
-
- Meantime his name, liberally and variously spelt, had
- become associated with a number of great plays and poems, as
- (ostensibly) author of the same.
-
- Some of these, in these years and later, were pirated, but
- he made no protest.
-
- Then--1610-11--he returned to Stratford and settled down for
- good and all, and busied himself in lending money, trading in
- tithes, trading in land and houses; shirking a debt of forty-one
- shillings, borrowed by his wife during his long desertion of his
- family; suing debtors for shillings and coppers; being sued
- himself for shillings and coppers; and acting as confederate to a
- neighbor who tried to rob the town of its rights in a certain
- common, and did not succeed.
-
- He lived five or six years--till 1616--in the joy of these
- elevated pursuits. Then he made a will, and signed each of its
- three pages with his name.
-
- A thoroughgoing business man's will. It named in minute
- detail every item of property he owned in the world--houses,
- lands, sword, silver-gilt bowl, and so on--all the way down to
- his "second-best bed" and its furniture.
-
- It carefully and calculatingly distributed his riches among
- the members of his family, overlooking no individual of it. Not
- even his wife: the wife he had been enabled to marry in a hurry
- by urgent grace of a special dispensation before he was nineteen;
- the wife whom he had left husbandless so many years; the wife who
- had had to borrow forty-one shillings in her need, and which the
- lender was never able to collect of the prosperous husband, but
- died at last with the money still lacking. No, even this wife
- was remembered in Shakespeare's will.
-
- He left her that "second-best bed."
-
- And NOT ANOTHER THING; not even a penny to bless her lucky
- widowhood with.
-
- It was eminently and conspicuously a business man's will,
- not a poet's.
-
- It mentioned NOT A SINGLE BOOK.
-
- Books were much more precious than swords and silver-gilt
- bowls and second-best beds in those days, and when a departing
- person owned one he gave it a high place in his will.
-
- The will mentioned NOT A PLAY, NOT A POEM, NOT AN UNFINISHED
- LITERARY WORK, NOT A SCRAP OF MANUSCRIPT OF ANY KIND.
-
- Many poets have died poor, but this is the only one in
- history that has died THIS poor; the others all left literary
- remains behind. Also a book. Maybe two.
-
- If Shakespeare had owned a dog--but we not go into that: we
- know he would have mentioned it in his will. If a good dog,
- Susanna would have got it; if an inferior one his wife would have
- got a downer interest in it. I wish he had had a dog, just so we
- could see how painstakingly he would have divided that dog among
- the family, in his careful business way.
-
- He signed the will in three places.
-
- In earlier years he signed two other official documents.
-
- These five signatures still exist.
-
- There are NO OTHER SPECIMENS OF HIS PENMANSHIP IN EXISTENCE.
- Not a line.
-
- Was he prejudiced against the art? His granddaughter, whom
- he loved, was eight years old when he died, yet she had had no
- teaching, he left no provision for her education, although he was
- rich, and in her mature womanhood she couldn't write and couldn't
- tell her husband's manuscript from anybody else's--she thought it
- was Shakespeare's.
-
- When Shakespeare died in Stratford, IT WAS NOT AN EVENT. It
- made no more stir in England than the death of any other
- forgotten theater-actor would have made. Nobody came down from
- London; there were no lamenting poems, no eulogies, no national
- tears--there was merely silence, and nothing more. A striking
- contrast with what happened when Ben Jonson, and Francis Bacon,
- and Spenser, and Raleigh, and the other distinguished literary
- folk of Shakespeare's time passed from life! No praiseful voice
- was lifted for the lost Bard of Avon; even Ben Jonson waited
- seven years before he lifted his.
-
- SO FAR AS ANYBODY ACTUALLY KNOWS AND CAN PROVE, Shakespeare
- of Stratford-on-Avon never wrote a play in his life.
-
-
- SO FAR AS ANY ONE KNOWS, HE RECEIVED ONLY ONE LETTER
- DURING HIS LIFE.
-
- So far as any one KNOWS AND CAN PROVE, Shakespeare of
- Stratford wrote only one poem during his life. This one is
- authentic. He did write that one--a fact which stands
- undisputed; he wrote the whole of it; he wrote the whole of it
- out of his own head. He commanded that this work of art be
- engraved upon his tomb, and he was obeyed. There it abides to
- this day. This is it:
-
-
- Good friend for Iesus sake forbeare
- To digg the dust encloased heare:
- Blest be ye man yt spares thes stones
- And curst be he yt moves my bones.
-
-
- In the list as above set down will be found EVERY POSITIVELY
- KNOWN fact of Shakespeare's life, lean and meager as the invoice
- is. Beyond these details we know NOT A THING about him. All the
- rest of his vast history, as furnished by the biographers, is
- built up, course upon course, of guesses, inferences, theories,
- conjectures--an Eiffel Tower of artificialities rising sky-high
- from a very flat and very thin foundation of inconsequential
- facts.
-
-
- IV
-
- Conjectures
-
- The historians "suppose" that Shakespeare attended the Free
- School in Stratford from the time he was seven years old till he
- was thirteen. There is no EVIDENCE in existence that he ever
- went to school at all.
-
- The historians "infer" that he got his Latin in that school
- --the school which they "suppose" he attended.
-
- They "suppose" his father's declining fortunes made it
- necessary for him to leave the school they supposed he attended,
- and get to work and help support his parents and their ten
- children. But there is no evidence that he ever entered or
- returned from the school they suppose he attended.
-
- They "suppose" he assisted his father in the butchering
- business; and that, being only a boy, he didn't have to do full-
- grown butchering, but only slaughtering calves. Also, that
- whenever he killed a calf he made a high-flown speech over it.
- This supposition rests upon the testimony of a man who wasn't
- there at the time; a man who got it from a man who could have
- been there, but did not say whether he was nor not; and neither
- of them thought to mention it for decades, and decades, and
- decades, and two more decades after Shakespeare's death (until
- old age and mental decay had refreshed and vivified their
- memories). They hadn't two facts in stock about the long-dead
- distinguished citizen, but only just the one: he slaughtered
- calves and broke into oratory while he was at it. Curious. They
- had only one fact, yet the distinguished citizen had spent
- twenty-six years in that little town--just half his lifetime.
- However, rightly viewed, it was the most important fact, indeed
- almost the only important fact, of Shakespeare's life in
- Stratford. Rightly viewed. For experience is an author's most
- valuable asset; experience is the thing that puts the muscle and
- the breath and the warm blood into the book he writes. Rightly
- viewed, calf-butchering accounts for "Titus Andronicus," the only
- play--ain't it?--that the Stratford Shakespeare ever wrote; and
- yet it is the only one everybody tried to chouse him out of, the
- Baconians included.
-
- The historians find themselves "justified in believing" that
- the young Shakespeare poached upon Sir Thomas Lucy's deer preserves
- and got haled before that magistrate for it. But there is no shred
- of respectworthy evidence that anything of the kind happened.
-
- The historians, having argued the thing that MIGHT have
- happened into the thing that DID happen, found no trouble in
- turning Sir Thomas Lucy into Mr. Justice Shallow. They have long
- ago convinced the world--on surmise and without trustworthy
- evidence--that Shallow IS Sir Thomas.
-
- The next addition to the young Shakespeare's Stratford
- history comes easy. The historian builds it out of the surmised
- deer-steeling, and the surmised trial before the magistrate, and
- the surmised vengeance-prompted satire upon the magistrate in the
- play: result, the young Shakespeare was a wild, wild, wild, oh,
- SUCH a wild young scamp, and that gratuitous slander is
- established for all time! It is the very way Professor Osborn
- and I built the colossal skeleton brontosaur that stands fifty-
- seven feet long and sixteen feet high in the Natural History
- Museum, the awe and admiration of all the world, the stateliest
- skeleton that exists on the planet. We had nine bones, and we
- built the rest of him out of plaster of Paris. We ran short of
- plaster of Paris, or we'd have built a brontosaur that could sit
- down beside the Stratford Shakespeare and none but an expert
- could tell which was biggest or contained the most plaster.
-
- Shakespeare pronounced "Venus and Adonis" "the first heir of
- his invention," apparently implying that it was his first effort
- at literary composition. He should not have said it. It has
- been an embarrassment to his historians these many, many years.
- They have to make him write that graceful and polished and
- flawless and beautiful poem before he escaped from Stratford and
- his family--1586 or '87--age, twenty-two, or along there; because
- within the next five years he wrote five great plays, and could
- not have found time to write another line.
-
- It is sorely embarrassing. If he began to slaughter calves,
- and poach deer, and rollick around, and learn English, at the
- earliest likely moment--say at thirteen, when he was supposably
- wretched from that school where he was supposably storing up
- Latin for future literary use--he had his youthful hands full,
- and much more than full. He must have had to put aside his
- Warwickshire dialect, which wouldn't be understood in London, and
- study English very hard. Very hard indeed; incredibly hard,
- almost, if the result of that labor was to be the smooth and
- rounded and flexible and letter-perfect English of the "Venus and
- Adonis" in the space of ten years; and at the same time learn
- great and fine and unsurpassable literary FORM.
-
- However, it is "conjectured" that he accomplished all this
- and more, much more: learned law and its intricacies; and the
- complex procedure of the law-courts; and all about soldiering,
- and sailoring, and the manners and customs and ways of royal
- courts and aristocratic society; and likewise accumulated in his
- one head every kind of knowledge the learned then possessed, and
- every kind of humble knowledge possessed by the lowly and the
- ignorant; and added thereto a wider and more intimate knowledge
- of the world's great literatures, ancient and modern, than was
- possessed by any other man of his time--for he was going to make
- brilliant and easy and admiration-compelling use of these
- splendid treasures the moment he got to London. And according to
- the surmisers, that is what he did. Yes, although there was no
- one in Stratford able to teach him these things, and no library in
- the little village to dig them out of. His father could not read,
- and even the surmisers surmise that he did not keep a library.
-
- It is surmised by the biographers that the young Shakespeare
- got his vast knowledge of the law and his familiar and accurate
- acquaintance with the manners and customs and shop-talk of
- lawyers through being for a time the CLERK OF A STRATFORD COURT;
- just as a bright lad like me, reared in a village on the banks of
- the Mississippi, might become perfect in knowledge of the Bering
- Strait whale-fishery and the shop-talk of the veteran exercises
- of that adventure-bristling trade through catching catfish with a
- "trot-line" Sundays. But the surmise is damaged by the fact that
- there is no evidence--and not even tradition--that the young
- Shakespeare was ever clerk of a law-court.
-
- It is further surmised that the young Shakespeare
- accumulated his law-treasures in the first years of his sojourn
- in London, through "amusing himself" by learning book-law in his
- garret and by picking up lawyer-talk and the rest of it through
- loitering about the law-courts and listening. But it is only
- surmise; there is no EVIDENCE that he ever did either of those
- things. They are merely a couple of chunks of plaster of Paris.
-
- There is a legend that he got his bread and butter by
- holding horses in front of the London theaters, mornings and
- afternoons. Maybe he did. If he did, it seriously shortened his
- law-study hours and his recreation-time in the courts. In those
- very days he was writing great plays, and needed all the time he
- could get. The horse-holding legend ought to be strangled; it
- too formidably increases the historian's difficulty in accounting
- for the young Shakespeare's erudition--an erudition which he was
- acquiring, hunk by hunk and chunk by chunk, every day in those
- strenuous times, and emptying each day's catch into next day's
- imperishable drama.
-
- He had to acquire a knowledge of war at the same time; and a
- knowledge of soldier-people and sailor-people and their ways and
- talk; also a knowledge of some foreign lands and their languages:
- for he was daily emptying fluent streams of these various knowledges,
- too, into his dramas. How did he acquire these rich assets?
-
- In the usual way: by surmise. It is SURMISED that he
- traveled in Italy and Germany and around, and qualified himself
- to put their scenic and social aspects upon paper; that he
- perfected himself in French, Italian, and Spanish on the road;
- that he went in Leicester's expedition to the Low Countries, as
- soldier or sutler or something, for several months or years--or
- whatever length of time a surmiser needs in his business--and
- thus became familiar with soldiership and soldier-ways and
- soldier-talk and generalship and general-ways and general-talk,
- and seamanship and sailor-ways and sailor-talk.
-
- Maybe he did all these things, but I would like to know who
- held the horses in the mean time; and who studied the books in
- the garret; and who frolicked in the law-courts for recreation.
- Also, who did the call-boying and the play-acting.
-
- For he became a call-boy; and as early as '93 he became a
- "vagabond"--the law's ungentle term for an unlisted actor; and in
- '94 a "regular" and properly and officially listed member of that
- (in those days) lightly valued and not much respected profession.
-
- Right soon thereafter he became a stockholder in two
- theaters, and manager of them. Thenceforward he was a busy and
- flourishing business man, and was raking in money with both hands
- for twenty years. Then in a noble frenzy of poetic inspiration
- he wrote his one poem--his only poem, his darling--and laid him
- down and died:
-
-
- Good friend for Iesus sake forbeare
- To digg the dust encloased heare:
- Blest be ye man yt spares thes stones
- And curst be he yt moves my bones.
-
-
- He was probably dead when he wrote it. Still, this is only
- conjecture. We have only circumstantial evidence. Internal
- evidence.
-
- Shall I set down the rest of the Conjectures which
- constitute the giant Biography of William Shakespeare? It would
- strain the Unabridged Dictionary to hold them. He is a
- brontosaur: nine bones and six hundred barrels of plaster of
- Paris.
-
-
-
- V
-
- "We May Assume"
-
- In the Assuming trade three separate and independent cults
- are transacting business. Two of these cults are known as the
- Shakespearites and the Baconians, and I am the other one--the
- Brontosaurian.
-
- The Shakespearite knows that Shakespeare wrote Shakespeare's
- Works; the Baconian knows that Francis Bacon wrote them; the
- Brontosaurian doesn't really know which of them did it, but is
- quite composedly and contentedly sure that Shakespeare DIDN'T,
- and strongly suspects that Bacon DID. We all have to do a good
- deal of assuming, but I am fairly certain that in every case I
- can call to mind the Baconian assumers have come out ahead of the
- Shakespearites. Both parties handle the same materials, but the
- Baconians seem to me to get much more reasonable and rational and
- persuasive results out of them than is the case with the
- Shakespearites. The Shakespearite conducts his assuming upon a
- definite principle, an unchanging and immutable law: which is:
- 2 and 8 and 7 and 14, added together, make 165. I believe this
- to be an error. No matter, you cannot get a habit-sodden
- Shakespearite to cipher-up his materials upon any other basis.
- With the Baconian it is different. If you place before him the
- above figures and set him to adding them up, he will never in any
- case get more than 45 out of them, and in nine cases out of ten
- he will get just the proper 31.
-
- Let me try to illustrate the two systems in a simple and
- homely way calculated to bring the idea within the grasp of the
- ignorant and unintelligent. We will suppose a case: take a lap-
- bred, house-fed, uneducated, inexperienced kitten; take a rugged
- old Tom that's scarred from stem to rudder-post with the
- memorials of strenuous experience, and is so cultured, so
- educated, so limitlessly erudite that one may say of him "all
- cat-knowledge is his province"; also, take a mouse. Lock the
- three up in a holeless, crackless, exitless prison-cell. Wait
- half an hour, then open the cell, introduce a Shakespearite and a
- Baconian, and let them cipher and assume. The mouse is missing:
- the question to be decided is, where is it? You can guess both
- verdicts beforehand. One verdict will say the kitten contains
- the mouse; the other will as certainly say the mouse is in the
- tom-cat.
-
- The Shakespearite will Reason like this--(that is not my
- word, it is his). He will say the kitten MAY HAVE BEEN attending
- school when nobody was noticing; therefore WE ARE WARRANTED IN
- ASSUMING that it did so; also, it COULD HAVE BEEN training in a
- court-clerk's office when no one was noticing; since that could
- have happened, WE ARE JUSTIFIED IN ASSUMING that it did happen;
- it COULD HAVE STUDIED CATOLOGY IN A GARRET when no one was
- noticing--therefore it DID; it COULD HAVE attended cat-assizes on
- the shed-roof nights, for recreation, when no one was noticing,
- and have harvested a knowledge of cat court-forms and cat lawyer-
- talk in that way: it COULD have done it, therefore without a
- doubt it DID; it COULD HAVE gone soldiering with a war-tribe when
- no one was noticing, and learned soldier-wiles and soldier-ways,
- and what to do with a mouse when opportunity offers; the plain
- inference, therefore, is that that is what it DID. Since all
- these manifold things COULD have occurred, we have EVERY RIGHT TO
- BELIEVE they did occur. These patiently and painstakingly
- accumulated vast acquirements and competences needed but one
- thing more--opportunity--to convert themselves into triumphal
- action. The opportunity came, we have the result; BEYOND SHADOW
- OF QUESTION the mouse is in the kitten.
-
- It is proper to remark that when we of the three cults plant
- a "WE THINK WE MAY ASSUME," we expect it, under careful watering
- and fertilizing and tending, to grow up into a strong and hardy
- and weather-defying "THERE ISN'T A SHADOW OF A DOUBT" at last--
- and it usually happens.
-
- We know what the Baconian's verdict would be: "THERE IS NOT
- A RAG OF EVIDENCE THAT THE KITTEN HAS HAD ANY TRAINING, ANY
- EDUCATION, ANY EXPERIENCE QUALIFYING IT FOR THE PRESENT OCCASION,
- OR IS INDEED EQUIPPED FOR ANY ACHIEVEMENT ABOVE LIFTING SUCH
- UNCLAIMED MILK AS COMES ITS WAY; BUT THERE IS ABUNDANT EVIDENCE--
- UNASSAILABLE PROOF, IN FACT--THAT THE OTHER ANIMAL IS EQUIPPED,
- TO THE LAST DETAIL, WITH EVERY QUALIFICATION NECESSARY FOR THE
- EVENT. WITHOUT SHADOW OF DOUBT THE TOM-CAT CONTAINS THE MOUSE."
-
-
- VI
-
- When Shakespeare died, in 1616, great literary productions
- attributed to him as author had been before the London world and
- in high favor for twenty-four years. Yet his death was not an
- event. It made no stir, it attracted no attention. Apparently
- his eminent literary contemporaries did not realize that a
- celebrated poet had passed from their midst. Perhaps they knew a
- play-actor of minor rank had disappeared, but did not regard him
- as the author of his Works. "We are justified in assuming" this.
-
- His death was not even an event in the little town of
- Stratford. Does this mean that in Stratford he was not regarded
- as a celebrity of ANY kind?
-
- "We are privileged to assume"--no, we are indeed OBLIGED to
- assume--that such was the case. He had spent the first twenty-
- two or twenty-three years of his life there, and of course knew
- everybody and was known by everybody of that day in the town,
- including the dogs and the cats and the horses. He had spent the
- last five or six years of his life there, diligently trading in
- every big and little thing that had money in it; so we are
- compelled to assume that many of the folk there in those said
- latter days knew him personally, and the rest by sight and
- hearsay. But not as a CELEBRITY? Apparently not. For everybody
- soon forgot to remember any contact with him or any incident
- connected with him. The dozens of townspeople, still alive, who
- had known of him or known about him in the first twenty-three
- years of his life were in the same unremembering condition: if
- they knew of any incident connected with that period of his life
- they didn't tell about it. Would the if they had been asked? It
- is most likely. Were they asked? It is pretty apparent that
- they were not. Why weren't they? It is a very plausible guess
- that nobody there or elsewhere was interested to know.
-
- For seven years after Shakespeare's death nobody seems to have been
- interested in him. Then the quarto was published, and Ben Jonson
- awoke out of his long indifference and sang a song of praise and
- put it in the front of the book. Then silence fell AGAIN.
-
- For sixty years. Then inquiries into Shakespeare's Stratford
- life began to be made, of Stratfordians. Of Stratfordians
- who had known Shakespeare or had seen him? No. Then of
- Stratfordians who had seen people who had known or seen
- people who had seen Shakespeare? No. Apparently the inquires
- were only made of Stratfordians who were not Stratfordians of
- Shakespeare's day, but later comers; and what they had learned
- had come to them from persons who had not seen Shakespeare; and
- what they had learned was not claimed as FACT, but only as legend--
- dim and fading and indefinite legend; legend of the calf-slaughtering
- rank, and not worth remembering either as history or fiction.
-
- Has it ever happened before--or since--that a celebrated
- person who had spent exactly half of a fairly long life in the
- village where he was born and reared, was able to slip out of
- this world and leave that village voiceless and gossipless behind
- him--utterly voiceless., utterly gossipless? And permanently so?
- I don't believe it has happened in any case except Shakespeare's.
- And couldn't and wouldn't have happened in his case if he had
- been regarded as a celebrity at the time of his death.
-
- When I examine my own case--but let us do that, and see if
- it will not be recognizable as exhibiting a condition of things
- quite likely to result, most likely to result, indeed
- substantially SURE to result in the case of a celebrated person,
- a benefactor of the human race. Like me.
-
- My parents brought me to the village of Hannibal, Missouri,
- on the banks of the Mississippi, when I was two and a half years
- old. I entered school at five years of age, and drifted from one
- school to another in the village during nine and a half years.
- Then my father died, leaving his family in exceedingly straitened
- circumstances; wherefore my book-education came to a standstill
- forever, and I became a printer's apprentice, on board and
- clothes, and when the clothes failed I got a hymn-book in place
- of them. This for summer wear, probably. I lived in Hannibal
- fifteen and a half years, altogether, then ran away, according to
- the custom of persons who are intending to become celebrated. I
- never lived there afterward. Four years later I became a "cub"
- on a Mississippi steamboat in the St. Louis and New Orleans
- trade, and after a year and a half of hard study and hard work
- the U.S. inspectors rigorously examined me through a couple of
- long sittings and decided that I knew every inch of the
- Mississippi--thirteen hundred miles--in the dark and in the day--
- as well as a baby knows the way to its mother's paps day or
- night. So they licensed me as a pilot--knighted me, so to speak
- --and I rose up clothed with authority, a responsible servant of
- the United States Government.
-
- Now then. Shakespeare died young--he was only fifty-two.
- He had lived in his native village twenty-six years, or about
- that. He died celebrated (if you believe everything you read in
- the books). Yet when he died nobody there or elsewhere took any
- notice of it; and for sixty years afterward no townsman
- remembered to say anything about him or about his life in
- Stratford. When the inquirer came at last he got but one fact--
- no, LEGEND--and got that one at second hand, from a person who
- had only heard it as a rumor and didn't claim copyright in it as
- a production of his own. He couldn't, very well, for its date
- antedated his own birth-date. But necessarily a number of
- persons were still alive in Stratford who, in the days of their
- youth, had seen Shakespeare nearly every day in the last five
- years of his life, and they would have been able to tell that
- inquirer some first-hand things about him if he had in those last
- days been a celebrity and therefore a person of interest to the
- villagers. Why did not the inquirer hunt them up and interview
- them? Wasn't it worth while? Wasn't the matter of sufficient
- consequence? Had the inquirer an engagement to see a dog-fight
- and couldn't spare the time?
-
- It all seems to mean that he never had any literary celebrity,
- there or elsewhere, and no considerable repute as actor and manager.
-
- Now then, I am away along in life--my seventy-third year
- being already well behind me--yet SIXTEEN of my Hannibal
- schoolmates are still alive today, and can tell--and do tell--
- inquirers dozens and dozens of incidents of their young lives and
- mine together; things that happened to us in the morning of life,
- in the blossom of our youth, in the good days, the dear days,
- "the days when we went gipsying, a long time ago." Most of them
- creditable to me, too. One child to whom I paid court when she
- was five years old and I eight still lives in Hannibal, and she
- visited me last summer, traversing the necessary ten or twelve
- hundred miles of railroad without damage to her patience or to
- her old-young vigor. Another little lassie to whom I paid
- attention in Hannibal when she was nine years old and I the same,
- is still alive--in London--and hale and hearty, just as I am.
- And on the few surviving steamboats--those lingering ghosts and
- remembrancers of great fleets that plied the big river in the
- beginning of my water-career--which is exactly as long ago as the
- whole invoice of the life-years of Shakespeare numbers--there are
- still findable two or three river-pilots who saw me do creditable
- things in those ancient days; and several white-headed engineers;
- and several roustabouts and mates; and several deck-hands who
- used to heave the lead for me and send up on the still night the
- "Six--feet--SCANT!" that made me shudder, and the "M-a-r-k--
- TWAIN!" that took the shudder away, and presently the darling "By
- the d-e-e-p--FOUR!" that lifted me to heaven for joy. [1] They
- know about me, and can tell. And so do printers, from St. Louis
- to New York; and so do newspaper reporters, from Nevada to San
- Francisco. And so do the police. If Shakespeare had really been
- celebrated, like me, Stratford could have told things about him;
- and if my experience goes for anything, they'd have done it.
-
- ------
- 1. Four fathoms--twenty-four feet.
-
-
- VII
-
- If I had under my superintendence a controversy appointed to
- decide whether Shakespeare wrote Shakespeare or not, I believe
- I would place before the debaters only the one question,
- WAS SHAKESPEARE EVER A PRACTICING LAWYER? and leave everything
- else out.
-
- It is maintained that the man who wrote the plays was not
- merely myriad-minded, but also myriad-accomplished: that he not
- only knew some thousands of things about human life in all its
- shades and grades, and about the hundred arts and trades and
- crafts and professions which men busy themselves in, but that he
- could TALK about the men and their grades and trades accurately,
- making no mistakes. Maybe it is so, but have the experts spoken,
- or is it only Tom, Dick, and Harry? Does the exhibit stand upon
- wide, and loose, and eloquent generalizing--which is not
- evidence, and not proof--or upon details, particulars,
- statistics, illustrations, demonstrations?
-
- Experts of unchallengeable authority have testified
- definitely as to only one of Shakespeare's multifarious craft-
- equipments, so far as my recollections of Shakespeare-Bacon talk
- abide with me--his law-equipment. I do not remember that
- Wellington or Napoleon ever examined Shakespeare's battles and
- sieges and strategies, and then decided and established for good
- and all that they were militarily flawless; I do not remember
- that any Nelson, or Drake, or Cook ever examined his seamanship
- and said it showed profound and accurate familiarity with that
- art; I don't remember that any king or prince or duke has ever
- testified that Shakespeare was letter-perfect in his handling of
- royal court-manners and the talk and manners of aristocracies; I
- don't remember that any illustrious Latinist or Grecian or
- Frenchman or Spaniard or Italian has proclaimed him a past-master
- in those languages; I don't remember--well, I don't remember that
- there is TESTIMONY--great testimony--imposing testimony--
- unanswerable and unattackable testimony as to any of
- Shakespeare's hundred specialties, except one--the law.
-
- Other things change, with time, and the student cannot trace
- back with certainty the changes that various trades and their
- processes and technicalities have undergone in the long stretch
- of a century or two and find out what their processes and
- technicalities were in those early days, but with the law it is
- different: it is mile-stoned and documented all the way back,
- and the master of that wonderful trade, that complex and
- intricate trade, that awe-compelling trade, has competent ways of
- knowing whether Shakespeare-law is good law or not; and whether
- his law-court procedure is correct or not, and whether his legal
- shop-talk is the shop-talk of a veteran practitioner or only a
- machine-made counterfeit of it gathered from books and from
- occasional loiterings in Westminster.
-
- Richard H. Dana served two years before the mast, and had
- every experience that falls to the lot of the sailor before the
- mast of our day. His sailor-talk flows from his pen with the
- sure touch and the ease and confidence of a person who has LIVED
- what he is talking about, not gathered it from books and random
- listenings. Hear him:
-
-
- Having hove short, cast off the gaskets, and made the bunt
- of each sail fast by the jigger, with a man on each yard, at the
- word the whole canvas of the ship was loosed, and with the
- greatest rapidity possible everything was sheeted home and
- hoisted up, the anchor tripped and cat-headed, and the ship under
- headway.
-
-
- Again:
-
-
- The royal yards were all crossed at once, and royals and
- sky-sails set, and, as we had the wind free, the booms were run
- out, and all were aloft, active as cats, laying out on the yards
- and booms, reeving the studding-sail gear; and sail after sail
- the captain piled upon her, until she was covered with canvas,
- her sails looking like a great white cloud resting upon a black
- speck.
-
-
- Once more. A race in the Pacific:
-
-
- Our antagonist was in her best trim. Being clear of the
- point, the breeze became stiff, and the royal-masts bent under
- our sails, but we would not take them in until we saw three boys
- spring into the rigging of the CALIFORNIA; then they were all
- furled at once, but with orders to our boys to stay aloft at the
- top-gallant mast-heads and loose them again at the word. It was
- my duty to furl the fore-royal; and while standing by to loose it
- again, I had a fine view of the scene. From where I stood, the
- two vessels seemed nothing but spars and sails, while their
- narrow decks, far below, slanting over by the force of the wind
- aloft, appeared hardly capable of supporting the great fabrics
- raised upon them. The CALIFORNIA was to windward of us, and had
- every advantage; yet, while the breeze was stiff we held our own.
- As soon as it began to slacken she ranged a little ahead, and the
- order was given to loose the royals. In an instant the gaskets
- were off and the bunt dropped. "Sheet home the fore-royal!"--
- "Weather sheet's home!"--"Lee sheet's home!"--"Hoist away, sir!"
- is bawled from aloft. "Overhaul your clew-lines!" shouts the
- mate. "Aye-aye, sir, all clear!"--"Taut leech! belay! Well the
- lee brace; haul taut to windward!" and the royals are set.
-
-
- What would the captain of any sailing-vessel of our time say
- to that? He would say, "The man that wrote that didn't learn his
- trade out of a book, he has BEEN there!" But would this same
- captain be competent to sit in judgment upon Shakespeare's
- seamanship--considering the changes in ships and ship-talk that
- have necessarily taken place, unrecorded, unremembered, and lost
- to history in the last three hundred years? It is my conviction
- that Shakespeare's sailor-talk would be Choctaw to him. For
- instance--from "The Tempest":
-
-
- MASTER. Boatswain!
-
- BOATSWAIN. Here, master; what cheer?
-
- MASTER. Good, speak to the mariners: fall to 't, yarely,
- or we run ourselves to ground; bestir, bestir!
- (ENTER MARINERS.)
-
- BOATSWAIN. Heigh, my hearts! cheerly, cheerly, my hearts!
- yare, yare! Take in the topsail. Tend to the master's whistle.
- . . . Down with the topmast! yare! lower, lower! Bring her to
- try wi' the main course. . . . Lay her a-hold, a-hold! Set her
- two courses. Off to sea again; lay her off.
-
- That will do, for the present; let us yare a little, now,
- for a change.
-
-
- If a man should write a book and in it make one of his
- characters say, "Here, devil, empty the quoins into the standing
- galley and the imposing-stone into the hell-box; assemble the
- comps around the frisket and let them jeff for takes and be quick
- about it," I should recognize a mistake or two in the phrasing,
- and would know that the writer was only a printer theoretically,
- not practically.
-
- I have been a quartz miner in the silver regions--a pretty
- hard life; I know all the palaver of that business: I know all
- about discovery claims and the subordinate claims; I know all
- about lodes, ledges, outcroppings, dips, spurs, angles, shafts,
- drifts, inclines, levels, tunnels, air-shafts, "horses," clay
- casings, granite casings; quartz mills and their batteries;
- arastras, and how to charge them with quicksilver and sulphate of
- copper; and how to clean them up, and how to reduce the resulting
- amalgam in the retorts, and how to cast the bullion into pigs;
- and finally I know how to screen tailings, and also how to hunt
- for something less robust to do, and find it. I know the argot
- and the quartz-mining and milling industry familiarly; and so
- whenever Bret Harte introduces that industry into a story, the
- first time one of his miners opens his mouth I recognize from his
- phrasing that Harte got the phrasing by listening--like
- Shakespeare--I mean the Stratford one--not by experience. No one
- can talk the quartz dialect correctly without learning it with
- pick and shovel and drill and fuse.
-
- I have been a surface miner--gold--and I know all its
- mysteries, and the dialects that belongs with them; and whenever
- Harte introduces that industry into a story I know by the
- phrasing of his characters that neither he nor they have ever
- served that trade.
-
- I have been a "pocket" miner--a sort of gold mining not
- findable in any but one little spot in the world, so far as I
- know. I know how, with horn and water, to find the trail of a
- pocket and trace it step by step and stage by stage up the
- mountain to its source, and find the compact little nest of
- yellow metal reposing in its secret home under the ground. I
- know the language of that trade, that capricious trade, that
- fascinating buried-treasure trade, and can catch any writer who
- tries to use it without having learned it by the sweat of his
- brow and the labor of his hands.
-
- I know several other trades and the argot that goes with
- them; and whenever a person tries to talk the talk peculiar to
- any of them without having learned it at its source I can trap
- him always before he gets far on his road.
-
- And so, as I have already remarked, if I were required to
- superintend a Bacon-Shakespeare controversy, I would narrow the
- matter down to a single question--the only one, so far as the
- previous controversies have informed me, concerning which
- illustrious experts of unimpeachable competency have testified:
- WAS THE AUTHOR OF SHAKESPEARE'S WORKS A LAWYER?--a lawyer deeply
- read and of limitless experience? I would put aside the guesses
- and surmises, and perhapes, and might-have-beens, and could-have-
- beens, and must-have-beens, and we-are-justified-in-presumings,
- and the rest of those vague specters and shadows and
- indefintenesses, and stand or fall, win or lose, by the verdict
- rendered by the jury upon that single question. If the verdict
- was Yes, I should feel quite convinced that the Stratford
- Shakespeare, the actor, manager, and trader who died so obscure,
- so forgotten, so destitute of even village consequence, that
- sixty years afterward no fellow-citizen and friend of his later
- days remembered to tell anything about him, did not write the Works.
-
- Chapter XIII of THE SHAKESPEARE PROBLEM RESTATED bears the
- heading "Shakespeare as a Lawyer," and comprises some fifty pages
- of expert testimony, with comments thereon, and I will copy the
- first nine, as being sufficient all by themselves, as it seems to
- me, to settle the question which I have conceived to be the
- master-key to the Shakespeare-Bacon puzzle.
-
-
-
- VIII
-
- Shakespeare as a Lawyer [1]
-
-
- The Plays and Poems of Shakespeare supply ample evidence
- that their author not only had a very extensive and accurate
- knowledge of law, but that he was well acquainted with the
- manners and customs of members of the Inns of Court and with
- legal life generally.
-
- "While novelists and dramatists are constantly making
- mistakes as to the laws of marriage, of wills, of inheritance, to
- Shakespeare's law, lavishly as he expounds it, there can neither
- be demurrer, nor bill of exceptions, nor writ of error." Such
- was the testimony borne by one of the most distinguished lawyers
- of the nineteenth century who was raised to the high office of
- Lord Chief Justice in 1850, and subsequently became Lord
- Chancellor. Its weight will, doubtless, be more appreciated by
- lawyers than by laymen, for only lawyers know how impossible it
- is for those who have not served an apprenticeship to the law to
- avoid displaying their ignorance if they venture to employ legal
- terms and to discuss legal doctrines. "There is nothing so
- dangerous," wrote Lord Campbell, "as for one not of the craft to
- tamper with our freemasonry." A layman is certain to betray
- himself by using some expression which a lawyer would never
- employ. Mr. Sidney Lee himself supplies us with an example of
- this. He writes (p. 164): "On February 15, 1609, Shakespeare .
- . . obtained judgment from a jury against Addenbroke for the
- payment of No. 6, and No. 1, 5s. 0d. costs." Now a lawyer would
- never have spoken of obtaining "judgment from a jury," for it is
- the function of a jury not to deliver judgment (which is the
- prerogative of the court), but to find a verdict on the facts.
- The error is, indeed, a venial one, but it is just one of those
- little things which at once enable a lawyer to know if the writer
- is a layman or "one of the craft."
-
- But when a layman ventures to plunge deeply into legal
- subjects, he is naturally apt to make an exhibition of his
- incompetence. "Let a non-professional man, however acute,"
- writes Lord Campbell again, "presume to talk law, or to draw
- illustrations from legal science in discussing other subjects,
- and he will speedily fall into laughable absurdity."
-
- And what does the same high authority say about Shakespeare?
- He had "a deep technical knowledge of the law," and an easy
- familiarity with "some of the most abstruse proceedings in
- English jurisprudence." And again: "Whenever he indulges this
- propensity he uniformly lays down good law." Of "Henry IV.,"
- Part 2, he says: "If Lord Eldon could be supposed to have written
- the play, I do not see how he could be chargeable with having
- forgotten any of his law while writing it." Charles and Mary
- Cowden Clarke speak of "the marvelous intimacy which he displays
- with legal terms, his frequent adoption of them in illustration,
- and his curiously technical knowledge of their form and force."
- Malone, himself a lawyer, wrote: "His knowledge of legal terms
- is not merely such as might be acquired by the casual observation
- of even his all-comprehending mind; it has the appearance of
- technical skill." Another lawyer and well-known Shakespearean,
- Richard Grant White, says: "No dramatist of the time, not even
- Beaumont, who was the younger son of a judge of the Common Pleas,
- and who after studying in the Inns of Court abandoned law for the
- drama, used legal phrases with Shakespeare's readiness and
- exactness. And the significance of this fact is heightened by
- another, that is only to the language of the law that he exhibits
- this inclination. The phrases peculiar to other occupations
- serve him on rare occasions by way of description, comparison, or
- illustration, generally when something in the scene suggests
- them, but legal phrases flow from his pen as part of his
- vocabulary and parcel of his thought. Take the word 'purchase'
- for instance, which, in ordinary use, means to acquire by giving
- value, but applies in law to all legal modes of obtaining
- property except by inheritance or descent, and in this peculiar
- sense the word occurs five times in Shakespeare's thirty-four
- plays, and only in one single instance in the fifty-four plays of
- Beaumont and Fletcher. It has been suggested that it was in
- attendance upon the courts in London that he picked up his legal
- vocabulary. But this supposition not only fails to account for
- Shakespeare's peculiar freedom and exactness in the use of that
- phraseology, it does not even place him in the way of learning
- those terms his use of which is most remarkable, which are not
- such as he would have heard at ordinary proceedings at NISI
- PRIUS, but such as refer to the tenure or transfer of real
- property, 'fine and recovery,' 'statutes merchant,' 'purchase,'
- 'indenture,' 'tenure,' 'double voucher,' 'fee simple,' 'fee
- farm,' 'remainder,' 'reversion,' 'forfeiture,' etc. This
- conveyancer's jargon could not have been picked up by hanging
- round the courts of law in London two hundred and fifty years
- ago, when suits as to the title of real property were
- comparatively rare. And besides, Shakespeare uses his law just
- as freely in his first plays, written in his first London years,
- as in those produced at a later period. Just as exactly, too;
- for the correctness and propriety with which these terms are
- introduced have compelled the admiration of a Chief Justice and a
- Lord Chancellor."
-
- Senator Davis wrote: "We seem to have something more than a
- sciolist's temerity of indulgence in the terms of an unfamiliar
- art. No legal solecisms will be found. The abstrusest elements
- of the common law are impressed into a disciplined service. Over
- and over again, where such knowledge is unexampled in writers
- unlearned in the law, Shakespeare appears in perfect possession
- of it. In the law of real property, its rules of tenure and
- descents, its entails, its fines and recoveries, their vouchers
- and double vouchers, in the procedure of the Courts, the method
- of bringing writs and arrests, the nature of actions, the rules
- of pleading, the law of escapes and of contempt of court, in the
- principles of evidence, both technical and philosophical, in the
- distinction between the temporal and spiritual tribunals, in the
- law of attainder and forfeiture, in the requisites of a valid
- marriage, in the presumption of legitimacy, in the learning of
- the law of prerogative, in the inalienable character of the
- Crown, this mastership appears with surprising authority."
-
- To all this testimony (and there is much more which I have
- not cited) may now be added that of a great lawyer of our own
- times, VIZ.: Sir James Plaisted Wilde, Q.C. 1855, created a
- Baron of the Exchequer in 1860, promoted to the post of Judge-
- Ordinary and Judge of the Courts of Probate and Divorce in 1863,
- and better known to the world as Lord Penzance, to which dignity
- he was raised in 1869. Lord Penzance, as all lawyers know, and
- as the late Mr. Inderwick, K.C., has testified, was one of the
- first legal authorities of his day, famous for his "remarkable
- grasp of legal principles," and "endowed by nature with a
- remarkable facility for marshaling facts, and for a clear
- expression of his views."
-
- Lord Penzance speaks of Shakespeare's "perfect familiarity
- with not only the principles, axioms, and maxims, but the
- technicalities of English law, a knowledge so perfect and
- intimate that he was never incorrect and never at fault. . . .
- The mode in which this knowledge was pressed into service on all
- occasions to express his meaning and illustrate his thoughts was
- quite unexampled. He seems to have had a special pleasure in his
- complete and ready mastership of it in all its branches. As
- manifested in the plays, this legal knowledge and learning had
- therefore a special character which places it on a wholly
- different footing from the rest of the multifarious knowledge
- which is exhibited in page after page of the plays. At every
- turn and point at which the author required a metaphor, simile,
- or illustration, his mind ever turned FIRST to the law. He seems
- almost to have THOUGHT in legal phrases, the commonest of legal
- expressions were ever at the end of his pen in description or
- illustration. That he should have descanted in lawyer language
- when he had a forensic subject in hand, such as Shylock's bond,
- was to be expected, but the knowledge of law in 'Shakespeare' was
- exhibited in a far different manner: it protruded itself on all
- occasions, appropriate or inappropriate, and mingled itself with
- strains of thought widely divergent from forensic subjects."
- Again: "To acquire a perfect familiarity with legal principles,
- and an accurate and ready use of the technical terms and phrases
- not only of the conveyancer's office, but of the pleader's
- chambers and the Courts at Westminster, nothing short of
- employment in some career involving constant contact with legal
- questions and general legal work would be requisite. But a
- continuous employment involves the element of time, and time was
- just what the manager of two theaters had not at his disposal.
- In what portion of Shakespeare's (i.e., Shakspere's) career would
- it be possible to point out that time could be found for the
- interposition of a legal employment in the chambers or offices of
- practicing lawyers?"
-
- Stratfordians, as is well known, casting about for some
- possible explanation of Shakespeare's extraordinary knowledge of
- law, have made the suggestion that Shakespeare might,
- conceivably, have been a clerk in an attorney's office before he
- came to London. Mr. Collier wrote to Lord Campbell to ask his
- opinion as to the probability of this being true. His answer was
- as follows: "You require us to believe implicitly a fact, of
- which, if true, positive and irrefragable evidence in his own
- handwriting might have been forthcoming to establish it. Not
- having been actually enrolled as an attorney, neither the records
- of the local court at Stratford nor of the superior Court at
- Westminster would present his name as being concerned in any suit
- as an attorney, but it might reasonably have been expected that
- there would be deeds or wills witnessed by him still extant, and
- after a very diligent search none such can be discovered."
-
- Upon this Lord Penzance commends: "It cannot be doubted
- that Lord Campbell was right in this. No young man could have
- been at work in an attorney's office without being called upon
- continually to act as a witness, and in many other ways leaving
- traces of his work and name." There is not a single fact or
- incident in all that is known of Shakespeare, even by rumor or
- tradition, which supports this notion of a clerkship. And after
- much argument and surmise which has been indulged in on this subject,
- we may, I think, safely put the notion on one side, for no less
- an authority than Mr. Grant White says finally that the idea of
- his having been clerk to an attorney has been "blown to pieces."
-
- It is altogether characteristic of Mr. Churton Collins that
- he, nevertheless, adopts this exploded myth. "That Shakespeare
- was in early life employed as a clerk in an attorney's office may
- be correct. At Stratford there was by royal charter a Court of
- Record sitting every fortnight, with six attorneys, besides the
- town clerk, belonging to it, and it is certainly not straining
- probability to suppose that the young Shakespeare may have had
- employment in one of them. There is, it is true, no tradition to
- this effect, but such traditions as we have about Shakespeare's
- occupation between the time of leaving school and going to London
- are so loose and baseless that no confidence can be placed in
- them. It is, to say the least, more probable that he was in an
- attorney's office than that he was a butcher killing calves 'in a
- high style,' and making speeches over them."
-
- This is a charming specimen of Stratfordian argument. There
- is, as we have seen, a very old tradition that Shakespeare was a
- butcher's apprentice. John Dowdall, who made a tour of
- Warwickshire in 1693, testifies to it as coming from the old
- clerk who showed him over the church, and it is unhesitatingly
- accepted as true by Mr. Halliwell-Phillipps. (Vol. I, p. 11, and
- Vol. II, pp. 71, 72.) Mr. Sidney Lee sees nothing improbable in
- it, and it is supported by Aubrey, who must have written his
- account some time before 1680, when his manuscript was completed.
- Of the attorney's clerk hypothesis, on the other hand, there is
- not the faintest vestige of a tradition. It has been evolved out
- of the fertile imaginations of embarrassed Stratfordians, seeking
- for some explanation of the Stratford rustic's marvelous
- acquaintance with law and legal terms and legal life. But Mr.
- Churton Collins has not the least hesitation in throwing over the
- tradition which has the warrant of antiquity and setting up in
- its stead this ridiculous invention, for which not only is there
- no shred of positive evidence, but which, as Lord Campbell and
- Lord Penzance pointed out, is really put out of court by the
- negative evidence, since "no young man could have been at work in
- an attorney's office without being called upon continually to act
- as a witness, and in many other ways leaving traces of his work
- and name." And as Mr. Edwards further points out, since the day
- when Lord Campbell's book was published (between forty and fifty
- years ago), "every old deed or will, to say nothing of other
- legal papers, dated during the period of William Shakespeare's
- youth, has been scrutinized over half a dozen shires, and not one
- signature of the young man has been found."
-
- Moreover, if Shakespeare had served as clerk in an attorney's
- office it is clear that he must have served for a considerable
- period in order to have gained (if, indeed, it is credible that
- he could have so gained) his remarkable knowledge of the law.
- Can we then for a moment believe that, if this had been so,
- tradition would have been absolutely silent on the matter?
- That Dowdall's old clerk, over eighty years of age,
- should have never heard of it (though he was sure enough
- about the butcher's apprentice) and that all the other
- ancient witnesses should be in similar ignorance!
-
- But such are the methods of Stratfordian controversy.
- Tradition is to be scouted when it is found inconvenient, but
- cited as irrefragable truth when it suits the case. Shakespeare
- of Stratford was the author of the Plays and Poems, but the
- author of the Plays and Poems could not have been a butcher's
- apprentice. Anyway, therefore, with tradition. But the author
- of the Plays and Poems MUST have had a very large and a very
- accurate knowledge of the law. Therefore, Shakespeare of
- Stratford must have been an attorney's clerk! The method is
- simplicity itself. By similar reasoning Shakespeare has been
- made a country schoolmaster, a soldier, a physician, a printer,
- and a good many other things besides, according to the
- inclination and the exigencies of the commentator. It would not
- be in the least surprising to find that he was studying Latin as
- a schoolmaster and law in an attorney's office at the same time.
-
- However, we must do Mr. Collins the justice of saying that
- he has fully recognized, what is indeed tolerable obvious, that
- Shakespeare must have had a sound legal training. "It may, of
- course, be urged," he writes, "that Shakespeare's knowledge of
- medicine, and particularly that branch of it which related to
- morbid psychology, is equally remarkable, and that no one has
- ever contended that he was a physician. (Here Mr. Collins is
- wrong; that contention also has been put forward.) It may be
- urged that his acquaintance with the technicalities of other
- crafts and callings, notably of marine and military affairs, was
- also extraordinary, and yet no one has suspected him of being a
- sailor or a soldier. (Wrong again. Why, even Messrs. Garnett
- and Gosse "suspect" that he was a soldier!) This may be
- conceded, but the concession hardly furnishes an analogy. To
- these and all other subjects he recurs occasionally, and in
- season, but with reminiscences of the law his memory, as is
- abundantly clear, was simply saturated. In season and out of
- season now in manifest, now in recondite application, he presses
- it into the service of expression and illustration. At least a
- third of his myriad metaphors are derived from it. It would
- indeed be difficult to find a single act in any of his dramas,
- nay, in some of them, a single scene, the diction and imagery of
- which are not colored by it. Much of his law may have been
- acquired from three books easily accessible to him--namely,
- Tottell's PRECEDENTS (1572), Pulton's STATUTES (1578), and
- Fraunce's LAWIER'S LOGIKE (1588), works with which he certainly
- seems to have been familiar; but much of it could only have come
- from one who had an intimate acquaintance with legal proceedings.
- We quite agree with Mr. Castle that Shakespeare's legal knowledge
- is not what could have been picked up in an attorney's office,
- but could only have been learned by an actual attendance at the
- Courts, at a Pleader's Chambers, and on circuit, or by
- associating intimately with members of the Bench and Bar."
-
- This is excellent. But what is Mr. Collins's explanation?
- "Perhaps the simplest solution of the problem is to accept the
- hypothesis that in early life he was in an attorney's office (!),
- that he there contracted a love for the law which never left him,
- that as a young man in London he continued to study or dabble in
- it for his amusement, to stroll in leisure hours into the Courts,
- and to frequent the society of lawyers. On no other supposition
- is it possible to explain the attraction which the law evidently
- had for him, and his minute and undeviating accuracy in a subject
- where no layman who has indulged in such copious and ostentatious
- display of legal technicalities has ever yet succeeded in keeping
- himself from tripping."
-
- A lame conclusion. "No other supposition" indeed! Yes,
- there is another, and a very obvious supposition--namely, that
- Shakespeare was himself a lawyer, well versed in his trade,
- versed in all the ways of the courts, and living in close
- intimacy with judges and members of the Inns of Court.
-
- One is, of course, thankful that Mr. Collins has appreciated
- the fact that Shakespeare must have had a sound legal training,
- but I may be forgiven if I do not attach quite so much importance
- to his pronouncements on this branch of the subject as to those
- of Malone, Lord Campbell, Judge Holmes, Mr. Castle, K.C., Lord
- Penzance, Mr. Grant White, and other lawyers, who have expressed
- their opinion on the matter of Shakespeare's legal acquirements.
- . . .
-
- Here it may, perhaps, be worth while to quote again from
- Lord Penzance's book as to the suggestion that Shakespeare had
- somehow or other managed "to acquire a perfect familiarity with
- legal principles, and an accurate and ready use of the technical
- terms and phrases, not only of the conveyancer's office, but of
- the pleader's chambers and the Courts at Westminster." This, as
- Lord Penzance points out, "would require nothing short of
- employment in some career involving CONSTANT CONTACT with legal
- questions and general legal work." But "in what portion of
- Shakespeare's career would it be possible to point out that time
- could be found for the interposition of a legal employment in the
- chambers or offices of practicing lawyers? . . . It is beyond
- doubt that at an early period he was called upon to abandon his
- attendance at school and assist his father, and was soon after,
- at the age of sixteen, bound apprentice to a trade. While under
- the obligation of this bond he could not have pursued any other
- employment. Then he leaves Stratford and comes to London. He
- has to provide himself with the means of a livelihood, and this
- he did in some capacity at the theater. No one doubt that. The
- holding of horses is scouted by many, and perhaps with justice,
- as being unlikely and certainly unproved; but whatever the nature
- of his employment was at the theater, there is hardly room for
- the belief that it could have been other than continuous, for his
- progress there was so rapid. Ere long he had been taken into the
- company as an actor, and was soon spoken of as a "Johannes
- Factotum.' His rapid accumulation of wealth speaks volumes for
- the constancy and activity of his services. One fails to see
- when there could be a break in the current of his life at this
- period of it, giving room or opportunity for legal or indeed any
- other employment. 'In 1589,' says Knight, 'we have undeniable
- evidence that he had not only a casual engagement, was not only a
- salaried servant, as may players were, but was a shareholder in
- the company of the Queen's players with other shareholders below
- him on the list.' This (1589) would be within two years after
- his arrival in London, which is placed by White and Halliwell-
- Phillipps about the year 1587. The difficulty in supposing that,
- starting with a state of ignorance in 1587, when he is supposed
- to have come to London, he was induced to enter upon a course of
- most extended study and mental culture, is almost insuperable.
- Still it was physically possible, provided always that he could
- have had access to the needful books. But this legal training
- seems to me to stand on a different footing. It is not only
- unaccountable and incredible, but it is actually negatived by the
- known facts of his career." Lord Penzance then refers to the
- fact that "by 1592 (according to the best authority, Mr. Grant
- White) several of the plays had been written. 'The Comedy of
- Errors' in 1589, 'Love's Labour's Lost' in 1589, 'Two Gentlemen
- of Verona' in 1589 or 1590," and so forth, and then asks, "with
- this catalogue of dramatic work on hand . . . was it possible
- that he could have taken a leading part in the management and
- conduct of two theaters, and if Mr. Phillipps is to be relied
- upon, taken his share in the performances of the provincial tours
- of his company--and at the same time devoted himself to the study
- of the law in all its branches so efficiently as to make himself
- complete master of its principles and practice, and saturate his
- mind with all its most technical terms?"
-
- I have cited this passage from Lord Penzance's book, because
- it lay before me, and I had already quoted from it on the matter
- of Shakespeare's legal knowledge; but other writers have still
- better set forth the insuperable difficulties, as they seem to
- me, which beset the idea that Shakespeare might have found them
- in some unknown period of early life, amid multifarious other
- occupations, for the study of classics, literature, and law, to
- say nothing of languages and a few other matters. Lord Penzance
- further asks his readers: "Did you ever meet with or hear of an
- instance in which a young man in this country gave himself up to
- legal studies and engaged in legal employments, which is the only
- way of becoming familiar with the technicalities of practice, unless
- with the view of practicing in that profession? I do not believe
- that it would be easy, or indeed possible, to produce an instance
- in which the law has been seriously studied in all its branches,
- except as a qualification for practice in the legal profession."
-
-
- This testimony is so strong, so direct, so authoritative;
- and so uncheapened, unwatered by guesses, and surmises, and
- maybe-so's, and might-have-beens, and could-have-beens, and must-
- have-beens, and the rest of that ton of plaster of Paris out of
- which the biographers have built the colossal brontosaur which
- goes by the Stratford actor's name, that it quite convinces me
- that the man who wrote Shakespeare's Works knew all about law and
- lawyers. Also, that that man could not have been the Stratford
- Shakespeare--and WASN'T.
-
- Who did write these Works, then?
-
- I wish I knew.
-
- -----
- 1. From Chapter XIII of THE SHAKESPEARE PROBLEM RESTATED.
- By George G. Greenwood, M.P. John Lane Company, publishers.
-
-
- IX
-
- Did Francis Bacon write Shakespeare's Works? Nobody knows.
-
- We cannot say we KNOW a thing when that thing has not been
- proved. KNOW is too strong a word to use when the evidence is
- not final and absolutely conclusive. We can infer, if we want
- to, like those slaves. . . . No, I will not write that word,
- it is not kind, it is not courteous. The upholders of the
- Stratford-Shakespeare superstition call US the hardest names they
- can think of, and they keep doing it all the time; very well,
- if they like to descend to that level, let them do it, but I
- will not so undignify myself as to follow them. I cannot call
- them harsh names; the most I can do is to indicate them by terms
- reflecting my disapproval; and this without malice, without venom.
-
- To resume. What I was about to say was, those thugs have built
- their entire superstition upon INFERENCES, not upon known and
- established facts. It is a weak method, and poor, and I am
- glad to be able to say our side never resorts to it while there
- is anything else to resort to.
-
- But when we must, we must; and we have now arrived at a
- place of that sort. . . . Since the Stratford Shakespeare
- couldn't have written the Works, we infer that somebody did.
- Who was it, then? This requires some more inferring.
-
- Ordinarily when an unsigned poem sweeps across the continent
- like a tidal wave whose roar and boom and thunder are made up of
- admiration, delight, and applause, a dozen obscure people rise up
- and claim the authorship. Why a dozen, instead of only one or
- two? One reason is, because there are a dozen that are
- recognizably competent to do that poem. Do you remember
- "Beautiful Snow"? Do you remember "Rock Me to Sleep, Mother,
- Rock Me to Sleep"? Do you remember "Backward, turn, backward, O
- Time, in thy flight! Make me a child again just for tonight"? I
- remember them very well. Their authorship was claimed by most of
- the grown-up people who were alive at the time, and every
- claimant had one plausible argument in his favor, at least--to
- wit, he could have done the authoring; he was competent.
-
- Have the Works been claimed by a dozen? They haven't.
- There was good reason. The world knows there was but one man on
- the planet at the time who was competent--not a dozen, and not
- two. A long time ago the dwellers in a far country used now and
- then to find a procession of prodigious footprints stretching
- across the plain--footprints that were three miles apart, each
- footprint a third of a mile long and a furlong deep, and with
- forests and villages mashed to mush in it. Was there any doubt
- as to who made that mighty trail? Were there a dozen claimants?
- Where there two? No--the people knew who it was that had been
- along there: there was only one Hercules.
-
- There has been only one Shakespeare. There couldn't be two;
- certainly there couldn't be two at the same time. It takes ages
- to bring forth a Shakespeare, and some more ages to match him.
- This one was not matched before his time; nor during his time;
- and hasn't been matched since. The prospect of matching him in
- our time is not bright.
-
- The Baconians claim that the Stratford Shakespeare was not
- qualified to write the Works, and that Francis Bacon was.
- They claim that Bacon possessed the stupendous equipment--both
- natural and acquired--for the miracle; and that no other
- Englishman of his day possessed the like; or, indeed,
- anything closely approaching it.
-
- Macaulay, in his Essay, has much to say about the splendor
- and horizonless magnitude of that equipment. Also, he has
- synopsized Bacon's history--a thing which cannot be done for the
- Stratford Shakespeare, for he hasn't any history to synopsize.
- Bacon's history is open to the world, from his boyhood to his
- death in old age--a history consisting of known facts, displayed
- in minute and multitudinous detail; FACTS, not guesses and
- conjectures and might-have-beens.
-
- Whereby it appears that he was born of a race of statesmen,
- and had a Lord Chancellor for his father, and a mother who was
- "distinguished both as a linguist and a theologian: she
- corresponded in Greek with Bishop Jewell, and translated his
- APOLOGIA from the Latin so correctly that neither he nor
- Archbishop Parker could suggest a single alteration." It is the
- atmosphere we are reared in that determines how our inclinations
- and aspirations shall tend. The atmosphere furnished by the
- parents to the son in this present case was an atmosphere
- saturated with learning; with thinkings and ponderings upon deep
- subjects; and with polite culture. It had its natural effect.
- Shakespeare of Stratford was reared in a house which had no use
- for books, since its owners, his parents, were without education.
- This may have had an effect upon the son, but we do not know,
- because we have no history of him of an informing sort. There
- were but few books anywhere, in that day, and only the well-to-do
- and highly educated possessed them, they being almost confined to
- the dead languages. "All the valuable books then extant in all
- the vernacular dialects of Europe would hardly have filled a
- single shelf"--imagine it! The few existing books were in the
- Latin tongue mainly. "A person who was ignorant of it was shut
- out from all acquaintance--not merely with Cicero and Virgil, but
- with the most interesting memoirs, state papers, and pamphlets of
- his own time"--a literature necessary to the Stratford lad, for
- his fictitious reputation's sake, since the writer of his Works
- would begin to use it wholesale and in a most masterly way before
- the lad was hardly more than out of his teens and into his
- twenties.
-
- At fifteen Bacon was sent to the university, and he spent
- three years there. Thence he went to Paris in the train of the
- English Ambassador, and there he mingled daily with the wise, the
- cultured, the great, and the aristocracy of fashion, during
- another three years. A total of six years spent at the sources
- of knowledge; knowledge both of books and of men. The three
- spent at the university were coeval with the second and last
- three spent by the little Stratford lad at Stratford school
- supposedly, and perhapsedly, and maybe, and by inference--with
- nothing to infer from. The second three of the Baconian six were
- "presumably" spent by the Stratford lad as apprentice to a
- butcher. That is, the thugs presume it--on no evidence of any
- kind. Which is their way, when they want a historical fact.
- Fact and presumption are, for business purposes, all the same to
- them. They know the difference, but they also know how to blink
- it. They know, too, that while in history-building a fact is
- better than a presumption, it doesn't take a presumption long to
- bloom into a fact when THEY have the handling of it. They know
- by old experience that when they get hold of a presumption-
- tadpole he is not going to STAY tadpole in their history-tank;
- no, they know how to develop him into the giant four-legged
- bullfrog of FACT, and make him sit up on his hams, and puff out
- his chin, and look important and insolent and come-to-stay; and
- assert his genuine simon-pure authenticity with a thundering
- bellow that will convince everybody because it is so loud.
- The thug is aware that loudness convinces sixty persons where
- reasoning convinces but one. I wouldn't be a thug, not even if--
- but never mind about that, it has nothing to do with the argument,
- and it is not noble in spirit besides. If I am better than a thug,
- is the merit mine? No, it is His. Then to Him be the praise.
- That is the right spirit.
-
- They "presume" the lad severed his "presumed" connection
- with the Stratford school to become apprentice to a butcher.
- They also "presume" that the butcher was his father. They don't
- know. There is no written record of it, nor any other actual
- evidence. If it would have helped their case any, they would
- have apprenticed him to thirty butchers, to fifty butchers, to a
- wilderness of butchers--all by their patented method "presumption."
- If it will help their case they will do it yet; and if it will
- further help it, they will "presume" that all those butchers
- were his father. And the week after, they will SAY it.
- Why, it is just like being the past tense of the compound
- reflexive adverbial incandescent hypodermic irregular
- accusative Noun of Multitude; which is father to the expression
- which the grammarians call Verb. It is like a whole ancestry,
- with only one posterity.
-
- To resume. Next, the young Bacon took up the study of law,
- and mastered that abstruse science. From that day to the end of
- his life he was daily in close contact with lawyers and judges;
- not as a casual onlooker in intervals between holding horses in
- front of a theater, but as a practicing lawyer--a great and
- successful one, a renowned one, a Launcelot of the bar, the most
- formidable lance in the high brotherhood of the legal Table
- Round; he lived in the law's atmosphere thenceforth, all his
- years, and by sheer ability forced his way up its difficult
- steeps to its supremest summit, the Lord-Chancellorship, leaving
- behind him no fellow-craftsman qualified to challenge his divine
- right to that majestic place.
-
- When we read the praises bestowed by Lord Penzance and the
- other illustrious experts upon the legal condition and legal
- aptnesses, brilliances, profundities, and felicities so
- prodigally displayed in the Plays, and try to fit them to the
- historyless Stratford stage-manager, they sound wild, strange,
- incredible, ludicrous; but when we put them in the mouth of Bacon
- they do not sound strange, they seem in their natural and
- rightful place, they seem at home there. Please turn back and
- read them again. Attributed to Shakespeare of Stratford they are
- meaningless, they are inebriate extravagancies--intemperate
- admirations of the dark side of the moon, so to speak; attributed
- to Bacon, they are admirations of the golden glories of the
- moon's front side, the moon at the full--and not intemperate, not
- overwrought, but sane and right, and justified. "At ever turn
- and point at which the author required a metaphor, simile, or
- illustration, his mind ever turned FIRST to the law; he seems
- almost to have THOUGHT in legal phrases; the commonest legal
- phrases, the commonest of legal expressions, were ever at the end
- of his pen." That could happen to no one but a person whose
- TRADE was the law; it could not happen to a dabbler in it.
- Veteran mariners fill their conversation with sailor-phrases and
- draw all their similes from the ship and the sea and the storm,
- but no mere PASSENGER ever does it, be he of Stratford or
- elsewhere; or could do it with anything resembling accuracy, if
- he were hardy enough to try. Please read again what Lord
- Campbell and the other great authorities have said about Bacon
- when they thought they were saying it about Shakespeare of Stratford.
-
-
-
- X
-
- The Rest of the Equipment
-
-
- The author of the Plays was equipped, beyond every other man
- of his time, with wisdom, erudition, imagination, capaciousness
- of mind, grace, and majesty of expression. Everyone one had said
- it, no one doubts it. Also, he had humor, humor in rich
- abundance, and always wanting to break out. We have no evidence
- of any kind that Shakespeare of Stratford possessed any of these
- gifts or any of these acquirements. The only lines he ever
- wrote, so far as we know, are substantially barren of them--
- barren of all of them.
-
-
- Good friend for Iesus sake forbeare
- To digg the dust encloased heare:
- Blest be ye man yt spares thes stones
- And curst be he yt moves my bones.
- Ben Jonson says of Bacon, as orator:
-
-
- His language, WHERE HE COULD SPARE AND PASS BY A JEST, was
- nobly censorious. No man ever spoke more neatly, more pressly,
- more weightily, or suffered less emptiness, less idleness, in
- what he uttered. No member of his speech but consisted of his
- (its) own graces. . . . The fear of every man that heard him was
- lest he should make an end.
-
-
- From Macaulay:
-
-
- He continued to distinguish himself in Parliament,
- particularly by his exertions in favor of one excellent measure
- on which the King's heart was set--the union of England and
- Scotland. It was not difficult for such an intellect to discover
- many irresistible arguments in favor of such a scheme. He
- conducted the great case of the POST NATI in the Exchequer
- Chamber; and the decision of the judges--a decision the legality
- of which may be questioned, but the beneficial effect of which
- must be acknowledged--was in a great measure attributed to his
- dexterous management.
-
-
- Again:
-
-
- While actively engaged in the House of Commons and in the courts
- of law, he still found leisure for letters and philosophy.
- The noble treatise on the ADVANCEMENT OF LEARNING, which at a
- later period was expanded into the DE AUGMENTIS, appeared in 1605.
-
- The WISDOM OF THE ANCIENTS, a work which, if it had
- proceeded from any other writer, would have been considered as a
- masterpiece of wit and learning, was printed in 1609.
-
- In the mean time the NOVUM ORGANUM was slowly proceeding.
- Several distinguished men of learning had been permitted to see
- portions of that extraordinary book, and they spoke with the
- greatest admiration of his genius.
-
- Even Sir Thomas Bodley, after perusing the COGITATA ET VISA,
- one of the most precious of those scattered leaves out of which
- the great oracular volume was afterward made up, acknowledged
- that "in all proposals and plots in that book, Bacon showed
- himself a master workman"; and that "it could not be gainsaid but
- all the treatise over did abound with choice conceits of the
- present state of learning, and with worthy contemplations of the
- means to procure it."
-
- In 1612 a new edition of the ESSAYS appeared, with additions
- surpassing the original collection both in bulk and quality.
-
- Nor did these pursuits distract Bacon's attention from a
- work the most arduous, the most glorious, and the most useful
- that even his mighty powers could have achieved, "the reducing
- and recompiling," to use his own phrase, "of the laws of England."
-
-
- To serve the exacting and laborious offices of Attorney-General
- and Solicitor-General would have satisfied the appetite of any
- other man for hard work, but Bacon had to add the vast literary
- industries just described, to satisfy his. He was a born worker.
-
-
- The service which he rendered to letters during the last
- five years of his life, amid ten thousand distractions and
- vexations, increase the regret with which we think on the many
- years which he had wasted, to use the words of Sir Thomas Bodley,
- "on such study as was not worthy such a student."
-
- He commenced a digest of the laws of England, a History of
- England under the Princes of the House of Tudor, a body of
- National History, a Philosophical Romance. He made extensive and
- valuable additions to his Essays. He published the inestimable
- TREATISE DE AUGMENTIS SCIENTIARUM.
-
-
- Did these labors of Hercules fill up his time to his contentment,
- and quiet his appetite for work? Not entirely:
-
-
- The trifles with which he amused himself in hours of pain and languor
- bore the mark of his mind. THE BEST JEST-BOOK IN THE WORLD is that
- which he dictated from memory, without referring to any book,
- on a day on which illness had rendered him incapable of serious study.
-
-
- Here are some scattered remarks (from Macaulay) which throw
- light upon Bacon, and seem to indicate--and maybe demonstrate--
- that he was competent to write the Plays and Poems:
-
-
- With great minuteness of observation he had an amplitude of comprehension
- such as has never yet been vouchsafed to any other human being.
-
-
- The ESSAYS contain abundant proofs that no nice feature of
- character, no peculiarity in the ordering of a house, a garden,
- or a court-masque, could escape the notice of one whose mind was
- capable of taking in the whole world of knowledge.
-
-
- His understanding resembled the tent which the fairy
- Paribanou gave to Prince Ahmed: fold it, and it seemed a toy for
- the hand of a lady; spread it, and the armies of the powerful
- Sultans might repose beneath its shade.
-
-
- The knowledge in which Bacon excelled all men was a knowledge
- of the mutual relations of all departments of knowledge.
-
-
- In a letter written when he was only thirty-one, to his uncle,
- Lord Burleigh, he said, "I have taken all knowledge to be my province."
-
-
- Though Bacon did not arm his philosophy with the weapons of logic,
- he adorned her profusely with all the richest decorations of rhetoric.
-
-
- The practical faculty was powerful in Bacon; but not, like
- his wit, so powerful as occasionally to usurp the place of his
- reason and to tyrannize over the whole man.
-
-
- There are too many places in the Plays where this happens.
- Poor old dying John of Gaunt volleying second-rate puns at his
- own name, is a pathetic instance of it. "We may assume" that it is
- Bacon's fault, but the Stratford Shakespeare has to bear the blame.
-
-
- No imagination was ever at once so strong and so thoroughly
- subjugated. It stopped at the first check from good sense.
-
-
- In truth, much of Bacon's life was passed in a visionary world--
- amid things as strange as any that are described in the ARABIAN TALES
- . . . amid buildings more sumptuous than the palace of Aladdin,
- fountains more wonderful than the golden water of Parizade,
- conveyances more rapid than the hippogryph of Ruggiero, arms more
- formidable than the lance of Astolfo, remedies more effacious
- than the balsam of Fierabras. Yet in his magnificent day-dreams
- there was nothing wild--nothing but what sober reason sanctioned.
-
-
- Bacon's greatest performance is the first book of the NOVUM
- ORGANUM. . . . Every part of it blazes with wit, but with wit
- which is employed only to illustrate and decorate truth. No book
- ever made so great a revolution in the mode of thinking,
- overthrew so may prejudices, introduced so many new opinions.
-
-
- But what we most admire is the vast capacity of that
- intellect which, without effort, takes in at once all the domains
- of science--all the past, the present and the future, all the
- errors of two thousand years, all the encouraging signs of the
- passing times, all the bright hopes of the coming age.
-
-
- He had a wonderful talent for packing thought close and
- rendering it portable.
-
-
- His eloquence would alone have entitled him to a high rank
- in literature.
-
-
- It is evident that he had each and every one of the mental gifts
- and each and every one of the acquirements that are so prodigally
- displayed in the Plays and Poems, and in much higher and richer
- degree than any other man of his time or of any previous time.
- He was a genius without a mate, a prodigy not matable. There was
- only one of him; the planet could not produce two of him at
- one birth, nor in one age. He could have written anything that
- is in the Plays and Poems. He could have written this:
-
-
-
- The cloud-cap'd towers, the gorgeous palaces,
- The solemn temples, the great globe itself,
- Yea, all which it inherit, shall dissolve,
- And, like an insubstantial pageant faded,
- Leave not a rack behind. We are such stuff
- As dreams are made of, and our little life
- Is rounded with a sleep.
-
-
- Also, he could have written this, but he refrained:
-
-
- Good friend for Iesus sake forbeare
- To digg the dust encloased heare:
- Blest be ye man yt spares thes stones
- And curst be he yt moves my bones.
-
-
- When a person reads the noble verses about the cloud-cap'd
- towers, he ought not to follow it immediately with Good friend
- for Iesus sake forbeare, because he will find the transition from
- great poetry to poor prose too violent for comfort. It will give
- him a shock. You never notice how commonplace and unpoetic
- gravel is until you bite into a layer of it in a pie.
-
-
-
- XI
-
-
- Am I trying to convince anybody that Shakespeare did not
- write Shakespeare's Works? Ah, now, what do you take me for?
- Would I be so soft as that, after having known the human race
- familiarly for nearly seventy-four years? It would grieve me to
- know that any one could think so injuriously of me, so
- uncomplimentarily, so unadmiringly of me. No, no, I am aware
- that when even the brightest mind in our world has been trained
- up from childhood in a superstition of any kind, it will never be
- possible for that mind, in its maturity, to examine sincerely,
- dispassionately, and conscientiously any evidence or any
- circumstance which shall seem to cast a doubt upon the validity
- of that superstition. I doubt if I could do it myself. We
- always get at second hand our notions about systems of
- government; and high tariff and low tariff; and prohibition and
- anti-prohibition; and the holiness of peace and the glories of
- war; and codes of honor and codes of morals; and approval of the
- duel and disapproval of it; and our beliefs concerning the nature
- of cats; and our ideas as to whether the murder of helpless wild
- animals is base or is heroic; and our preferences in the matter
- of religious and political parties; and our acceptance or
- rejection of the Shakespeares and the Author Ortons and the Mrs.
- Eddys. We get them all at second hand, we reason none of them
- out for ourselves. It is the way we are made. It is the way we
- are all made, and we can't help it, we can't change it. And
- whenever we have been furnished a fetish, and have been taught to
- believe in it, and love it and worship it, and refrain from
- examining it, there is no evidence, howsoever clear and strong,
- that can persuade us to withdraw from it our loyalty and our
- devotion. In morals, conduct, and beliefs we take the color of
- our environment and associations, and it is a color that can
- safely be warranted to wash. Whenever we have been furnished
- with a tar baby ostensibly stuffed with jewels, and warned that
- it will be dishonorable and irreverent to disembowel it and test
- the jewels, we keep our sacrilegious hands off it. We submit,
- not reluctantly, but rather gladly, for we are privately afraid
- we should find, upon examination that the jewels are of the sort
- that are manufactured at North Adams, Mass.
-
- I haven't any idea that Shakespeare will have to vacate his
- pedestal this side of the year 2209. Disbelief in him cannot
- come swiftly, disbelief in a healthy and deeply-loved tar baby
- has never been known to disintegrate swiftly; it is a very slow
- process. It took several thousand years to convince our fine
- race--including every splendid intellect in it--that there is no
- such thing as a witch; it has taken several thousand years to
- convince the same fine race--including every splendid intellect
- in it--that there is no such person as Satan; it has taken
- several centuries to remove perdition from the Protestant
- Church's program of post-mortem entertainments; it has taken a
- weary long time to persuade American Presbyterians to give up
- infant damnation and try to bear it the best they can; and it
- looks as if their Scotch brethren will still be burning babies in
- the everlasting fires when Shakespeare comes down from his perch.
-
- We are The Reasoning Race. We can't prove it by the above
- examples, and we can't prove it by the miraculous "histories"
- built by those Stratfordolaters out of a hatful of rags and a
- barrel of sawdust, but there is a plenty of other things we can
- prove it by, if I could think of them. We are The Reasoning
- Race, and when we find a vague file of chipmunk-tracks stringing
- through the dust of Stratford village, we know by our reasoning
- bowers that Hercules has been along there. I feel that our
- fetish is safe for three centuries yet. The bust, too--there in
- the Stratford Church. The precious bust, the priceless bust, the
- calm bust, the serene bust, the emotionless bust, with the dandy
- mustache, and the putty face, unseamed of care--that face which
- has looked passionlessly down upon the awed pilgrim for a hundred
- and fifty years and will still look down upon the awed pilgrim
- three hundred more, with the deep, deep, deep, subtle, subtle,
- subtle expression of a bladder.
-
-
-
-
- XII
-
-
- Irreverence
-
- One of the most trying defects which I find in these--these
- --what shall I call them? for I will not apply injurious epithets
- to them, the way they do to us, such violations of courtesy being
- repugnant to my nature and my dignity. The farthest I can go in
- that direction is to call them by names of limited reverence--
- names merely descriptive, never unkind, never offensive, never
- tainted by harsh feeling. If THEY would do like this, they would
- feel better in their hearts. Very well, then--to proceed. One
- of the most trying defects which I find in these
- Stratfordolaters, these Shakesperiods, these thugs, these
- bangalores, these troglodytes, these herumfrodites, these
- blatherskites, these buccaneers, these bandoleers, is their
- spirit of irreverence. It is detectable in every utterance of
- theirs when they are talking about us. I am thankful that in me
- there is nothing of that spirit. When a thing is sacred to me it
- is impossible for me to be irreverent toward it. I cannot call
- to mind a single instance where I have ever been irreverent,
- except towards the things which were sacred to other people. Am
- I in the right? I think so. But I ask no one to take my
- unsupported word; no, look at the dictionary; let the dictionary
- decide. Here is the definition:
-
-
- IRREVERENCE. The quality or condition of irreverence toward
- God and sacred things.
-
-
- What does the Hindu say? He says it is correct. He says
- irreverence is lack of respect for Vishnu, and Brahma, and
- Chrishna, and his other gods, and for his sacred cattle, and for
- his temples and the things within them. He endorses the
- definition, you see; and there are 300,000,000 Hindus or their
- equivalents back of him.
-
- The dictionary had the acute idea that by using the capital
- G it could restrict irreverence to lack of reverence for OUR
- Deity and our sacred things, but that ingenious and rather sly
- idea miscarried: for by the simple process of spelling HIS
- deities with capitals the Hindu confiscates the definition and
- restricts it to his own sects, thus making it clearly compulsory
- upon us to revere HIS gods and HIS sacred things, and nobody's
- else. We can't say a word, for he had our own dictionary at his
- back, and its decision is final.
-
- This law, reduced to its simplest terms, is this:
- 1. Whatever is sacred to the Christian must be held in reverence by
- everybody else; 2. whatever is sacred to the Hindu must be held
- in reverence by everybody else; 3. therefore, by consequence,
- logically, and indisputably, whatever is sacred to ME must be
- held in reverence by everybody else.
-
- Now then, what aggravates me is that these troglodytes and
- muscovites and bandoleers and buccaneers are ALSO trying to crowd
- in and share the benefit of the law, and compel everybody to
- revere their Shakespeare and hold him sacred. We can't have
- that: there's enough of us already. If you go on widening and
- spreading and inflating the privilege, it will presently come to
- be conceded that each man's sacred things are the ONLY ones, and
- the rest of the human race will have to be humbly reverent toward
- them or suffer for it. That can surely happen, and when it
- happens, the word Irreverence will be regarded as the most
- meaningless, and foolish, and self-conceited, and insolent, and
- impudent, and dictatorial word in the language. And people will
- say, "Whose business is it what gods I worship and what things
- hold sacred? Who has the right to dictate to my conscience, and
- where did he get that right?"
-
- We cannot afford to let that calamity come upon us. We must
- save the word from this destruction. There is but one way to do
- it, and that is to stop the spread of the privilege and strictly
- confine it to its present limits--that is, to all the Christian
- sects, to all the Hindu sects, and me. We do not need any more,
- the stock is watered enough, just as it is.
-
- It would be better if the privilege were limited to me
- alone. I think so because I am the only sect that knows how to
- employ it gently, kindly, charitably, dispassionately. The other
- sects lack the quality of self-restraint. The Catholic Church
- says the most irreverent things about matters which are sacred to
- the Protestants, and the Protestant Church retorts in kind about
- the confessional and other matters which Catholics hold sacred;
- then both of these irreverencers turn upon Thomas Paine and
- charge HIM with irreverence. This is all unfortunate, because it
- makes it difficult for students equipped with only a low grade of
- mentality to find out what Irreverence really IS.
-
- It will surely be much better all around if the privilege of
- regulating the irreverent and keeping them in order shall
- eventually be withdrawn from all the sects but me. Then there
- will be no more quarreling, no more bandying of disrespectful
- epithets, no more heartburnings.
-
- There will then be nothing sacred involved in this Bacon-
- Shakespeare controversy except what is sacred to me. That will
- simplify the whole matter, and trouble will cease. There will be
- irreverence no longer, because I will not allow it. The first
- time those criminals charge me with irreverence for calling their
- Stratford myth an Arthur-Orton-Mary-Baker-Thompson-Eddy-Louis-
- the-Seventeenth-Veiled-Prophet-of-Khorassan will be the last.
- Taught by the methods found effective in extinguishing earlier
- offenders by the Inquisition, of holy memory, I shall know how to
- quiet them.
-
-
-
- XIII
-
-
- Isn't it odd, when you think of it, that you may list all
- the celebrated Englishmen, Irishmen, and Scotchmen of modern
- times, clear back to the first Tudors--a list containing five
- hundred names, shall we say?--and you can go to the histories,
- biographies, and cyclopedias and learn the particulars of the
- lives of every one of them. Every one of them except one--the
- most famous, the most renowned--by far the most illustrious of
- them all--Shakespeare! You can get the details of the lives of
- all the celebrated ecclesiastics in the list; all the celebrated
- tragedians, comedians, singers, dancers, orators, judges,
- lawyers, poets, dramatists, historians, biographers, editors,
- inventors, reformers, statesmen, generals, admirals, discoverers,
- prize-fighters, murderers, pirates, conspirators, horse-jockeys,
- bunco-steerers, misers, swindlers, explorers, adventurers by land
- and sea, bankers, financiers, astronomers, naturalists,
- claimants, impostors, chemists, biologists, geologists,
- philologists, college presidents and professors, architects,
- engineers, painters, sculptors, politicians, agitators, rebels,
- revolutionists, patriots, demagogues, clowns, cooks, freaks,
- philosophers, burglars, highwaymen, journalists, physicians,
- surgeons--you can get the life-histories of all of them but ONE.
- Just ONE--the most extraordinary and the most celebrated of them all--
- Shakespeare!
-
- You may add to the list the thousand celebrated persons
- furnished by the rest of Christendom in the past four centuries,
- and you can find out the life-histories of all those people, too.
- You will then have listed fifteen hundred celebrities, and you
- can trace the authentic life-histories of the whole of them.
- Save one--far and away the most colossal prodigy of the entire
- accumulation--Shakespeare! About him you can find out NOTHING.
- Nothing of even the slightest importance. Nothing worth the
- trouble of stowing away in your memory. Nothing that even
- remotely indicates that he was ever anything more than a
- distinctly commonplace person--a manager, an actor of inferior
- grade, a small trader in a small village that did not regard him
- as a person of any consequence, and had forgotten all about him
- before he was fairly cold in his grave. We can go to the records
- and find out the life-history of every renowned RACE-HORSE of
- modern times--but not Shakespeare's! There are many reasons why,
- and they have been furnished in cart-loads (of guess and
- conjecture) by those troglodytes; but there is one that is worth
- all the rest of the reasons put together, and is abundantly
- sufficient all by itself--HE HADN'T ANY HISTORY TO RECORD. There
- is no way of getting around that deadly fact. And no sane way
- has yet been discovered of getting around its formidable
- significance.
-
- Its quite plain significance--to any but those thugs (I do
- not use the term unkindly) is, that Shakespeare had no prominence
- while he lived, and none until he had been dead two or three
- generations. The Plays enjoyed high fame from the beginning; and
- if he wrote them it seems a pity the world did not find it out.
- He ought to have explained that he was the author, and not merely
- a NOM DE PLUME for another man to hide behind. If he had been
- less intemperately solicitous about his bones, and more
- solicitous about his Works, it would have been better for his
- good name, and a kindness to us. The bones were not important.
- They will moulder away, they will turn to dust, but the Works
- will endure until the last sun goes down.
-
-
-
- Mark Twain.
-
-
- P.S. MARCH 25. About two months ago I was illuminating
- this Autobiography with some notions of mine concerning the
- Bacon-Shakespeare controversy, and I then took occasion to air
- the opinion that the Stratford Shakespeare was a person of no
- public consequence or celebrity during his lifetime, but was
- utterly obscure and unimportant. And not only in great London,
- but also in the little village where he was born, where he lived
- a quarter of a century, and where he died and was buried. I
- argued that if he had been a person of any note at all, aged
- villagers would have had much to tell about him many and many a
- year after his death, instead of being unable to furnish
- inquirers a single fact connected with him. I believed, and I
- still believe, that if he had been famous, his notoriety would
- have lasted as long as mine has lasted in my native village out
- in Missouri. It is a good argument, a prodigiously strong one,
- and most formidable one for even the most gifted and ingenious
- and plausible Stratfordolator to get around or explain away.
- Today a Hannibal COURIER-POST of recent date has reached me, with
- an article in it which reinforces my contention that a really
- celebrated person cannot be forgotten in his village in the short
- space of sixty years. I will make an extract from it:
-
-
- Hannibal, as a city, may have many sins to answer for, but
- ingratitude is not one of them, or reverence for the great men
- she has produced, and as the years go by her greatest son, Mark
- Twain, or S. L. Clemens as a few of the unlettered call him,
- grows in the estimation and regard of the residents of the town
- he made famous and the town that made him famous. His name is
- associated with every old building that is torn down to make way
- for the modern structures demanded by a rapidly growing city, and
- with every hill or cave over or through which he might by any
- possibility have roamed, while the many points of interest which
- he wove into his stories, such as Holiday Hill, Jackson's Island,
- or Mark Twain Cave, are now monuments to his genius. Hannibal is
- glad of any opportunity to do him honor as he had honored her.
-
- So it has happened that the "old timers" who went to school
- with Mark or were with him on some of his usual escapades have
- been honored with large audiences whenever they were in a
- reminiscent mood and condescended to tell of their intimacy with
- the ordinary boy who came to be a very extraordinary humorist and
- whose every boyish act is now seen to have been indicative of
- what was to come. Like Aunt Becky and Mrs. Clemens, they can now
- see that Mark was hardly appreciated when he lived here and that
- the things he did as a boy and was whipped for doing were not all
- bad, after all. So they have been in no hesitancy about drawing
- out the bad things he did as well as the good in their efforts to
- get a "Mark Twain" story, all incidents being viewed in the light
- of his present fame, until the volume of "Twainiana" is already
- considerable and growing in proportion as the "old timers" drop
- away and the stories are retold second and third hand by their
- descendants. With some seventy-three years and living in a villa
- instead of a house, he is a fair target, and let him incorporate,
- copyright, or patent himself as he will, there are some of his
- "works" that will go swooping up Hannibal chimneys as long as
- graybeards gather about the fires and begin with, "I've heard
- father tell," or possibly, "Once when I."
- The Mrs. Clemens referred to is my mother--WAS my mother.
-
- And here is another extract from a Hannibal paper, of date
- twenty days ago:
-
- Miss Becca Blankenship died at the home of William Dickason,
- 408 Rock Street, at 2.30 o'clock yesterday afternoon, aged 72
- years. The deceased was a sister of "Huckleberry Finn," one of
- the famous characters in Mark Twain's TOM SAWYER. She had been a
- member of the Dickason family--the housekeeper--for nearly forty-
- five years, and was a highly respected lady. For the past eight
- years she had been an invalid, but was as well cared for by
- Mr. Dickason and his family as if she had been a near relative.
- She was a member of the Park Methodist Church and a Christian woman.
-
-
- I remember her well. I have a picture of her in my mind
- which was graven there, clear and sharp and vivid, sixty-three
- years ago. She was at that time nine years old, and I was about
- eleven. I remember where she stood, and how she looked; and I
- can still see her bare feet, her bare head, her brown face, and
- her short tow-linen frock. She was crying. What it was about I
- have long ago forgotten. But it was the tears that preserved the
- picture for me, no doubt. She was a good child, I can say that
- for her. She knew me nearly seventy years ago. Did she forget
- me, in the course of time? I think not. If she had lived in
- Stratford in Shakespeare's time, would she have forgotten him?
- Yes. For he was never famous during his lifetime, he was utterly
- obscure in Stratford, and there wouldn't be any occasion to
- remember him after he had been dead a week.
-
- "Injun Joe," "Jimmy Finn," and "General Gaines" were
- prominent and very intemperate ne'er-do-weels in Hannibal two
- generations ago. Plenty of grayheads there remember them to this
- day, and can tell you about them. Isn't it curious that two
- "town drunkards" and one half-breed loafer should leave behind
- them, in a remote Missourian village, a fame a hundred times
- greater and several hundred times more particularized in the
- matter of definite facts than Shakespeare left behind him in the
- village where he had lived the half of his lifetime?
-
-
- Mark Twain.
-
-
- End of The Project Gutenberg Edition of "What Is Man?" by Mark Twain
-
-
-
-
-
-